MIND-POWER, THE SECRET OF MENTAL MAGIC By WILLIAM WALKER ATKINSON Copyright, 1907. by WILLIAM WALKER ATKINSON PUBLISHER'S FOEEWORD. We take the greatest pleasure in presenting this latest and best work from the pen of "William Walker Atkinson. It embodies the essence of years of thought, study, and experiment on the part of its author whose original research, discoveries, and writings along these lines have given him his world- wide reputation as an authority. It is his Master- piece. A portion of its material was used in two of the author's previous works, viz., "Mental Magic," and "Mental Fascination," both of which works were published by ourselves. Both of the said works are now practically out of print, and will be with- drawn from sale by us, as they will be superseded by this newer and more complete work. This foun- dation material has been edited; added to; changed; improved; and corrected by the author, in accord- once with his increased experience and knowledge of the subject. Obsolete matter has been replaced by entirely new material, and the work is now strict- ly "up-to-date". It is encyclopaedic in extent and character, every phase of the subject being consider- ed by the author and expressed in words charged with his dynamic vitality. It contains matter that well might have been expanded into several volumes. PARTS Tho Mental Dynamo 7 The Nature of Mind-Power 33 Mentfltive Induction 33 Mental Magic in Animal Life 44 Mental Magic in Human Life G7 Tho Mentative Polea 78 Desire and Will in Fable 95 Mind-Power in Action 108 Personal Magnetism 121 Dynamic Mentation 135 Dynamic In divi duality 144 Mental AtmoBpliere 163 Channels of Influence 179 luBtruments of Expression 193 Using tho Mentative Inatruments 207 Mental SuRgeation 223 Four Kinds of Suggestion 237 now Suggestion is Uaed 258 Induced Imagination 277 Induced Imagination in India .286 The Ocean of Mind-Power 297 A GlimpBe of the Occult World 300 Self -Protection 330 Indirect Influence 346 Mental Therapeutics 357 Mental Healing Methods 372 Mental Architecture 389 Making Over Oneself 406 Mind-Building 427 CHAPTER I. THE MENTAL-DYNAMO. I wish to invite you to the consideration of a great principle of Nature— a great natural force that mani- fests its activities in the phenomena of Dynamic Mentation — a great Something the energies of which Ihave called "Mind-Power." My thought on the subject is based upon the fun- damental conception that:— Theee exists in Natuee a Dynamic Mental Prin- ciple — a mind-powee— j-esvadinq all space — imma- nent in all things — manifesting in an infinite va- riety of foems, degeees, and phases. I hold that this energy, or force, or dynamic prin- ciple, is no respecter of persons. Its service, like that of the sun and rain, and all natural forces, is open to all— just and unjust ; good and had ; high and low ; rich and poor. It responds to the proper efforts, no matter hy whom exerted, or for what purpose called into effect. But the proper effort must be exerted, oonsciously or unconsciously, else there will be no op- eration of the force. I believe that the activities of thJs djTiamic mental principle are intimately corre- lated to manifestations of the mental operations known to us as desire, will, and imagination. We MIND-POWEK shall learn something of the laws and principles a] modes of operation of its energies and activities, we proceed with our consideration of it, in this worl It may be difficult for you to grasp this conception of Mind-Power at the start— but it will grow upon your_ understanding as its activities are presented to j one by one, like a great panorama. My terms will be explained and illustrated by amples, as we proceed — so you need not analyzj them at this point. It may be as well, however, state that I have used the term "Dynamic" in original Greek sense, i. e., "powerful power," etc. I have postulated of my conception of Mind-Powaa that it pervades all space— is immanent in all thii — and manifests in an infinite variety of forms, grees, and phases. But, it may be urged, this is nothing more tl science claims for the principle of physical energy- then is Mind-Power identical with the physioi energy of science!— is it nothing more than a hi form of mechanical or material energy? No, Mind Power is very far frona being a blind, mechanii energy — it is a living, mental force, which I hold behind the manifestations of physical energy ai mechanical force. It is not the physical energy of science, but is something of the nature of a living will, which is rather the cause of physical energy, than identical with it. Let us take a familiar You desire to move your hand— and it moves. MM THE MENTAL-DYNAMO ^^■aiise of the manifestation of the wonderful and TB^terious force called "will" which is stored up within you, and which you have released to move the hand. You send a current of nerve-force which is really a manifestation of Mind-Power or will-force from your brain, along the nerves of the arm, which contracts the muscles of the arm and hand, and your desire is gratified. Your desire, or wish, set into mo- tion the Mind-Power which acted upon the material substance of your body and caused it to act. What was it that flowed along the nerve-wires? Was it electricity, or magnetism? Nol it was that subtle and mysterious thing that I am calling Mind-Power, and which is bound up with the will principle of mind. Mind-Power is an actual living force. It is the force that makes plants grow — and animal bodies grow — and which enables all living things to move and act. It is the force which enables the growing mushroom to raise up the slabs of paving stone— or causes the roots of a tree to split open the great boulders, into the crevices of which they have crept. Mind-Power is not an abstraction or speculative nothing— it is an existent, living, mental, acting force, manifesting sometimes with an appalling power, and sometimes with a delicate, subtle touch that is almost imperceptible, but which accomplishes Its purpose. In order to reach a clear conception of the univer- Bality of Mind-Power, let us consider its manifesta- tions as we see fhem. UDquestioned, in.lVeuTO'^e.t'i^— MIND-POWER : on the many planes of life and activity. Beginning J with the more familiar instances of its operation and manifestation, let us then proceed to delve still deeper until we reach instances not so easily per- ceived; and then still further back until we find it in places and in things that are generally regarded as lacking in Mind-Power and life. And, here let me say that I hold that life and Mind-Power are always found in company with each other— there is some close relationship between the two — they are probably twin-phases of the same thing, or else twin-manifestations of the same under- lying reality. There is no Hfe without mind and Mind-Power— and no Mind-Power, or mind, without life. And, further, I claim that there is nothing with- out life in the universe — nothing lifeless there, or anywhere. The universe is alive, and has mind and Mind-Power in ever>- part and particle of itself. This is not an original idea of my own, of course,- the leading scientific thinkers admit it today, and the Hindu philosophers have known it for fiftj' cen- turies. Do you doubt this! Then listen to these au- thorities who ably express the thought of their scien- tific schools. Lather Burbank, that most wonderful man who has revolutionized our conceptions of plant-life, and who has practically held Plant-Life in the palm of his hand, says: "All my investigations have led me away from the idea of a dead material universe tossed about by various forces, to that of a universe W THE MENTAL-DYNAMO U which is absolutely all force, life, soul, thought, or whatever name we choose to call it. Every atom, molecule, plant, animal or planet, is only an aggrega- tion of organized unit forces held in place by stronger forces, thus holding them for a time latent, though teeming with inconceivable power. All life on our planet is, so to speak, just on the outer fringe of this infinite ocean of force. The universe is not half dead, but all alive." Dr. Saleeby, in his important scientific work, "Evo- lution: the Master Key," goes even still further in his claim of a living universe; and life accompanied by mind. He says, among other things: "Life is potential in matter ; life-energy is not a thing unique and created at a particular time in the past. If evo- lution be true, living matter has been evolved by nat- ural processes from matter which is, apparently, not alive. But if life is a potential in matter, it is a thousand times more evident that mind is potential in hfe. Th& evolutionist is impelled to believe that mind is potential in matter. (I adopt that form of words for the moment, but not without future criti- cism.) The microscopic cell, a minute speck of mat- ter that is to become man, lias in it the promise and germ of mind. May we not then draw the inference that the elements of mind are present in those chem- ical elements— carbon, oxygen, hydrogen, nitrogen, Bulphur, phosphorus, sodium, potassium, chlorine— that are found in the cell. Not only must we do bo, bat we must go further, since we know that each of MIND-POWER these elements, and every other, is built up out < one invariable unit, the electron, and we must there^ lore assert that mind is potential in the unit of maq ter— the electron itself." Flanunarion, the eminent French scientist, saysj "The universe is a dynamism. Life itself, from thi most rudimentary cell up to the most eomplicated o ganism, is a special kind of movement, a movemenO determined and organized by a directing force. Vi&<4 ible matter, which stands to us at the present momenq for the universe, and which certain classic doctrineSi consider as the origin of all things — movement, iifejl thought— is only a word void of meaning. The i verse is a gi'eat organism, controlled by a dynamisi of the psychical order. Mind gleams through » every atom. There is mind in everything, not only i] human and animal life, but in plants, in minerals^ in space." Prof. J. A. Fleming, in his work i "Waves, Air and Aether," says: "In its ultimat* essence energj' may be incomprehensible by us e cept as an exhibition of the direct operation of thati which we call mind and will." Let us then follow the hint given by the seientistsl — let us proceed to examine the evidences of th» immanence of life and Mind-Power in all of th^ things of the universe— things organic; things : organic; and things beyond organism, shajje a form— back into the very ether of space itself. An^ in the search we shall find these evidences everj ^where— in all things. Nowhere does life and Min^ THE MENTAL DYNAMO 13 Power escape us. Immanent in all things— manifest- ing in an infinite variety of forms, degrees, and phases, we find these twin-principles. I invite you to join in one of the most interesting and fascinating explorations known to modern science. We do not need any proof to demonstrate the ex- istence of life, mind and Mind-Power in man, or in the lower animals. The activities resulting from its presence are in constant evidence. And if we ex- amine the plant kingdom we will see manifestations of life, mind, and Mind-Power there also. Plants not only manifest "appetency," or "the instinctive ten- dency on the part of low forms of organic life, to per- form certain acts necessary for their well-being, par- ticularly in the selection and absorption of the mate- rial substances necessary for their support and nutri- ments";— not only "instinct" or "involuntary and unreasoning prompting or impulse, and the response thereto";— but also, in certain cases, there appears mental action closely akin to conscious choice and will. I refer you to the many recent works on mind in plant-life for illustrations and proofs of this state- ment. And biology shows us that there is life, mind, and Mind-Power inherent in the cells of which our bodies, blood and the material of animal and plant life, is composed. These cells are "little lives," and manifest mental power and faculty. They perform their particular functions, and live, grow, reproduce themselves, and act just as do the tiny forms of an- imal life at the bottom of sea— the latter being but MIND-POWER little more than single cells, or cell-groups. The poi Fession of memory on the part of the cells of orgai matter, is an accepted scientific fact. At this point the orthodox and conservative scien. tist usually stops, drawing a line between "organic and ' ' inorganic ' ' matter. But the daring minds of advanced scientists of today have brushed aside the. dividing line, and have moved to a position where they meet the Hindu philosophers and the occultists, and now admit and teach that life, mind and Mind- Power invade the "inorganic" world to its utmost limits, and that universe is indeed alive and pos- sesses Mind. Some of the lower forms of "organic" life, called, possess no organs, and are but masses jelly-like matter without signs of even rudimentei organs— and yet these life-forras show evidenc( of desire, choice, and will. And Science has admitted the existence of life and mind in the crystals, the latter "growing" in a manner showing vital and se- lective energy, and even rudimentary sex. More than this, the metals and minerals, under scientific tests, have shown "responses" that are similar to the same action in organic life — showing life and rudi- mentary sensation, the latter of course being a mamJ festation of mind. Some of the cold, careful scien- tific records read like fairy tales to those not fa- miliar with the wonderful achievements of recent Bcienee. I wish that I had the time and space to ooxmt these tests— but I must hasten on. Enough I THE MENTAL-DYNAMO 15 say that in mineral and metallic forms there has been found "response" indicating the existence of "sen- sation" in varying degrees ; and that in the crystalli- zation of minerals and metals there has heen evi- denced the action of the same instinctive mental- life energy which as ' ' appetency or instinct ' ' builds up the bodies of living organic forms. If you wonder at this— think of the miracle which is performed every second by plants absorbing the min- erals of the earth, which are then converted into living plant-cells; then we eat the plants and convert the plant-cells into animal-cells which serve as the basis of our blood, muscles, organs, and even our brains. In fact, every particle of organic substance was evolved in this way. Think o\'er this and you will see that Nature is One in her essence, and that fehe is alive and possesses Mind-Power. But we do not stop even at this advanced point. Minerals, and all forms of matter are composed of infinitesimal atoms, or particles. The particles com- bine by reason of some inherent "attraction" exist- ing between certain of them, known as ' ' chemical af- finity," etc. Chemical affinity is a peculiar thing- it manifests in likes and dislikes, loves and hates; it is impossible to study these manifestations with- out recognizing an elementary manifestation of ' ' like and dislike"— "love and hate." You think that this is far fetched, do you.T Well, listen to these words from some of the leading scientists about this power to receive sensations, and power to respond to the 4 36 MIND-POWEE same, and maybe you will change your mind. Haea kel, the great German scientist, holds that the atom of which matter is composed may "receive sensa- tions," and "respond to sensations." He dwellsj upon this fact in his latest works "The Riddle of the- Universe," and "The Wonders of Life," and writes^ as follows regarding "sensation in the inorganio3 world"; "I cannot imagine," Haeckel says, "thel simplest chemical and physical process, without at-j Iributing the movements of the material particles toi imconscious sensation." He also says, in another! place: "The idea of chemical affinity consists in the J fact that the various chemical elements perceive thei qualitative differences in other elements — experienceJ 'pleasure' or 'revulsion' at contact with them, and"! execute specific movements on this ground." Hei adds, later, that the "sensations" and "responses" in plant and animal life are "connected by a long series of evolutionary stages with the simpler forms of sensation that we find in the inorganic elements and that reveal themselves in chemical atBnity.' Nageli, another scientist, says: "If the molecules'] possess something that is related, however dis- tantly, to sensation, it must be comfortable to be J able to follow their attractions and repulsions; un-J comfortable when they are forced to do otherwise.' And so you see that Science now is preparing to ad-, mit elementary life and Mind-Power in the atornsj and particles of matter. But we have not as yet reached the utmost limi|^ THE MENTAL-DYNAMO 17 of scientific investigation regarding the presence of mind in the universe. "Further than the atoms?" yon may ask. Yes, further than the atoms I What is true regarding the atoms, is true of the ions or electrons of which they are composed— these tinier particles are attracted and repelled; form groups and combinations which regulate the kind of atom produced; and manifest the same kind of "affinity" that is noticeable in the atoms. And more than this — these particles, as well as all forms of physical en- ergy, are believed to emerge from the ether, that subtle, tenuous, universal substance, which, although unseen, and intangible, is held to exist in order to ac- count for the phenomena of the universe. If there is Mind in the particles that emerge from the Ether, is it too much to claim that there must be Mind in the Ether itself? Is this preposterous? Not so! Listen to the words of the following scientific author- ities on the subject : Flammarion says: "Mind gleams in every atom. There is mind in everything, not only in human and animal life, but in plants, in minerals in space!" Cope says: "The basis of life and mind lies back of the atoms, and may be found in the universal ether." Hemstreet says: "Mind in the ether is no more unnatural than mind in flesh and blood." Stockwell says: "The ether is coming to be ap- prehended as an immaterial, super-physical sub- stance, filling all space, carrying in its infinite, throb- ^ bjng bosom the specks of aggregated djTiamic force MIND-POWER called worlds. It embodies the ultimate spiritual principle and represents the unity of those forces and energies from which spring, as their source, all phenomena, physical, mental and spiritual, as they are known to man." Dolbear says: "Possibly the ether may be the medium through which mind and matter react. • • * Out of the ether could emerge, under proper circumstances, other phenom- ena, such as life, or mind, or whatever may be in the substratum." And, so, we have the best of au- thority to support the inevitable conclusion that there must be Mind-Power even in the ether. For my own part, I go still further, and for sev- eral years back have been claiming that the Ether and the Universal Mind-Power Principle are one and the same thing— that is, that that theoretical some- thing that science has called "the Ether," is in re- ality the Universal Mind-Power Principle from which all manifestations of activities emerge— the Universal Mental Dynamo 1 I cannot prove this, of course- but it is logical. But my argument does not depend even upon this — for admit that there is Mind- Power in the ether, and my case is won. And in the ether it must be, even if the ether is not but another name fov it. For if Mind-Power is not in the ether, from whence does it come into the particles of matter, and in matter itself, organic and inorganict Resting the consideration for a moment, let me say that with mind as reason, intellect, etc., I have nothing to do in this book, for this is a consideration THE MENTAL-DYNAMO 19 of the dynamic phase of mind— the Power phase— Mind-Power, or Dynamic Mentation. I am trying to show you that Mind-Power exists everywhere, and is manifest in every activity of the universe. "In every activity of the universe?" you say; "surely you do not include physical activity and energy such as natural forces etc.!" Yes, I do mean just that! "Howcan that be!"you ask, " what has Mind-Power to do with electricity, light, heat, magnetism, gravita- tion, etc.?" It has everything to do with them, in my opinion. I will explain it to you in a few words, for I cannot go into this subject at length in this book, but must hasten on to the other parts of my subject. Here it is in a nut-shell: All the forms of natural physical energy, or forces, known as light, heat, elec- tricity, magnetism, etc., are held by science to be forms of energy arising from the vibration of the particles of matter. Now what causes the vibra- tion? Motion of the particles, of course! And what causes the particles to move? Just this, the attrac- tion and repulsion existing between them ! And what causes the particles to exhibit this attraction and re- pulsion toward each other? Now here is where we get to the heart of the matter ; listen well ! We have seen that the particles are attracted to, or repelled by, each other— in the matter of "likes and dislikes"; "love and hates"; or "pleasure or revulsion"; or "comfortable and uncomfortable experiences related, however distant, to sensation," etc. And these at- 20 MIND-POWER tractions and repulsions are lield to result from '' pacity to experience sensations" and the power i ' ' respond to sensations. ' ' And both the power to r ceive and experience "sensations," and to respoi^ thereto, are manifestations of mentality, which Hae( kel has compared to "desire" and "will." And i mentality is the cause of the sensations and of the r sponse there ; and the latter are the causes the attractions and repulsions; and the lattflj are the causes of the motion, to and fro, of particles of matter; and the latter, in turn is cause of the vibrations; and the vibrations are thl causes of the manifestations of light, heat, electriJii ity, magnetism, etc.,— then am I not justified claiming that mind and Mind-Power are the motivd force of all physical energy? And, am I not justified in postulating the existen™ of an universal mental dynamic principle? I ta you, friends, that the future will show that this da namie mental principle is the source of energy- energy the source of wiind! I know that this is revolutionary, but I believe that it will meet the re- quirements of the future. I have been preaching thi thing for several years now— and many have bed the smiles; the jeers; and the sneers. But, from th^ beginning, I have felt a keen appreciation of the words of G-alvini, when he said, bitterly: "I am at- tacked by two very opposite sects — the Scientists and the Know-Nothings ; both laugh at me, calling me the THE MENTAL-DYNAMO 21 j'b Dancing Master,' but I know that I have dis- l^ered one of the greatest forces in nature;" And, now, in conclusion, I must ask you to forai a mental picture of this great universal dynamic mental principle ; pervading all space ; immanent in all things; and manifesting in an infinite variety of forms, degrees and phases. We can think of it only by means of symbols. Let as then consider it as a great living, throbbing, pulsating, mentating Ocean of Dynamic Mind-Power. In the depths of that Ocean of Mind-Power there is quiet, and calm and peace— the embodiment of latent power, and poten- tial energy. On its surface are ripples, waves, great movements of energj', currents, whirlpools, eddies — phases of fierce tempest alternating with phases of calm and quiet. Aud from tlie depths of that Ocean of Mind-Power, all mental and physical Power emerges — and to its bosom all must return. And in that ocean there is an infinite store of energy, from which may be drawn thatTphich the human centers of consciousness aud power require, when they learn the secret This Ocean of Mind-Power is our only source of dynamic energy — hut we have at our dis- posal as much of its force as we can carry off over oar channels of supply. It is the use of this power that we call Dynamic Mentation, Now, do you understand what I mean by the Uni- versal Principle of Dynamic Mind-Power — this Uni- versal Mental-Dj-namot Several years ago I told a friend of this conception. and after he had listened to me attentively and with interest,- be reflected a few moments, and then sud- denly asked; "But where do / come in?" And that is the question that many of you are asking now, no doubt. Well, while here I cannot dip into metaphy- sics or philosophical speculation, or even into my favorite occult sources, I will say that each of you is a Centre of Power in that Ocean of Dj-namic Mind- Power and each "I" is a master of the power. You have the Whole Thing back of you— and you are free to draw upon it for all that your channel will carryJ to you. And you are allowed to enlarge your chan-3 uel. That is enough for this time— more will followl as we proceed. CHAPTER n. THE NATURE OF MIHTI-POWEB. point I am confronted with the question' that naturally arises when one begins to consider an unfamiliar object, subject, or principle — the ques- tion of: "What is it?" "What is Mind-Power" is a difficult question to answer, for it implies a knowl- edge of tiie thing ' ' in-itse!f , ' ' apart from its activities and manifestations. And this "thing-it-se!fness" is something that the candid, scientific thinker admits is beyond the range of his thought and knowledge. Any attempt to answer such a question must involve one in a maze of metaphysical and philosophical speculation regarding something with is by nature unknowable. And so I may as well frankly state here that I do not purpose "guessing" at the "thing- in-itselfness" of Mind-Power. For, at the best, any attempt at an answer would be merely a guess— for I do not know, neither do I know anyone else who knows! I am acquainted with the numerous speculations of the ancient and modern philosophers and metaphysi- cians on the subject — I have read and studied them, and have rejected them as mere theories unsup- ported by facts. And I ha"ve made and rejected a 24 MIND- POWER dozen or more theories of my own on the subjeot- vague, foolish specalations. I have studied the bead of what has been written and thought regardinj this "thing--in-itselfness" of mind and Mind-PowerJ so you see my ignorance ia not the ignorance thatj comes from lack of thought, or lack of acquaintance with the thoughts of others — but is rather the ig- norance that comes as the result of much thought, and much study of the thoughts of others— the ig- norance that is only realized through knowledge. Re- garding these uUimate questions, the best thinkeraJ freely confess their ignorance knowing that, as| Nordau has said, they "have plucked that supremest ■ fruit of the Tree of Knowledge — the consciousness of our ignorance." Like Pyrrhon, some twenty-five centuries ago, they say "Uden horizo" — "I do notj decide." We do not know "things-in-themselves"— we can- not know them. If we knew the ultimate truths re-^ garding the tiniest and most insignificant thing i the universe, we would know everything that is — for that tiniest thing is connected with, and related to everything in the universe, and that which underlies the universe— and to know the "thing-in-itself" of anything would be to know the great "Thing-in-^H Itself" of The All. All that we can do is to know and consider things by what they do; and how they act; and through their manifestations and activities; and the results and effects of the same— rather than by what they are in the abstract, or apart from their THE NATURE OF MIND-POWER ! activities, manifestations, and the phenomena pro- ceeding from them. Apart from their activities, manife stations and phenomena, things are but ab- stract no-things so far as our understanding is con- cerned— airy "words" coined by the metaphysicians and philosophers in order to provide food for specu- lation, argument, and dispute without end. And we may as well admit the fact that all consideration of ultimate things — things-iu-themselves — inevitably leads us to the conclusion that the only real Thing-in- Itself is a Something, underlying all things and yet a No- Thing, and which transcends all of our experi- ence, knowledge, reason, thought, and even imagina- Hon. And therein lies the folly of attempting to tell "just what" anything is. In view of the facts mentioned, and which are held to be correct by the world 's best thinkers, how much saner is it to devote our attention to the consid- eration of things as known through their activities, manifestations, and phenomena — knowing them by what they do, and and how tliey act ; by the lawb and principles of the activities and operations; rather than by speculations concerning their nature as ab- stract thing-in-themselves. This is the method of modern Science, as compared with those of specu- lative philosophy and metapliysics. But, "a little learning is a dangerous thing"; and "fools rush in where angels fear to tread." And sO we shall never be at a loss for ingenious theories and "solutions" of ultimate problems. We have among us some who 26 MIND-POWER glibly inform us that they know "just what Mintt is ! " Such add to the gaiety of the nations, and there-ij fore are useful and interesting. Did you ever hear of J the youth at college, who when asked by his profes- . sor: *'\Vhat is electricity?" answered "Well, sir, 1 did know, but I have forgotten ! ' ' The professor an- swered, dryly: "Now, isn't that too bad! Here is the only person in tlie world who ever knew just what electricity is — and he has forgotten I What a loss to the race!" Wliy do we not have courage enough to leave off this making of the speculative soap-bubbles with which we have been amusing ourselves, and learn to answer honestly, "I do not hnowl" or, at least like modern Science, learn to frankly state ; Here our knowledge of the subject ends ; to-morrow we may know more, but sufficient for the day is the knowledge thereof— and an inch of knowledge of facta is worth a mile of unsupported speculation and theory. As Thomas L, Harris has said : "The theorist who dreams a rainbow dreani, And calls hypothesis 'philosophy,' At best is but a paper financier Who palms his specious promises for gold Facts are the basis of philosophy; Philosophy, the harmony of facts. Seen in their right relation." And, now, having confessed your ignorance anj'.a mine, let us proceed to a consideration of Mind- I Power as known by its activities. In the first place, let me say that I do not hold that J THE NATURE OF MIND-POWER 27 Mind-Power is identical with mind. Rather does it seem to me to be correlated to mind, particularly in tlie operation of mind known as desire, will, and imagination. If you like, wb may consider it to be the acting aspect of mind. Mind has three aspects— the aspect of being, or substance; the aspect of thought, with the sub-divisions of reason, feeling, enaotion, desire, will, etc., on both conscious and sub- conscious planes; and third, the aspect of ACTING. And it is in this aspect of action that mind is known as Mind-Power. While it is extremely likely that there is a certain employment and manifestation of Mind-Power in the ordinary processes of reasoning, intellectual effort, etc., still Mind-Power seems to be more closely connected with the more elementary phase of menta- tion, such as feeling, emotion, and particularly de- sire and will. We know that it is possessed by the lower forms of animal and plant life; even the in- organic forms; all of which existed and employed the force before intellect and reason manifested itself in man. And so I would impress upon you that while Mind-Power may be called into operation by, and still more certainly may be directed by the intellect — still you must not make the mistake of identifying it with that phase of mind or attributing It solely to creatures possessing the same. It is a far more elementary and basic force, as you have seen in the preceding chapter. Indeed, in order that you may understand the op- 28 MIND-POWER erations of Mind-Power you may as well get into the habit of considering it as correlated to that wliich we call WILL, (as distittguish^d from intellect and rea- son). By "will" I do not mean that phase or faculty of the mind which decides, determines, or chooses— although this customary use of the term is quite cor- rect as applied to one phase of will. This deciding, choosing, determining faculty is one of the attri- butes of intellect and Self-consciousness superim- posed upon the elemental will in the direction of guiding, directing, turning and restraining — it is the Ego at the wheel, directing the Ship of Life by the Chart of Reason, the motive-power being will, or Mind-Power. Choice in the lower forms of life and acti\aty, simply means yielding to the strongest de- sire, or aggregate of strongest desires, or average of strongest desires. No, I did not mean will in the above sense, but in the more elementary sense of the term— the original sense, for the word is derived from the root meaning "to wish; to desire strongly." And, in this elemen- tary sense, the word "will" is nsed to designate that primitive, original, universal mental principle in life, which manifests in desire for action, and in the response to that desire. In this sense will may be considered as Desire-Will, both being held to be phases of the same thing— or rather the two poles of the same thing. The desire-pole of this Desire- AVill is connected with that which we call emotion,' feeling, etc., which arouses it into action. The t THE NATUBE OF MIND-POWER 29 pole of this Desire- Will is connected with that prin- ciple of mental activity which we are considering under the name of Mind-Power— the dynamic aspect of mind. I ask that you re-read this paragraph, that yon may fix this idea firmly in your mind, for upon il depends the correct understanding of much that I shall have to say in this work. In Desire we find the first step toward Dynamic Mentation. Desire precedes action of will which re- leases the dynamic force of the mind— the Mind- Power. Desire is the coiling up the steel-spring of Will— there is always a state of "tension" about desire— a state of "coiled-up energy" caused by "feeling," "emotion" or similar state which has been aroused by the sight of, or memory of, or thonght of, some attractive object. The "feeling" jn- Bpired by the attractive object coils up the spring of desire, and this "coiled-up" energy supplies the "motive-power of the will. But, remember this, some desires are acted upon, while others are rejected— neither men nor things act upon every desire. There is the other pole of the Desire-Will which must be called into action— and this leads us to a considera- tion of the matter of choice, determination, or decis- ion, which is so often expressed by the term "Will," as I said a little further back. This choosing or determining phase of will, is lit- tle more than an empty name or term, so far as is concerned the relation between desire and will action in the cases of things and creatures lower in the 30 MIND-POWER Ecale than man. For in these cases this choice, de- termination, or decision is based entirely upon the degree of "feeling," or the degree of attractiveness of the objects presenting themselves to the attention —the strongest feeling, attraction, or motive-interest winning the day. (Fear is one of the strongest feel- ings influencing desire, and acts usually as a neu- • tralizer of other feelings and desires, and is mostJ potent as a motive influencing choice or decision — in fact, one is justified in regarding fear as the negative form of desire, being really a "desire-not-to.") With the advent of reason, and intellect, particularly when the self-conscious ego appears, new elements are introduced, by reason of which man is enabled to deliberate and weigh motives, desires, feelings, emotions, etc., and thus the will of man is held to contain elements lacking in the general principle of wiU. But the aspect of will with which we are muchj concerned is the aspect of action— the will-pole ofil Desire-Will. Just where desire passes into will possible to decide— the chances are that they blen^ into each other. But this we do know, that "some-J thing happens " at a certain stage of the mental oper-r ation, whereby the attention of the thing, or ego, passes from the pole of desire to the pole of will— and then, one of two things happens, t. e., (1) either the "coiled-up" spring of desire is released by the will, and the energy of desire is transmuted into the energy of will, which thus releases the Mind' THE NATUEE OF MIND-POWER 31 Power or dynamic quality of mind into action; or else. (2) the will refuses to be aroused, and desire slowly uncoils her spring, and the tension is relieved, gradually or at once. The will may be cultivated and developed so as to refuse to release the spring of de- sire into action— and in this inhibiting quality lies much of that which is called "strength of will"— it often requires more will not to do, than to do. The aspect of "action" is the true dynamic qual- ity of will. And with action all will is intimately and inseparably connected. As Prof. Halleck says: "Will concerns itself with action. The student must keep that fact before him, no matter how complex the matter seems." Action is the "inner meaning" and reason of the will. And it is with this phase that we are concerned in the present work. Action is the essential aspect of Mind- Power— the latter exists for the purpose of Acting. It is the essence of activity. And so you will see that this ' ' universal dj-namic mental principle ' '—which I have called "Mind- Power," is not that phase of mind which manifests as intellectual, reasoning processes ;but is that phase of mind which is aroused hy desire-will— and which ACTS. It is manifest in the universe among forms of Ufe below the plane of reason, as well as among those on that plane, and therefore precedes Keason in evo- lution. It also manifests along unconscious and auto- matic lines, and precedes the self-conscious stage of man. It represents an elementary, primitive, fun- damental, dynamic, mental force-, aii4 toky ^j^ thought of as a raw, crude, undeveloped force, i festing along the lines of inatinctive action or ; petency, rather than along the lines of intellect, rea- son, or the higher cognitive faculties. It is some- thing far more elemental and basic than intellect. It is more nearly akin to the elemental life forces which we personify under thename of "Nature." Whether or not that which we know as reason or intellect were evolved from an elemental Mind-Stuff; or whether these higher forms of mentality are some- thing of an entirely higher and distinct nature ; or whether, as the occultists hold, intelligence is the re- sult of the influence of a Spiritual Ego (something distinct fro:n mind) upon an elementary Mind-Stuff — tliese are questions belonging to other phases of the general subject of Being, with which we have nothing to do in the consideration of the subject be- fore us. I have my own opinions and beliefs on these points, and bo have each of you— we may differ re- garding the same, but may still be able to examine the subject before us as co-workers, in spite of our lack of agreement regarding questions of philosophy, metaphysics, or religion. We are dealing with a natural force— a universal energy— now and here, and should examine and study its principles just as we would were it electricity, magnetism, heat or light that we were studying. I am inviting you to a scien- tific study, not a metaphysical or philosophical specu- lation, doctrine or theory. These latter things have their own good places— but they have no place here CHAPTER in. MENTATIVE INDUOTION. As wonderfiil as is the manifestation of Mind- Power within the limits of "the form of the thing, ceil, plant, animal, or person, and which produces the effects known as local action, movement, etc., there is still a greater wonder to be witnessed in the mauifestation of the same power beyond the lunits of the personality or form in which it originates. And it is to this manifestation of Mind-Power that I am about to apply the term "Telementation." I may as well explain my terms at this place and time. In the first place I use the term "Mentation," in the sense of "Mental activity"; the term being de- rived from the Latin word mentis, meaning "the mind"; and the suffix "ation"; meaning "action." So "Mentation" means "mental activity." From Mentation we derive Mentative, or "relating to men- tal activity"; Mentate, or "to manifest mental ac- tivity"; etc., etc. From Mentation, also, I derive the term, "Tele- mentation," which so far as I know, was originally coined by me several years ago. The word is derived from the Greek word, tele, meaning "far off"; and the word "mentation," above explained. "Telemen- 34 MIND-POWEE tation" means "mental activity at a distance," or mentation exerted over space," or "long-range men- tal influence," etc. I have been led to the coining of this new term designed to take the place of "te- lepathy," for the reason that the latter term is im- proper and misleading. "Telepathy," according to its root-words, really means "to snffer at a dis- tance," or the "feeling of the pain of another,'" the sufBs "pathy," being derived from the Greek word meaning "to suffer." It may be used properly in connection with the sympathetic transference of pain, or disease, or similar mental state, but its use otherwise is improper. It is being discarded by the best scientifie authorities, who prefer the term "Thought Transference," etc. I have thought it advisable to use the term " telementation " in this connection, believing that it meets the requirements of the case better than any other term of which I have any knowledge. I expect it to come into gen- eral use before long. And now about the transference of mental states from one thing or person to another. I shall not at- tempt to go into a discussion of the phenomena of Thought-Transference in this work, for the reason that it is too well established, and too generally known to require an ar^ment in its favor from me. To thousands of careful investigators it is an es- tablished fact, and anyone who will take the time and trouble to conduct the experiments may reproduce the phenomena to his own satisfaction. Moreover MENTATIVE INDUCTION 35 there are instances of telementatlon arising in the everyday life of nearly every person, such instances being of the spontaneous order, that is, not having been expected or sought after. Those who are de- sirous of obtaining "proofs" of telementation, be- yond their own personal experiences, are referred to the records of the English Society for Psychical Research, which contain the carefully noted reports of many very interesting cases which have been con- ducted by the society under the most careful super- vision and scientific requirements. The circulation of Mind-Power is as real a natural phenomenon as the circulation of air, water, or the blood. There have been many theories advanced to ac- count for telementation, and there has been much talk of "two-rainds," "dual-raentality," etc., in this connection. In this work I shall have very little, if anything, to say regarding man's "two-minds." I, of course, am fully conversant with the subject of the sub-conscious and super-conscious regions of the Mind, but I find this principle of telementation to have its roots still further back in the scale of evolu- tion — back before "consciousness" as we know it, existed in the created forms of matter or life— back to the plane of "mind in inorganic matter"— and therefore, I shall not attempt to urge any "two- mind" theories to account for it. In fact, I believe that the mind of man is a far more complex thing than a "dual-mind" combination— there are many more planes and regions of naind than the "ob- MIND-POTVER ISeetive"a'ncl" subjective" minds of tbe"dua!-mind" authorities. I find the basis for the theory of telementation far back in the scale— in fact at the lowest extreme of the scale of things. I find it in the atoms, or in the par- ticles of which the atoms are composed. In the first fchapter of this work I called your attention to the Btoanifestatiou of Mind-Power among the atoms and particles of matter, which was evidenced by actionfj motion, and movements resulting from "attractioaf and repulsion" of these atoms and particles, fether words I showed that physical forces were pro. Huced by the motions of the particles, or vibrationi ^f the atoms, which arose from states of like and dis- like; love and hate; attraction and repulsion; pies ure and pain; among these tiny particles of matterJ And it is here that the elementary principle of tele- mentation is noticeable— here is where it may Kpeen in full primitive force and operation. If yoni nill think for a moment, you will see that the motionHl Hf the atoms are two-fold, vis. (1) the voluntary mo-1 tion of the atom toward the other atom to which i is attracted by chemical affinity; and (2) the move-1 — jnent of the atom occasioned by the "attractivoj fcorce" exerted by the other atom, in the same man-| Ker that a magnet "draws" the needle to it. H Haeckel has told us that there is the voluntary ■movement of the atom itself, in response to the "de- Bire" awakened in it by the attraction— how does it . Mecome aware of the presence of the other atom nn-*9 MENTATIVE INDUCTION 37 ^s something passes between them? And that mething must be in the nature of a raentative cur- bt, for there is nothing else to pass, because all Iter forms of energy being produced by vibrations K:&e atoms arising from mental states, the Mind- wermust precede the physical energies, and must M the "something that passes between" the two at- oms. Feeling the presence of the other atom, the first atom moves towards its affinity, voluntarily, and just as you move your arm or walk — the atom prob- ably exerting a push upon the ether which must be to the atom or particle what the air is to the wing of the bird, or the water to the fin of the fish. But there is another cause of motion, as we have seen— the mu- tua! pull of the attracting atoms. And what manner or kind of energj' is it that thus "draws" or "pulls" the other atom? It cannot be electricity, or magnetism, for those forces, as we have seen, are produced by a rate of vibration oc- casioned by the Mind-Power in the atoms themselves —therefore we must go back to the antecedent force, which is Mind-Power, and attribute to it the drawing or pulling force which moves the atoms toward each other. That this attracting or pulling force is in oper- ation between the particles of matter, there can be no doubt. No two atoms of matter are in absolute touch with each other— there is always a distance be- tween them— a space which thus separates them— which never can be traversed or overcome. There MINB-POWEB Bjective" and "subjective" minds of the "dual-min(| authorities. I find the basis for the theory of telementation ffl ■tiack in the scale— in fact at the lowest extreme of tM ■ scale of things. I find it in the atoms, or in the pari I tides of which the atoms are composed. In the firai ■ chapter of this work I called your attention to 1 I manifestation of Mind-Power among the atoms a^ particles of matter, which was evidenced by actitu motion, and movements resulting from "attracti^ and repulsion" of these atoms and particles. " other words I showed that physical forces were prj duced by the motions of tlie particles, or vibratioa I of the atoms, which arose from states of like and d [like; love and hate; attraction and repulsion; ple^ ■ Tire and pain; among these tiny particles of mattd And it is here that the elementary principle of tell mentation is noticeable — here is where it may 1 I peen in full primitive force and operation. If yoi I will think for a moment, you will see that the motionlj I of the atoms are two-fold, vis. (1) the voluntary mo ■tion of the atom toward the other atom to which i Bis attracted by chemical affinity; and (2) the movffl Iment of the atom occasioned by the "attraotiw ■ force" exerted by the other atom, in the same ma] iuer that a magnet "draws" the needle to it. Haeckel has told us that there is the voluntary fcnovement of the atom itself, in response to the "de- jsire" awakened in it by the attraction — how does IL Ilbecome aware of the presence of the otlier atom i MENTATIVE INDUCTION 37 less something passes between themT And that sometbiug must be in the nature of a mentative cur- rent, for there is nothing else to pass, because all other forms of energy being produced by vibrations of the atoms arising from mental states, the Mind- Power must precede the physical energies, and must be the "something that passes between" the two at- oms. Feeling the presence of the other atom, the first atom moves towards its affinity, voluntarily, and just as you move your arm or walk— the atom prob- ably exerting a push upon the etber which must be to the atom or particle what the air is to the wing of the bird, or the water to the fin of the fish. But there is another cause of motion, as we have seen— the mu- tual pull of the attracting atoms. And what manner or kind of energy is it that thus "draws" or "pulls" the other atom! It cannot be electricity, or magnetism, for those forces, as vre have seen, are produced by a rate of vibration oc- casioned by the Mind-Power in the atoms themselves —therefore we must go back to the antecedent force, which is Mind-Power, and attribute to it the drawing or pulling force wbieb moves the atoms toward each other. That this attracting or pulling force is in oper- ation between the particles of matter, there can be no doubt. No two atoms of matter are in absolute toneh with each other— there is always a distance be- tween them— a space which thus separates them— which never can be traversed or overcome. There jective" and "subjective" authorities. I find the basis for the theory of telementation fa] back in the scale — in fact at the lowest extreme of tiu scale of things. I find it in the atoms, or in the [ tides of which the atoms are composed- In the first chapter of this work I called your attention to the manifestation of Mind-Power among the atoms and particles of matter, which was evidenced by action, motion, and movements resulting from "attraction and repulsion" of these atoms and particles. In other words I showed that physical forces were pro- Educed by the motions of the particles, or vibrations of the atoms, which arose from states of like and dis- like; love and hate; attraction and repulsion; pleas- ure and pain; among these tiny particles of matter. And it is here that the elementary principle of tele- mentation is noticeable— here is where it may be seen in full primitive force and operation. If you will think for a moment, you will see that the motions of the atoms are two-fold, vis. (1) the voluntary mo- lion of the atom toward the other atom to which it is attracted by chemical affinity; and (2) the move- ment of the atom occasioned by the "attractive force" exerted by the other atom, in the same man- ner that a magnet "draws" the needle to it. Haeekel has told us that there is the voluntary movement of the atom itself, in i-esponse to the "de- sire" awakened in it by the attraction — how does it become aware of the presence of the other atom un- MENTATIVE INDUCTION 37 less something passes between them? And that something must be in the nature of a mentative cur- rent, for there is nothing else to pass, because all other forms of energy being produced by vibrations of the atoms arising from mental states, the Mind- Power must precede the physical energies, and must be the "something that passes between" the two at- oms. Peeling the presence of the other atom, the first atom moves towards its affinity, voluntarily, and just as you move your arm or walk— the atom prob- ably exerting a push upon the ether which must be to the atom or particle what the air is to the wing of the bird, or the water to the fin of the fish'. But there is another cause of motion, as we have seen— the mu- tual pull of the attracting atoms. And what manner or kind of energy is it that thus "draws" or "pulls" the other atomi It cannot be electricity, or magnetism, for those forces, as we have seen, are produced by a rate of vibration oc- casioned by the Mind-Power in the atoms themselves — therefore we must go back to the antecedent force, which is Mind-Power, and attribute to it the drawing or pulling force which moves the atoms toward each other. That this attracting or pulling force is in oper- ation between the particles of matter, there can be no doubt. No two atoms of matter are in absolute touch with each other— there is always a distance be- tween them — a space which thus separates them — which never can be traversed or overcome. There 38 MIND-POWER eeeras to be an indivitliiality in these tiny particles which, although allowing them to form combina- tions, nevertheless prevents absolute blending or amalgamation. There is always a "keep your dis- tance," or "thus far and no further" principle in Nature which holds every particle of matter indi- vidual and alone. Every ton, electron, atom, and molecule of matter is alone, and separated even from its closest affinity by a "touch me not" circle of in- fluence, which is also mentative in its nature, in my opinion. Even the hardest diamond, or piece of ' steel, is composed of molecules close together bai yet separated' by this circle of influence; and ever; molecule is composed of several atoms betwei which the same law operates; and every atom : composed of many ions or electrons, which have dis- tances between them. So true is Nature in her j portions and laws, that scientists assert that in th( hundreds of ions of which the tiniest atom is eon] posed (and which atom is invisible to the sight 1 reason of its smallness) there is a "distance ba( tween" observed and maintained by these particleaj which bears the same proportion to their sizes thai the distance between the planets of our solar syi bears to their particular sizes— in other words, th&'y the ions composing an atom are akin to a minut^ solar system, each ion being attracted to the othetf and yet ' ' kept at its distance, ' ' the combined pull a push of the desire and the "keep off," respective! MENTATIVE INDUCTION tending to cause them to circle round and round each other. And what is the force that traverses the space across which the particles themselves cannot travel? It is not electricity, or magnetism, for those forces are but the results of these circling and vibrations, and not their cause— and moreover science has not discovered electricity or magnetism between the atoms. And what holds the atoms and molecules of matter together, or rather in proximity— what causes their propinquity? Science answers: chemical affin- ity, and cohesion! But these terms are merely names, and science does not explain the nature of the force employed, — but it knows that it is not elec- tricity or magnetism, or any other known physical force. I answer: It is Mind-Power exerted over the intervening spaces by Telementation that attracts and holds these atoms and molecules in their places, and yet keeps them "at their distance." Mind- Power, the existence of which in the atoms was postu- lated by Haeckel, and which always has been taught by the occultists. And, so finding that telementation exists in the elementary forms of substance and physical things, I am justified in looking for its presence and manifes- tation from that point of the scale upward. And I believe that the vibrations of mental states, feelings, desires, etc., are transmitted from one mind to an- other by telementation, arousing similar states, feel- ings, desires, etc., in the receiving mind along the 40 MIND-POWEK lines of what w« call "induction" in physical science. But before considering induction, I would ask you to consider the following quotation from Flammarion, the eminent French scientist, who says: "We sum up, therefore, our preceding observa-, tions by the conclusion that one mind can act at a di&'J tance upon another, without the habitual medium ofl words, or any other visible means of communication. It appears to us altogether unreasonable to reject this conclusion if we accept the facts. This conclu- sion will be abundantly demonstrated. There is nothing unscientific, nothing romantic in admitting that an idea can influence a brain from a distance. The action of one human being upon another, from a distance, is a scientific fact ; it is as certain as the existence of Paris, of Napoleon, of Oxygen, or of Sirius." He further states: "There can be no doubt that our psychical force creates a movement in the ether, which transmits itself afar like all movements ] of ether, and becomes perceptible to brains in har^!- niony with our own. Tbe transformation of a psy- J chic action into an ethereal movement, and the ra-l verse, may be analagous to what takes place on a J telephone, where the receptive plate, which is idea tical with the plate at tbe other end, reconstructs thi sonorous movement transmitted, not hy means of Kound, but by electricity." As I have said, I account for the transference of mental states, etc., by the theory of "Mentative In- duction," which I believe to be the theory more MENTATIVE INDUCTION 41 fully meeting the requirements of the case than any of the ' ' dual-mind ' ' or similar hypotheses. The term "Mentative Induction" will be readily understood by those familiar with the phenomena of electricity. The word "induction" comes from the word "in- duce," which means "to influence," In electrical science the word induction is used in the sense of "the process whereby one body possessing magnetic or electrical properties reproduces that property in another body without direct contact." In text-books on physaes a simple experiment is often given students to illustrate magnetic induc- tion, as follows: A magnet is so placed that its poles project over the edge of a table upon which it rests. An iron nail, or steel needle, is held a little distance below the magnet so that it will not actually touch the latter but will be near enough to be magnetized by "induction," that is, without direct contact. The nail, or needle, will have an induced property of magnetism produced by the current from the mag- net, and will support another nail, or needle, by direct contac^. This induced magnetism renders the nail, or needle, a magnet, possessing all the properties of the original magnet, so long as the current flows. And, just as a magnet may communicate its prop- erties by induction so may an electrified body com- municate electrical states in another body without actual contact. The text-books are full of examples to illustrate this law. The theory accepted by Science is that the induction is the action of the elec- 42 MIND-POWER trical current through the ether, by waves of vibrig tion. And I hold that jast as the vibratory-waves o magnetism and electricity pass through the ether am produce similar properties in other bodies by meaoi of induction, so do the vibratory waves of Mind^ Power, from one mind, pass through the ether, and by induction set up similar mental states in the minds of other persons within the "field of in- duction." I hold that just as the "excitement" of the par^ tides of matter (" excitement ' ' being mere! "aroused activity") may manifest an energy th» may be transmitted to another object, removed i space from the first, and then may arouse by induftj tion a similar state of "excitement" in the particlffl of the second object— so may the "excitement" the mind among the brain cells of the animal or pe^ son be transmitted by telementation to another b mal or person in whom, by mentative inductio: fiimilar state of excitement is generated or indu I hold that there is the closest possible relationships between motive energj' and emotive energy^in f that both are forms of the same thing. I shall n^ attempt to go into details regarding telementation t mentative induction at this place, for the reason t I shall bring out the principle in detail, from time t time, by pointing out the manifestations and activi ties of these principles. But I wish you to fix i your mind the elementary principles of Mind-I in its phases of telementation or "long-distance ( MENTATIVE INDUCTION 43 feet, ' ' and of mentative indnotion, or the process by which "like begets like" on the mental plane as on the physical. The machinery of the mentative proc- esses and activities being hidden from physical sight, we may understand these processes and activi- ties better by using the illustration of correspond- ing physical processes and activities— particularly when the correspondences are more than mere re- semblances, being operations of the same underlying natural laws. For this reason, the illustration or symbol of wire less- telegraphy will help us to under- stand telementation ; and electrical or magnetic in- duction will help us to understand the phenomena of mentative induction. And, now let us pass on to a consideration of the activities and manifestations of Mind-Power, in its phases of telementation and mentative induction, in living creatures, beginning with the lower animals. CHAPTEE ly. MENTAL MAGIC IN ANIMAL LIFE, I bave spoken of the manifestation of Mind-Powejfl among the atoms and particles of matter, whereb; the tiny corpuscles hecome aware of each other's proximity, and whereby they move voluntarily : response to the desire aroused by the attraction oi^ affinity of the other atoms; and whereby they alstt exert a pull or drawing power on the other atoms,! and respond to the same attracting force of the othe^ particle. Ascending the scale, we find the crystalffi^ building up their forms by drawing material fron^ the fluids in which they are immersed, and then build ing upon a set pattern and style, as truly as doei the builder among the animals or among men. Passing on to the low forms of animal life, we finc( tiny life-forms in the slime of the ocean-bed, whidi are apparently no more than tiny drops of glue- cells without a nucleus— which nevertheless i^erfon the functions of all organic forms, being born, takii nutrition, assimilating, eliminating, growing old, ani finally dying, after reproducing their kind by grow and division. But, the point that most concerns i is that although these creatures have no senses, ( even rudimentary sense organs, they are aware i IN ANIMAL LIFE 45 the approach of other creatures, and of their food. In some way they hecoine ' ' aware ' ' of these things — how, man does not know. Moreover they are pos- sessed of the power of motion, and exert their will in the direction of moving from place to place. Some of these forms of life, when viewed imder even a strong microscope are seen to move by gliding from place to place, apparently at will, and with no per- eeptihle employment of organs of motion such as false-feet, fins, etc. They seem simply to move by pure will. How do they do this! How do they be- come aware of the approach of other creatures, with- out' sense-organs, or the rudiments of the samef It seems that mentation and telementation are mani- fested here. Rising higher in the scale, we find many insects seemingly endowed with the faculty of becoming aware of the presence of other insects at distances so great as to render the ordinary senses of no avail. Students of ant-life relate many remarkable in- stances of this kind. Ants at a distance seem to be able to communicate with their fellows, summoning assistance, and directing the movements of ant- armies. A professor in an American university has related that upon one occasion he met with an in- stance of telementation on the part of a colony of ants. He stated that he had placed a breeding cage of ants inside of a stone house, the latter having walls sixteen inches thick, "with no windows and but one door, the latter being so sealed and protected that 46 MIND-POWER ! for even a tiny ant to enter it| crevices. When approaching this house for the pan pose of studying the progress of his ant colony, would notice that other ants had collected on the o' side of the walls, and were running about trying t get through the stone blocks. Then he tried the c periment of moving his ant-eage from one part < the house to another — tirst placing it beside one wall and then another, and so on, trying all positions s places. In each case, after each change, when 1 would emerge from the house he would find the o side ants grouped on the stone wall as near to 1 inside ants as possible, changing their position froi^ &ide to side according to the position of the aut-cagl inside of the house. Many other instances of the poaj session of the power of telemeotation on the part c ants have been noted. Another authority relates that a pair of foreig] moths were brought to England. There were no otheJ moths of that kind in the country. One of them, th^ male, escaped in a part of England many miles dim tant from the place to which the remaining moth, female, was taken. The female moth was placed i a. tiny cage for security, and then set out-of-doon during the night. In the morning, much to the entoij mologist's surprise, he found the male moth clingic to the tiny cage which contained the female. It v the same male, undoubtedly, for in size, coloring, b pearanee, etc., it corresponded exactly ; besides wbi(3 there was not another moth of that particular speeia IN ANIMAL LIFE 47 known lo be in England. Similar experiments have been conducted with insects, and there is held to be ample grounds for believing that insects attract their mates by means of some naental power beyond the range of the ordinary senses. Schools of fish seem to have some method of in- stantaneous communication between the individual fishes composing them, for the entire school moves from side to side, turning sharply, etc., as if it were possessed of but a single mind. Some scientists have held that many of the lower animals who live in groups, schools, etc., have mental relations similar to those of the colonies of cells which seem to have a common mind. There is undoubtedly communica- tion over distance of the cells of the blood in animals, and the phenomenon of the school of fish, just noted, may be analogous — at any rate, there is some sort of distant mental communication between the individual fishes. The same phenomenon is noted among flocks of birds, as many know who have witnessed the flights of large numbers of birds of different kinds. Wild animals undoubtedly have some subtle sense whereby they find each other when separated by long distances. The return of cats and dogs who have been carried miles from home— and the return of birds to their original places, after their migrations, may have a similar explanation— there may be subtle vibra- tions from places, people, and objects, which the ani- mals sense at a distance. That animals exert a mental control over their 48 MIND-POWER fellows by some form of manifestation of " Power, there seems to be but little doubt among t familiar with the ways of animals, particularly oi wild animals. There is a manifestation of something besides physical strength and prowess on the part of the animal— ^/iere is a mental something displayed! A. E. McFarlane, in a recent magazine article on the subject of "Bad Aniuials," says: "Put two male baboons into the same cage, and they will open their mouths, show all their teeth, and 'blow' at each other. But one of thera, even though he may possess the uglier dentition, will blow with a difference, with an inward shakiness that marks him for the under dog at once. No test of battJe is needed at all. It is the satie with the big eats. Put two, or four, or a dozen lions in together, and they also, probably with- out a single contest, will soon discover which one of them possesses the mtttle of the master. Thereafter, he takes the choice of the meat; if be chooses, the rest shall not even begin to eat until he has finished; he goes first to the fresh pan of water. In short, he is 'king of the cage.' " Among the animals we find many instances of the power of "charming" or "fascinating," both of wbicb I hold to be but varying forms of manifesta- tion of Mind-Power in the direction of powerfully influencing the imagination, desire, or will of another by mentative induction. This mental fascination, among the animals, manifests along two lines, viz., U) along the lines of desire operating in the direc-. IN ANIMAL LIFE tion of sex manifeBtatioii, such as the wiimmg of mates, etc. ; and (2) along the lines of will operating in the direction of overcoming the prey of the animal, such as the "charming" of birds by serpents, or of smaller animals by tigers, etc. These cases are capa- ble of liberal illustration and proof, and natural his- tory affords ns full authority for accepting the same. I recently read an account of a naturalist, who re- lated that one day in a tropical country be noticed a winged insect circling around and around a scorpion. After a bit, the insect made a series of desperate plunges at the scorpion, as if in a frantic desire to terminate the charm; the scorpion soon striking down the insect, and afterwards devouring it. It is related by travelers that when one comes suddenly in the presence of a lion, tiger, or leopard, his legs seem paralyzed, and the eyes of the beast seem to exert a peculiar fascination and power over him. I have seen a mouse manifest the same emotion in the presence of a eat; and the same is true of a rat in the presence of a ferret, or similar enemy. On the other hand, every observer has noticed the won. derful "charming" power that animals exert over others of their kind, of the opposite sex. If you have ever witnessed the courting of a bird, during the mating season, you will have a keen sense of the reality of the power employed. One of the birds, and it may be either a male or female, will be seen to actually "fascinate" or "charm" the one of the op- posite ses, the latter lying still with quivering wings, 50 MIND-POWER and a helpless expression in its eyes. When com- pared with the attitude of the same bird, when charmed by a serpent, the resemblance will be striking. I have before me a book written in 1847, which re- lates quite a number of instances of the operation of mental fascination among the lower animals. I will give you a few of them, condensed, and abbreviated. Prof. Silliman is quoted as stating that one day, while crossing the Hudson Eiver, at Catskill, he passed along a narrow road with the river on one side, and a steep bank, covered by bushes, on the other side. His attention was attracted by the sight of a number of birds, of a variety of species, who were flying for- ward and backward across the road, turning and wheeling in strange gyrations, and with noisy chirp- ings, seemingly centering over a particular point of the road. Upon examination the professor found an enormous blacksnake, partly coiled, and partly erect, showing an appearance of great animation, with his eyes flashing like a brilliant diamond, and his tongue darting in and out. The snake was the center of the motion of the birds. The professor adds that al- though the snake disappeared in the bushes, fright- ened at the approach of the men, still the birds seemed too dazed to escape, and perched on the near- by bushes, evidently awaiting the reappearance of their "charmer." The same book relates an incident of a man in Pennsylvania, who saw a large blacksnake charming IN ANIMAL LIFE 51 a bird. The bird described gradually decreasing circles around the snake, at the same time uttering piteous cries. It seemed almost ready to drop into the jaws of the snake, when the man drove off the latter, when the bird arose with a song of joy. Another case is related of a ground-squirrel, which was observed running to-and-fro between a creek and a large tree a few yards distant. The squirrel's fur was badly ruffled, and he exhibited fright and dis- tress. Investigation disclosed the head and neck of a rattlesnake, protruding from the bole of the tree, and pointing directly at the squirrel. The poor squirrel at last gave up the fight, and yielding to the fascination, laid himself down with his head very close to the snake's mouth. The snake then pro- ceeded to swallow the squirrel, when his meal was interrupted with a cut of a carriage whip in the hands of the observer, and the squirrel, released from the spell, ran briskly away. Dr. Good is quoted as having made quite a study of the curious fascinating power that rattlesnakes mani- fest over small animals, such as birds, squirrels, young liares, etc. He relates that these animals seem inca- pable of drawing their eyes away from those of the enake, and, although seemingly struggling to get away, they still gradually approach the snake, as though urged toward him, or attracted by a power superior to their natural instincts. He goes on to Btate that the animal creeps nearer and nearer, until at last it is drawn into the serpent's mouth, which 52 MIND-POWEK has been open all the while to receive it. Barrow is quoted as relating many instances of t kind, known to peasants in all parts of the wod Valliant, the African traveler, tells of an instai in which he witnessed a shrike in the very act jj being fascinated by a large snake at a distance, ' fiery eyes and open mouth of which were gradui^ approaching the bird, the latter manifesting conv sive trembling and uttering piercing shrieks of c tress. The traveler shot the snake, but upon pieki up the bird, he found it dead— killed either by fear! the power of the serpent, or perhaps by the violq breaking of the spell. He measured the distaj between the snake and the bird and found it to J three and one-half feet. A case is related in one of the early reports of { Philosophical Society, in which a mouse was put ii cage with a viper, by way of an experiment, mouse at first seemed greatly agitated, which i was followed by a condition of fascination, the moi drawing nearer and nearer to the viper which '. mained motionless witli distended jaws, and glist^ ing eyes. The mouse, finally, actually entered 1 jaws of the viper, and was devoured. Bruse, the African traveler, relates that the i lives of an interior tribe seem to be protected \ nature against the bite of scorpions aud vip* They are said to handle these creatures fearlesa the latter seeming to be robbed of their power of 3 i^taace. He states that the creatures seem to s IN ANIMAL LIFE 53 the moment they are touched by these natives, and are sometimes so exhausted by the invisible fascinat- ing power that they perish shortly. He says, "I have constantly observed tliat however lively the viper was before, upon being seized by any of these barbarians, be seemed as if taken with siukness and feebleness, and frequently would shut his eyes, and would never turn his mouth toward the arm that held him." Personally, I have seen a somewhat similar case. When I was a boy, in Maryland, I knew of a farm- hand who was called a "snake-charmer." How he did it, I never could find out, but he would exert some kind of influence over all kinds of snakes, poisonous ones included, and would cause them to remain fasci- nated until with a quick movement he would grab them by the neck with his bare hands. This man gen- erally carried a few pet snakes around with him for company. They seemed perfectly contented, and would poke their heads up from out of his pockets, in order to look at some one else with whom he might be talking. The negroes on the farm had a mortal terror of this man, and would walk a couple of miles rather than pass by his house. The power of charming animals, dogs and wild- beasts is undoubtedly possessed by some men, in varying degrees. And nearly everyone has known of men who could "charm" the wildest horses, as if by magic. I have read of some burglars who seemed able to quiet the most ferocious watch-dogs. The MIND-POWEE Swedish writer, Lindecrantz, tells of certain nativi of Lapland who are possessed of some process charming dogs, to such an extent that they have bi known to cow the most savage great-hound, him to fly from them- with all the signs of abject feai Many of my readers have seen, or heard of, the horBJ "whisperers" found in various parts of the connti who win shut themselves in a stable with a fieri horse, and by "whispering" to him will manage tame him completely, and make him passive to thei| will. There are cases recorded in which men who ha^ been "charmed" by a snake, have afterwards g in their experience. One of these cases relates the man was walking in his garden when he denly came into the presence of a snake whose ejt gleamed in a peculiar manner. He found himself 1 cinated, as if by a spell, and unable to withdraw eyes from those of the creature. The snake, stated afterward, seemed to begin to increase mensely in size, and assumed, in rapid succession, mixture of brilliant colors. He grew dizzy and woi Lave fallen in the direction of the snake, had not wife approached, throwing her arms about him, i breaking the spell. Another similar case is relata in which a man found his companion standing s) on the road, with his eyes fixed inteutly upon tho8| of a large rattlesnake which was regarding him edly with gleaming eyes, scintillating in its rail head. The man was leaning toward the snake, 3 iave fallen toward it in a few moments. IN ANIMAL LIFE 55 ■was crying, feebly, but piteously, "He will bite me! He will kill me!" "Sure, he will," replied his friend, "why don't you run away? Why are you staying here?" But the man seemed perfectly dazed, and distracted, and couid not answer. The eonipanion finally picked up a stick and struck at the snake, which glided away savagely. The fas- cinated man was sick for several hours afterward. "When I was a boy, I had a somewhat similar per- sonal experience, although not nearly so serious. Walking one day among a grove of trees belonging to my grandfather, I fouud myself standing staring intently at a snake about two feet long whose eyes glistened like large diamonds. In a moment I ceased to see anything but those awful eyes which glistened and displayed all the prismatic colors to my fright- ened glance. It lasted but a moment, however, for the snake glided away, seemingly as anxious to get away from me as I was to part company with him. T cannot say wliether the spell would have been broken by me, if the snake had not moved away— perhaps it might, or perhaps not. All that I remem- ber now, after the passage of thirty-five years or more, is that I did not seem to feel fear after the first shock, my feeling and emotion seemingly being that of great wonder, and amazement arising from what I saw in those eyes. But I have said enough regarding the manifesta- tion of mentative induction among tlie lower animals. There are many interesting instances of this sort, scattered through the pages of books on aniioaV \vlft. 56 MIND-POWEE and nearly everyone who has lived in the woods, , among wild life knows of many cases illustrating f&j iact which have cnme under his own observation, f Lave mentioned these features of the subject mew for the purpose of showing you that we have to c with a general natural principle which manifef throughout all life. This book has to deal with i manifestation of this force among men. But in e ing this chapter, I wonid ask you to notice the l semblance between the manifestation of the foa among the animals, on the one hand, and among n kind on the other. The animals employ the force for two purposj '', e.,the captivating of mates, and the capture o And how do men and women use it? Along sir lines I Yes, I mean this, as startling as it may i pear. For is not the use of fascination, in the c tion of attracting the other sex akin to the sex-chaq ing noticed among the birds and animals? An^ not the use of fascination in the direction of influx ing men and women along the lines of business,;] personal interest, akin to the "charming" of pfl by wild animals, serpents, etc.? You may see tH evolution simply changes the form of use in this s other natural qualities, and power— the force 5 power remaining the same, under all of the chanj And, does it not become important for us to i stand, study, and guard ourselves against th ployment of such an elemental force as this, manifests aXuug all planes of life, from lowe8| higheatl CHAPTEE V. MENTAL MAGIC IN HUMAN LIFE. Passing on from the lower animal life to the plane of human life, we 6nd on all sides many manifesta- tions of Mind-Power along the lines of telementa- tion and mentative induction. Now, as never be- fore, is this mighty force being em])loyed for worthy or unworthy purposes in everyday human life. On the one hand we hear and see it being used for the curing of the ills to which the flesh is heir, many of which ills, by-the-way, having been brought on by improper methods of thinking ; by the adverse sug- gestions of advertisements describing diseases, urg- ing patent medicines, etc. ; as well as by the igno- rance of the masses of people regarding the effect of negative thoughts and depressing auto-suggestions. We also see Mind-Power employed through the chan- nel of suggestion, being exerted to bring about bet- ter and more positive mental states among those who have been manifesting negative mental conditions. "We also witness the exploitation of Mind-Power, un- der various names by numerous cults, sects, and or- ganizations, through many schools, teachers, and publications— under many different names, and backed up by various ' ' authorities. ' ' We also see the 58 MIND-POWER same force being improperly used in hypnotic ex] tions, and in other forms ealeuiated to weaken 1 wills and positive mentality of other persons. Bura is all the same power— no matter how used. Like a other natural force, it may either Tie used for 1 service of mankind, or for its hurt. I would caution the student of this work fr<^ being misled by tlie many names and teims used 1 teachers and writers describing some form of Mia Power, and which the said persons claim to "something new," or "something different" — it"! always the same old thing— as old as creation, i just as universal as is electricity or light. "When yfl have become acquainted with the fundamental pri ciples underlying this great natural force, be able to recognize it, always, beneath its many c guises, garbs, titles and formulas. The same i Mind-Power, you will-find it. Whether in the form of personal magnetism, j the subtle fascinating charm of one mind over t other— that form of mental force that influences 1 if by an irresistible charm; that bewitches, allun charms, enchants, attracts; or in what has called fascination, in which one person is able to | fluence another by exercising a powerful inflaei upon his or her affections, emotions, passions .jj thouglits ; or in some of the other similar fonn&g the exercise of an unseen, inexplicable influence -am others; or in the phenomena known as "psycly ogism," etc., with which all are more or less famlli^ IN HUJtAN LIFE 59 or in the phenomena attendant upon the revival of the ancient oeeultism in the last twenty years, under various names and forms, the fundamental principle of which consists in forms of mental "treatments" of one kind or another, present or "absent"; or in the phenomena of what has been called "sugges- tion," of which we hear so much in scientific circles; or in the various forms of mind or faith cures, of "which BO much has been heard of late years, and upon ■which a number of religions and cults have been bnilt; or in the repulsive forms of mental influence, known as Black Magic, etc., etc. — we have the same fundamental principle, and manifestation of some phase of the general phenomena of Mind-Power. The same cause is under all its manifestations— "good" or "bad," "black" or "white." It is all the operation of the one great law, or principle of Nature. We see on all sides men who seem to exert a won- derful and mysterious mental influence upon others — npon those associated with them, or upon the pub- lic mind. Leaders spring into prominence, appar- ently owing their power to some mysterious influence over the minds and wills of others. Some attain power and position — others attain wealth and social state, by reason of some inner force. When we meet certain people, we become at once impressed by a something about them that makes its power and in- finence felt by us. They seem to radiate a peculiar force that bends our wills captive, and causes us to 60 MIND-POWER fall in with flieir desires, to a greater or lesser extent. We know tliat when some people enter a room, they bring with them an indefinable influence that becomes apparent to all. Certain houses and stores have at- mospheres of their own, which are perceptible to those entering them. Some places are depressing to ail who live or do business in them. Some salesmen impart a sense of confidence and trust at once, while others cause the reverse. Some persons attract — others repel. Some people seem to have a way of influencing the minds of others with whom they come in contact, that these others will rally around the self-conal tuted leader, and thus oults, religion, and "isms' are formed. We all know how far a strong netie" leader may carry his followers. We ha' seen many instances of it during the past twenti years. People have followed some of these leadei like a flock of sheep. And they will always do until the underlying principle is understood and pi pie protect themselves. And all of these things go to form part of the pi nomena of Mind-Power. Surely the subject is woi investigating. Now, as never before, the subject of the mys! forces of Mind-Power is attracting the attention the majority of thinking people. In ages past, tl knowledge of the subject was possessed by but tl few, who jealously guarded it from the minds of tl masses, the latter obtaining but scraps of the hidd( l_j IN HUMAN LIFE 61 knowledge, and that adulterated with the grossest superstition and attributed to the particular form of primitive religion prevailing iu the particular place, at that particular time. And even now, notwith- standing the popular interest in the subject, but very few have arrived at a scientific understanding of the matter, and the majority take their knowledge of the New Psycholog;^ in the capsule of dogma and theory advanced by some particular cult or sect. Mind-Power has been known to the race, in one form or another, from time before history was writ- ten. In the earliest records we find many traces of it among all peoples. And, even today, it is known and practiced, in a more or less Ignorant manner, by all races, from the people of the highest civilization known to us, down to the ignorant African Bushmen. Many have been turned away from a serious con- eideration of the subject by the fact that many of its forms have been accompanied by the grossest super- stition, and the most absurd repulsive ceremonies. They have failed to see that underlying all the ex- travagant ideas and methods of application, there was to be found a fundamental law of Nature, as real and as constant as any other natural law or force. And, inasmuch as this law is in constant operation, and all are subject to its influence and effect, does it not become the duty of intelligent people to ac- quaint themselves with this mighty force or law, in order that they may understand its workings; take advantage of its benefits; and protect themselves 62 MIND-POWER against its misuse? Believing that there is but one answer to this question, this book has been written in order to throw light on a subject commonly left iaj ■ the dark, or at least in the twilight of the human t derstanding. I am fully aware of the fact that many ingeniota theories have been advanced by modern writers f tempting to account for the phenomena of Min Power. But all students of the subject are awan that these theories, cleverly as they have been t signed, are more or less self-contradiotory, -and maiy a reader has thrown aside the subject in disgust aft* a vain attempt at reconciling the opposing view And to make the matter worse, various cults i sects and "isms" have sprung into existence, I promulgators and leaders of which have used the sM cepted phenomena of Mind-Power as a foundatid^ upon which to build airy structures of religion, phi osophy, and metaphysics. Many of these cults have practically claimed i monopoly of the great natural force, and have i sumed the right to be the sole custodians of 1 secrets thereof, alleging that they have the ' real article— all others are base imitators," notwit| standing that all of them show that they have i rived at at least a working knowledge of the fon and are obtaining results— each obtaining about t same percentage of successes, notwithstanding 1 fact that each denies the other the fact of possess^ the information and right to use it. Is it not ap|K IN HUMAN LIFE cnt to any intelligent observer that they are all using the same great natural force, in spite of their eon- flieting theories— and that their results are obtained in spite of their theories, rather than because of themT In a former work, which has served as a basid for the present one, I grouped the phenomena of the manifestations of Mind-Power under the genera! term of "Mental Magic," tie use of the term being justified by the following facts : The word ' ' Magic' ' was derived from the Persian word "mag," mean- ing "a priest." The Persian priests were "won- der-workers, " or " magicians, ' ' the latter word being derived from the word "Magi," the name of the hereditary caste of priests of ancient Persia and Medea. This Magian order, or esoteric cult of the Zoroastrian priesthood, represented the cen- ter of ancient occultism at that period of the world's history, and its influence was felt in all parts of the world, and continues down to this time. So highly were its members respected and considered, that the term "Wise Men," and "Magi" were syn- onymous. The "Three Wise Men" mentioned as appearing at the birth of Christ {Matt. II) were known as the Magi, or "wise men from the East.'* From the word "Magi" came the term "Magic," which Webster has defined as follows: "The hid- den wisdom supposed to be possessed by the Magi ; relating to the occult powers of nature; mastery of secret forces in nature; having extraordinary prop- Gi MIND-POWER erties; seemingly requiring more than hutpan pow- er, etc." So we may consider the word "magic" to mean: "mastery of the occult forces of nature," the term indicating the existence of such forces, and the possibility of the mastery or control of them. And in ancient times, "magic" was always beJieved to be connected in some way with the use of the mind, particularly in its aspects of will, de- sire, and imagination. Effects were believed to re- sult because some magician either "willed it"; "de- sired it to be"; or else "imagined it would occur"; — in each ease the result happening as a materiali- zation of the mental conception or wish. "Wish- ing" was always believed to be a magical operation, and if we examine a "wish" we see it is composed of the use of the imagination, coupled with desire, and backed up with will. And so, I felt that I was justified in using the term "Mental Magic" in con- sidering the various phenomena resulting from the manifestation of Mind-Power. But by the use of the term "Mental Magic," I meant more than the mere mental control of the "occult forces of nature." I meant that these "oc- cult forces of nature" are themselves mental in character and nature, and that their control or mas- tery means simply the conscious use, control, mas- tery, and application of certain mental forces, called "occult," that are possessed by the race, and are used by all, either consciously or unconseiously. The mastery or control of these forces, means IN H fJMAN LIFE 65 sue may leam to "knowingly" apply that which all have been using blindiy and unknowingly. And as knowledge and intelligent use always means Power, the knowledge of the principles of these forces, and the consequent intelligent application of them brings power to those acquiring it. While it is true that that which is known as "magic" has always been mixed up with a mass of credulity, superstition, and meaningless forms and ceremonies, the close student will see that these excrescences and appendages necessarily arose from the superstitions of the mass of the people, and to the various forms of primitive religions that the race has fostered during the procession of the cen- turies and ages. The magicians were nearly always jiriests in the old days, that being the only career open to them, and one that enabled them to erect the barrier of primitive religious rites between their wisdom and the ignorance of the race. The careful student will be able to trace the pos- session of something real and true always mani- festing among the various forms and ceremonies of the various ancient cults. There was always to be found an esoteric or inner cult, within the mass of the exoteric or ignorant priesthood and followers of the temples. There was always the light of Truth burning in the holy of holies of the temples, for those who were sufficiently advanced to worship at its shrine. And, among the dim records of the ancient mys- I 66 iui:;:.-POWER teries that have come down to us from ancient India, Egypt, Persia, Chaldea, Babylon, Greece, and Rome, and the other old centers of civilization and culture] we may always find the underlying principle of tlM existence of some mighty force connected with thy human mind— or more particularly, the will— thaj was at the bottom of the mysteries, and magic, and miracles. Back of ail the ceremonies, rites, and i cantations was the esoteric idea that the will wa tlie real force employed under the mask of incantafl tion and rites assumed to impress the imagination! and minds of the populace. Back of the amulet an charm was the working of the will of the persoi wearing them, which was called into effect by thd faith or imagination {a real power and not a fanejB as many believe) of the man ignorant of the rea] force. As the writer on this subject in the Encyelopjedid Britannica has truly said (although he was norant of the truth underlying the silly forms) a "There being an evident relation between an objei and the thought of it, it becomes one of the chiefl practices of the sorcerer to try to make things hap; pen by thinking about them." And the same writed in another place speaks of: "The element in Magi<j not depending upon 'spirits,' depends upon imag ined powers and correspondences in nature, which the adepts avail themselves in order to diai I cover bidden knowledge, and to act upon the world 1 nround them by means beyond the ordinary capa? IN HQMAN LIFE bilities of men. Thus by mere effort of will," etc., etc. And the student who will look under the surface, and read between the lines, will be able to see the evidence of ' ' Mental Magic ' ' underlying all the forms of magic, mystery, and wonder-working mir- acles of all times and ages, and people — of all kinds, character or name. Behind all the masks he will see the features of this use of the Mind-Power of man — always the same, in spite of the fantastic and gro- tesque masks and trappings. 1 could fill pages with recitals of the many dis- guises under which Mind-Power masquerades, but 1 must hurry on the telling "bow," and I can do no more than to hastily call your attention to the many evidences of the use of this power in all parts of the world, and in all times. The ancient mysteries of Egypt, Greece, etc., were systems of forms and ceremonies, wherein were hidden the use of Mind- Power. The sick were brought to the temples and healed. The minds of the populace were filled with the thoughts of victory impressed upon them by the will and subtle suggestions of the priests. "What we know in these days as "Mental Suggestions," in- cluding that which we now call "affirmations" or "auto-suggestions," were understood and skillfully nsed by the priests, or magicians, in order to con- trol the people. And it must not be for a moment supposed that these forces were used for evil purposes. On the MIND-POWER contrary, the priests were the real governing classi — the powers behind the throne— and they felt tl responsibility of power, and endeavored by tb knowledge of the occult forces of the mind to the people in the right path. Of course, selfish there have always been, and we hear of cases i hack in the early days of history where this powi was prostituted for evil and selfish purposes, as power is always capable of wrong application. In 'all ages we learn of the healing of the sii by mental power, for Mental Healing presents unbroken line from the earliest days down to present, concealed often under fancy trappings, the same in principle always. And what we cs *' Mental Suggestion" has always been in force the hands of the' leaders of the race to influence, i good or evil, those under them. The great leade; of men have always been adept in the use of Min< Power, although many of them have never suspect) the sources of their power. To many it may seezn almost sacrilegious to that the highest uses of Mind-Power, such as ing the race up to higher ideas, aims and aeeoi plishments— to success, happiness and health merely higher forms of the same force that is uf by the ignorant and repulsive savage in his and dark practice. But it is true. Mind-Pow< is like any other great natural force— it is abc I good or evil. It is neither good nor evil, but Lbe used for either. This is true of electricity, stfii siaiA rites IN HUMAN LIFE explosives and every other natural force. And we miglit as well look this fact squarely in the face, smd govern ourselves accordingly. The same force that is used by the modern "heal- er," when he or she "treats" a patient for health, success, or some other desirable quality, is the same used by the black Voodoo; the Congo sorcerer; the Saiem witch; the Hawaiian "Kahuna," who prays people into sickness and death; the medicine-man of the American Indian, with his charms and in- cantations; the wizards and enchanters of the Mid- die Ages; the practitioner of "adverse treatments," or "malicious mental magnetism," of the modem cults. The same force pervades all, just as the same life- force flows through the saint and sinner; the angel and demon; the dove and the serpent; the lamb and the tiger — Nature's one force through all. And just as Mind-Power is brought into operation through the prayers of the faithful or all religions, before their shrines, images and holy objects, so may the force be brought into operation through the fetiches, conjurations, enchantments, charms, spells and devil-worships of the ignorant and depraved minds. The secret is this: The power does not come from the supposed source, but from within the mind of the man employing it. And, still more startling, to the uninitiated, is this statement, which is equally true: The power of the mind of the person affected is the real cause of the effect, rather than the power of the mind of the supposed causer, r 70 MIND-POWER the latter merely calling into operation the power 1 of the mind of the person affected. Passing from the past to the present age, we see in greater use than ever this wonderful Mind- Power. No longer the property of the few, the in- I'ormation has filtered out among the masses,j through various sources, and we see the force in utte'J on all sides. Often, the persons using it have not'l the true knowledge of its real nature, and such per-T sons often involve themselves in a terrible whirl-1 pool of effects by reason of a selfish and hase em-^J plojTuent of this power. Many are playing with this, force like children playing with dynamite. It is one of the purposes of this book to call the^l attention of such people to the nature of the foreej they are employing, and the possible, nay, probabIe»3 results of a misuse of it. Not that they are pun^l ished for such misuse, but rather by reason of ILj Blaek magicians are invariably caught in the meshe*! of their own nets— are entangled in the psychic ma*J chinery of their own manufacture— and are blow up by their own psychic high explosives. In concluding this little consideration of the i ject, I would call the attention of the student to thel fact that now, for the first time in the history o£j the world, Mind-Power is being employed for i thering commercial aims and ends. Mental tn ments for wealth and success are commonly know and advertised; instructions in the use of suggei tion for commercial purposes are furnished 1 IN HUMAN LIFE 71 personally, and in correspondence courses ; the lawp and principles are explained, partially, at least, in books written for the instruction of those selling or advertising goods, and otherwise soliciting the patronage of the public. It is true that the few strong men in business life have always made use of this force, consciously or unconsciously, but never before has it been taught generally as a part of a business education. It has been reserved for America to recognize the force, and to boldly apply it in this way, i. e., to the mak- ing of dollars. And other countries are fast fall- ing in line. And in view of this fact, is it not time that those who know of the real nature, principles, and laws of this force should give to the world their knowledge, that the race may know with what they are dealing — and may be enabled to extract the good from it by proper use, and, seeing the evil possibili- ties of improper use, may avoid such prostitution of one of nature's greatest forces. Many students of the occult have sought to keep from the general public a. knowledge of the funda- mental principles of the great law of nature under- lying the phenomena of Mind-Power. They have claimed that it was "dangerous" for people gener- ally to know that such a force existed and could be used. They have held that such knowledge should be carefully guarded by the few, and that its very existence should be denied to the many. This may have been good reasoning in the earlier 72 MIND-POWEE days of the world, when the masses were grosBlyl ignorant, and when the only knowledge was locked J up in the minds of the caete of priests and other ■ leaders of the race. But the argument no longer ' applies, for the general intelligence of the race has refused to allow any locked doors in the Tem- ple of Knowledge, and has insisted that all doors ■ be thrown open to thera. The result has been that J a considerable body of occult knowledge has been 1 opened to the gaze of the public, and they ai"e clam- oring for more. Much of the knowledge possessed | by the public regarding Mind-Power is but quasi- i knowledge— balf-truths — and the time has come ; when the whole truth should be taught. The time has arrived "when the public should be made acquainted with the great force underlying the phenomena of Mind-Power. People should be instructed regarding this force; its laws and opera- tion; its intelligent and proper use, with direc- tions designed to protect people against its im- proper use against them, on the part of others — this latter a most important matter in these days i of occult and psychic investigation on the part of I the public, and the attempted base and selfish uses , to which some are putting the occult mental forces | of Nature. ' It is too late to denj' or ignore the existence of the mighty mental force in Nature that underlies the j various forms of phenomena that go to form tho.J outward phase of Mind-Power, good and bad. Tooi IN HUMAN LIFE 73 much has been witnessed by the public concerning these matters for them to be hushed by the old cry, "There's nothing in it but imagination," On the one hand they have witnessed the various "treat- nents" of the healers, tending toward the cure of Iflisease, the attainment of success, etc. And on the pther, they have heard whispers of "adverse treat- paents," etc., and have heard of, or read, the various [ourses of instruction in hypnotism, mesmerism, tetc., etc., and have seen evidences of the good and lad effects of what has been called "suggestion," 1 all of its forms. And they are beginning to real- I that all of these things, differing as they may have a common root in some one natural iorce. And they are demanding, like the man from Ifissouri, to "be shown." And they have a right _' ) demand this. I The race has always recognized the existence of i mighty force of Nature which man has employed, ipnsciously or unconsciously, in the direction of in- 3iencing his fellow men; other forms of life, and iven the so-called lifeless things around him. In be earlier days this use of the force was called t*inagic" (hlack and white); mystical art; divine "power; miracle; fascination; charming; enchant- ment; wonder-working; necromancy, etc., and in its more base and evil uses, black art; witchcraft; sor- cery; voodooism, etc. For it must be remembered that this great force of nature is capable of base as well as of noble use. 74 MIND-POWER Like any other great natural force— like eleetric« ity; the power of explosives; steam; the S-raysjJ radium, etc.— this great force is capable of the high-F est and most beneficial uses by man when properlyJ applied and is also capable of being applied to the! most harmful purposes. Different as are the re-B suite arising from the varying applications, thel force is the same in each case. The forces of Na-j ture are not possessed of a sense of good and evil— 1 their function and purpose is to act in obedience tol the laws of their nature without regard to the quea-1 tion of good and evil to those by whom, or againsw whom, they are employed. This may seem like i terrible thing, but a moment's thought will satisfy^ yon that it is true of all natural forces, and the quea^ tion of good and e\"il, and its reward or pnnish-B ment, belongs to another plane of life. But, it may be asked, why do I wish to inform the] public about a force, unknown to many, which iaM capable of evil as well as of good use and results. The answer is simple. Ignorance is no proteetioft against anything, for the knowledge is always poa^ sessed of the few who may use it on the ignorant many without suspicion; the greater publicity is given to a thing, and the better it is nnderstood^a the better may its good effects be obtained and I less the danger of its improper use— forewarned ia forearmed. If a thing is good, the greater public ity given it the greater the good— if it is evil, I IN HUMAN LIFE 75 brighter the searchlight turned upon it, the less ■^danger is there attendant upon it. The danger of all evils lies in the darkness of con- tealment, not in the daylight of publicity. "Turn I the Light" has always been the watchword of brogress and eivUization. And more particularly is his so at this, the first decade of the Twentieth Cen- nry, when the interest in occultism and kindred objects has made a number of people acquainted rith Mind-Power, and has acquainted them with Us uses, under various names and theories. And ''4n many cases it is being practiced upon people who are unfamiliar with the subject, and therefore it is time that some one should "turn on the light," that it may be seen by all men and known for what it is— capable of the highest and the lowest uses, but a great force of Nature. And with this exposition of it, goes the remedy and protection against improper use, as well as the knowledge of its wonderful proper uses. If it be a bane— here is the antidote. But it is not necessarily a bane, any more than steam, electricity, and ex- plosives are a bane to naankind. What would be thought of people who would suppress knowledge of all natural laws, because of the possibility of im- proper usef Ignorance is no protection. Truth and fact must be followed to the end, and it will be dis- covered that, in Nature, every force that may be possible of hurtful use, may be guarded against by natural means. MIND-POWEE So mnch for the unpleasant side, But there a very pleasant side to tbis subject of Miud-Power.J This force has come to man Just when he most needaj il. He has used the so-called mechanical forces toj clear away the obstacles that Nature put into hial way in order to develop him into- a Man, and now J he turns to higher forms of energy and work— he I is crying for new worlds to conquer. And these I new worlds will be conquered by the mind, rather | than by the mnsele. Great things are before the J race, and one of the greatest forces in Nature ial the work of the building up of the Super-Man, wilU be this force called Mind-Power, By it man ^ be enabled to fight off the forces of ignorance j materialism, and to draw to himself knowledge fi the Universal Mind that will enable him to accont-J plish the heretofore Impossible. In this book I shall treat Mind-Power as I woal4 any other great force or energy of Xature, t. e., a scientific manner, stating the principles plainlj^ and without concealment, and also giving in fulll what I and other experimenters along the lines ofM this subject have learned of the methods benefidal and the reverse, concerning the applications of t principles. In the case of the beneficial applicaj full directions will be given that the student i avail himself of the force to the fullest extent, lithe eases where the subject of the harmful use t 3 force is alluded to, the student will be instructed r tbe same may be prevented, obviated, and nea- IN HUMAN LIFE 77 tralized, so that full protection is assured. This is what I should do in lessons upon electricity, steam, or explosives — and that is the course I purpoae fol- lowing in this work. It is possible that this course may bring upon me the adverse criticism of those who believe "that the public is not ready for such kuowledge," and that "such things should be reserved for the few." To such people, and all others, I would say that I have no sympathy with such an attitude, and I believe that the race is ready for all the Truth, and that that which is proper for the few is proper for the many. I believe that the greater the degree of knowl- edge the greater the degree of power and advance- ment. I believe that ignorance is not happiness; and that to keep a man ignorant of a natural fact, in order that he may escape its effect, is like allow- ing him to smoke when seated on a keg of powder rather than to acquaint him with a knowledge of ex- plosives — or, to use another figure, to advise him to bury his bead in the sand like an ostrich, rather than to look upon the approach of a possible danger. I "do not believe in such sophistry! I do not believe in Ignorance 1 I do not believe in Darkness ! There- fore, I purpose to "turn oe the light!" CHAPTER VI. THE MENTATIVE-POLEB, Whatever Mind-Power may be, in its ultimate J nature, it ie true that in its "working nature" or | phase of operation it seems to work along similar I lines to those followed by electricity. Like eleotrio- I ity, Mind-Power undoubtedly has two poles, or J phases. Like electricity, it travels in currents. Lika a electricity, it operates by induction. Like electric- ity, it is vibratory in its manifestation. And, like the I higher forms of energy— super-electrical in nature -J — it possesses radio-activity, or radiant energy— that is, like many other forms of radiant energy, it | is constantly throwing off streams of active energyj in the shape of "rays"; '■'vibrations," or "wa' Recent scientific discoveries have proven this, an^ in the next few years the world will be startled byl additional discoveries along these lines. Already ( we are receiving hints of "Mental Photographs,' or "Radiographs," and before long we shall havel ' ' Tele-Mentometers, " that will register the tele-''|i mental waves. The brain I regard as in the nature of a "trans^ former" of the Universal Mind-Power, or possibl^ as a "converter" of the force into mentation. The! THE MENTATIVE-POLES 79 brain cannot create Mind-Power; its office is merely to "transform" or "convert" the existent energy into usable forms and phases. Science agrees in the belief that in all brain-processes there is an employ- ment of some kind of energy, and a "burning-up" of brain substance. Just as there is a constant "burning-up" of the elements of an electrical bat- tery in the production of electricity, so is there a '"burning-up" of brain matter in the production of Mentation. And yet Science teaches us that no elec- tricity is ever "created" — simply a portion of the universal electricity is "converted" or "trans- formed," And I believe that the same holds good in mental action in the brain. And now it is time for us to begin our eousidera- "tion of the two Mentative Poles. In this book I shall hold to the fact there is evident in the manifestation of Mind-Power, in any and all forms, two distinct poles, or phases. I find myself compelled to coin two more terms for these poles or phases, for there are none now in common use. I shall call these two Mentative Poles respect- ively "The Emotive Pole" and "The Motive Pole." The word ' ' Motive ' ' means : ' ' That which acts ; wills ; moves; chooses; controls." The word "Emotive" means : ' ' That which manifests feeling ; emotion ; agi- tation; passion; sensation; etc.:" These definitions apply to my use of the terms in these lessons. You will be able to fix these two ideas connected with the MIND-POWER tentative Poles by thinking of the Motive Pole as Will"; and of the Emotive Pole as "Feeling." The Emotive Pole manifests actively as Desire-J 'orce. The Motive Pole manifests actively as Will Power. These two poles play a most important part o the lines of telementation. Not only does desird cause the response of one's own will, but both d and will are active forces in themselves, and act an^ react upon the desire and will poles of mental of others. We shall see many evidences of this these lessons progress. In fact, the entire theory and practice of Mind-Power depends npon this xat Iderlying principle. Your strong Desire-Force Is able to rouse the wil of another mind in response thereto. It may like ■wise set up vibrations in that other mind, awaken; ing there similar desires. Your Will-Power : arouse desire in the mind of another, and cause ad tion in accordance therewith. It may also oveg power the will of another, and lead it captive. combined will and desire pouring out in the meji tative current may produce a combined upon the minds of others by telemental induction. ' These two poles of the mind are both active and powerful in their effect. Both may be roused iQto_ intense activity, according to well-known laws, We shall see. Let us take a few moments' time e THE MENTATIVE-POLES 81 consider tbe subject of Desire-Force and Will-Power, before we proceed further. Those who have studied the phenomena of Mind- Power have generally accepted the theory that the effect upon other people was produced by the ■'thought" of the sender, and all the teachings upon the subject have been along this line. I, too, fell into this error, and for many years taught of the power of "thought," etc. But I have come to modify my views on the subject. Of course, everyone who has paid any attention to the subject knows that thought-transference is a fact, telementation being an established reality. But there is a very great difference between the fact that "thoughts" may be sent and received like tele- graphic messages, on tbe one band, and that persons may be influenced and affected, and bent to the de- sire or will of another on the other band. It is like the difference between thinking and doing in ordi- nary life. One may send his thoughts so that an- other may receive them— but what of this! What has this to do with the doing and compelling? It is evident that the real force must be looked for in some far more elementary and vital operation of the mind, than logical and reasoning thought. What is thought? Webster defines it as "An exercise of the mind in any of its higher forms ; reflection, cogi- tation." Nothing very djuamic about this, surely. We must look for something in the mind having more elementary force and power. 82 MIND-POWER Let us think a moment. What part of the mind seems to produce the greatest moving power and strength? Is it not chiefly that region of the mind that produces what we call emotions— feelings— de- sires— cravings— passions? Does not this part of the mind really cause the greatest incentive action on our part? Is not the whole moving- force largely summed up in 'the two words desire and wnxT Think of this a moment. Why did you do this thing, and that thing! Is it because you thought about it by cold, logical rea- soning, and acted upon the impulse given thereby? Or, was it not because you wanted to do it—desired to do it— felt like doing it? Is not always the feeling or desire precedent to and the originator of the ac- tion! And, as for thought, is it not used merely as an instrument to think up the best ways of manifest- ing the feeling or dosiret Think of this— is it not so! Did you ever do a thing (except under compulsion) that you did not desire to do! And was not the desire the preceding cause of your every action ! Desire is the great inciting power of the mind. Desire is "that which incites to action." And you always act upon the strongest desire— subject al- ways to the restraining influence of the reason, and the restricting or impelling influence of the will. I will tell you more about this wonderful thing, the will, in a moment or two, but let us now think of desire, for that is the real emotive-power.' Desire originates in the sub-conscious re^ons j THE MENTATIVE-POLES 83 the mind, and often we can feel her there, before she emerges iato consciousness, stirring us up with feel- ings of vague discontent and unrest. After a bit, gathering enough force, she emerges into the con- scious field, and then begins to demand expression. Now remember, that when I say desire, I mean all kinds of desire, high and low. Many people think of desire as only the craving of a low nature, but desire really means a feeling that wants something — and that something may be the very highest as- jiiration of the human mind. Now, this desire in all of its manifestations has a mighty power of attraction and influence. It mani- fests as the Law of Mentative Attraction which is constantly drawing toward us the things we desire, and also drawing us toward them. Not only is this true on the conscious plane, but even on the sub- Gonscious. ^ur desires constitute our nature, and our nature is always operating the mighty power of Mentative Attraction. The trouble with the most of us is that we allow our Desire-Force to be scattered, and diffused, thereby lessening its attractive power. It is only ■when we learn the secret of concentration and focus- ing the Desire-Force by the will that we are able to get results above the average. The will is the di- rector and controller of the Desire-Force, and upon its training and management depends the powerful use of the latter. Desire-Force not only has its effect upon the per- ' 84 MIND-POWER Eon, and others near him, but it may be, and of^ is, sent for thousands of miles where it affects i ' influences others, in ■ways. Desire-Force mighty force which makes many of the phast Mind-Power possible. It spreads out from the i I of the person affecting and influencing others ( I at other parts of the world, if concentrated and ( reoted by the will. It is a force beside which l X-ray and electricity fade into insignificance, moves not merely blind, Hfeless things, but living minds, thoughts, emotions, passions and i tions of men. It is the force that rules world, and its destinies. Like any other grej natural force it is capable of being used for good c evil. It is neither good nor evil— it is either or bofj according to the mind in which it originates, What phase of mental effort is more apt to be^j motive-force— the cold, lifeless thought about an s , straet metaphysical proposition, or a mathematia problem, on the one hand; and a warm vital Wi of "feeling," emotion or passion, such as love, hi ambition, aspiration, courage and desire on other? And remember that these last mentioned f belong to the "feeling" side of the mind, and all a manifestations of elementary desire. Desire is at the bottom of all feeling. Before i can love or hate, there must be desire. Before i can have ambition or aspiration there must be ( sire. Before we can manifest courage and energj there must be desire. Desire for something mul THE MENTATIVE-POLES 85 underlie all life action— desire conscious or subcon- scious. Abstract thought ia a cold, bare thing, latk- ing vitality and warmth— desire is filled with life, throbbing, longing, wanting, craving, insisting, and tiver pressing outward toward action. Desire indeed is the phase of our mental action that is a motive- force. And not only does desire incite us to action- move us to accomplish its ends, but it also, when sufficiently strong, surges ont from our minds in great waves and clouds of invisible and subtle en- ergy or force, and travels here and there toward the object of its inner urge — affecting, attracting, draw- ing, forcing the desired thing into submission to its cravings and demand. In the presence of some strong man or woman— that is, in the presence of one whose desire burns fiercely and strongly, and whose will has learned to concentrate the Desire- Force— one may actually feei the impact of the ele- mentary principle of mind as it vibrates in great waves from the brain and nervous system of such a one. Who has not met people who actually seemed to be living desire and will? The source of Desire-Force exists in every per- son, and it may be developed to a wonderful degree. The desires of many of you — of the majority of the race, in fact — never get further than the faint, "want to" stage. These people "wish" for things in a faint, pink-tea way. They never want a thing hard enongh to stir their Desire-Force into action and MIND-POWEE make the thing oome to them, or else make it Im them to the thing. The majority of people do i know how to desire. They do not know what it i be filled with that intense, eager, longing, cravi ravenous desire that fills them with a new mighty force, and makes them demand things ; stead of merely asking for them. They are ■'. sheep, pigeons, or rabbits, and sit meekly aroit while the strong ones of the race— the ones : with masterful desire— walk around and pick every good thing in sight. And it serves them i too, for they are not exercising the force which ] ture has given them for the purpose of self-p teetion and use. They have had the elementi vigor and virility bleached out of them by the ' finements" of one phase of civilization, and tad nearly lost all that goes to make up manly men, i natural women. They have become beggars— dicants of nature, instead of masters of her. The forces of Nature are at the disposal of ( man of vigor and determination and desire. Sa a one has hut to knock at the door of attainment & have it opened to him. Instead of doing this, majority of us sit around the doorsteps whining t the door shall be opened to us. In the name of I man Power, friends, get up, and fill yourai with powerful desire, then march up to the door a smite it fiercely with your mailed fist, demandix masterfully, "Open for me, the Masterl" And, 1 it will fly open at your call. THE MENTATIVE-POLES 87 I have shown you that Desire-Force is the great force underlying the phenomena of Mental Magic. But Desire-Foree without the aid of the will is like bteam unconfined and undirected, and gunpowder fired in the open air—both wasted energy. The will is the lever and director of the great power of desire and without its aid the latter is almost inoperative and ineffectual. Let us examine into the operation of the will. The will has two offices in connection with desire. These two offices may be spoken of as (1) the di- recting office; and (2) the protecting office. The will acts as the arouser, director, restrainer, concentrator, and manager of the great occult force of desire. What is generally known as "Will-Power is often in reality merely Desire-Force strongly con- centrated and directed to a focus by the power of the will. Remember this, please, for it will enable you to form a better idea of the subject of Will- Power. Often when you hear Will-Power spoken of, whatever is attributed to it is really said of and I attributed to Desire-Force controlled, directed, and focused by will. The effort of the will is oper- ated in the direction of this directing, focusing, concentrating, etc., and in the degree that the will is trained to do this so is the degree of "Will-Power" of the individual. Not only is the will able to do this, but it is able also to direct the Desire-Force into the mind of other persons, awakening similar vibrations there, and then by its own power the will MIND-POWEE is able to direct the D«aire-Force of the other j sons into action, taking away that office from ■ will of the other persons, if their will be not stroj enough in its protective office to resist the attacki| The idea of Will-Power is more familiar to 1 minds of people than is that of Desire-Force, recognize the wonderful power of the will, and kn^ of many instances of great accomplishment by i son of its power. And, yet, how few have stopped-! consider that nnless tbere was a preceding desil there could be no manifestation of will. Unleas person desires, that is, ivatits to do a thing, he t manifest no "Will-Power. But, on the other ha; one may desire to do a thing, and unless the willj aroused and applied, no action will occur. Desi arouses will; and will may stimulate desire. The. two act and react upon each other. The two should work in unison, and the trained individual has both under control and iiulling well together, like a well- trained team. Will-Power is more than a mere determination to act, although that mental attitude and action is man- ifested in Will-Power. It is a living force. Desire is the sister, and will the brother twin. And both, together, manifest that which we know as Dynsmic Mentation. Will-Power is more than a mere mental faculty- it is a mighty attribute, the influence of which may extend far beyond the mind of the person man- ifesting it. The greatest feats of the occult magi- THE MENTATIVE-POLES 89 cians depend upon telementation operated by trained Will-Power. And the so-called "great" men of history, ancient and modern, liad tbeir source of strength in this "Will-Power, which they trained and developed to an extraordinary degree. The exercise of will shows itself in two ways, (3 ) the mastery of one's own mind; and (2) the mas- tery of the minds of others. The second is well nigh impossible unless the first be accomplished. One must first train his mind so that he will hold it firmly in the grasp of the will, and prevent it from jumping this way and that way, instead of moving ahead to its purpose. When one has so trained his mind to he obedient to his will, that it can be held steady and ' ' one-pointed, ' ' as the ITindus say, then is he in a position to direct his mentative currents upon others to the best advantage. But so long as his mind is in a stage of disorganization, one faculty pulling this way, and another that way, and 80 on, he cannot hope to concentrate upon others the force that is being wasted in keeping order at home. Wlien the mind is mastered by the will, then may new territory be conquered. The term, Will-Power, is commonly used in con- nection with the manifestation of firmness, or de- termination. The determined will is known as a mighty factor toward attainment and accomplish- ment. And I think it well to consider this fact at this point, for back of all outward manifestations of mentative influence along active lines, lies this de- 90 MINDPOWER termined will of the individual. The more detc mined and firm the will of the individual, stronger the mentative influence emitted and emaa ated by Mm. This statement should not requi proof, for its truth is apparent to all who have maj a study of man and his powers. It has heen re( nized by writers in all times. Here are a few qit tations that will tend to fix the matter firmly : your mind, and create in you a desire to manifol the determined will— the lever that directs and c centrates Mind-Power. Buxton said: "The longer I live, the more ( tain I am that the great difference between me! between the feeble and the powerful, the great e the insignificant, is energy— invincible determii tion or a purpose once fixed, and then victory i death. That quality will do anything that can i done in this world— and no talents, no circumstano* no opportunities will make a two-legged creature^ man without it." Donald G. Mitchell said: "Resolve is what ma] a man manifest; not puny i-esoive, not crude del* mination, not errant purpose— but that strong s indefatigable will which treads down difficulties £ danger, as a boy treads down the heaving fra lands of winter; which kindles his eye and bn with a proud pulse-beat toward the unattainafefl Will makes men giants." Disraeli said: " I have brought myself by 161 imeditation to the conviction that a human bell THE MENTATIVE-POLES 91 with a settled purpose must accomplisli it, and that nothing can resist a will which will stake even ex- istence upon its fulfillment." Sir John Simpson said: "A passionate desire and an unwearied will can perform impossibilities, or what may seem to be such to the cold and feeble," John Foster said: "It is wonderful how even the casualties of life seem to bow to a spirit that will uot bow to them, and yield to subserve a design which they may, in their first apparent tendency, threaten to frustrate. When a firm, decisive spirit is recognized, it is curious to see how the space clears around a man and leaves him room and freedom." As we have seen, the use of the will as the pro- jector of mentative currents is the real base of all mentative induction, under whatever name it may manifest. And the phase of will known as tele- mentation is the form the results of which strike the observer with the greatest force. The will cur- rents of a strong man reach out far beyond the limits of his brain, and influence people and things, causing them' to be inclined toward his wishes. Many men have worked their will upon others far removed, and much that is known as thought-trans- ference, telepathy, mental influence, etc., is really this working of the will currents over space. What occultists have called ' ' thought- forms, ' ' etc., are really manifestations of the energy of the will. Will in a living force, that can be projected and operated at a distance. It has a property of reacting upon 92 MIND-POWER others, and permeating them with a mental east not their own, unless they repel the invasion or tify themselves against the aggression. Desire and will are more elementary forma mentation than thought. They underlie thou| Without desire and will there can be no thouj They ever precede thought; and are closely a to the essence of what "we call "feeling." Many pie live ahnost altogether on the feeling plane, exercise but little thought. The infant feels, desii^ and wills before it can think. Desire and will really the medium from which thought is evolve! A modern writer on mysticism has said: "TJ is no force in the universe except will-force,' ing, of course, the great natural force of called will, of which desire and will in man are pressions. Desire is a natural force, and can be ui managed, controlled and directed just as can be t other natural force. And what we know as Power is the positive phase of directed desire. Orientals have trained and cultivated this Wfl Power to degi'ees that seem miraculous to the Wi ■cm mind, and by this trained Will-Power they form the so-called "miracles" that confound Western scientist. But even the West has its of "Iron Will," whose influence is felt on all sit and whose power is openly acknowledged by public. In the East these men are generally ben and sagos, while in the Wect they are generi THE MENTATIVE-POLES 93 "men of action," leaders, "captains of industry," etc. Mind-Power is the essence of all mentative in- duction. It includes the positive, forcing, impelling, compelling, driving phase called will as its motive pole, and as its emotive po!e it has that attracting, drawing, pulling, luring, charming, fascinating, BOmething that we call desire. Mind-Power mani- fests in the phases of both desire and will, as we gen- erally use these terms, for it is composed of the ele- ments of both. Will may be said to represent the masculine side of Mind-Power, and desire the femi- nine side . It may help you to fix in your mind the attributes, characteristics and nature of these two phases of mentative energy by associating them with the idea of masculine and feminine. I wish that you would learn to think of the Desire- Force as the wann, ardent, fiery, forceful energy, underlying the manifestations of Mind-Power ; and of the Wili-Power as the cold, keen, strong, direct- ing, controlling projector of the energy. By fix- ing these mental images in your mind, you will be better able to manifest the two phases as occasion arises. Besides its office as the director of the energy, the will serves a very important office as the re- Btrainer of Desire-Force. When under the control of the "I" of the person, and taking the suggestion of reason and judgment, it is able to prevent one from expressing undesirable or hurtful desires. F 94 MIND-POWER It refuses to project the Desire-Force, or to allow the desire to take effect in action. If also turns back the desire upon itself, and refuses to allow it to manifest. It is the utmost importance that the Individual acquire a mastery of his ■will, for by do- ing so he will be able not only to express his de- sires with the greatest force and effect, but will also be enabled to restrain hurtful desires, and to prevent their manifestation upon the plane of ac- tion. And the will has still another important office. It acts as a protector. The will repels the influence or vibrations of another mind, and renders its pos- sessor immune to undesirable thought-waves. It creates a protective aura around the individual, which will turn aside the thought-waves or vibra- tions which may reach him, whether such be sent di- rectly to him or whether they are the vibrations emanating from minds of others and unconsciously sent forth. The will when properly used acts as an insulator for attacks upon the desire pole of one's mind, and prevents the vibrations from reaching their mark. And if it be well trained and strength- ened it will be able also to resist the most powerful attacks upon it by the wills of others, and will beat back the vibrations which would force their way into its stronghold to take it captive. CHAPTER VII. DESIBE AND WILL IN FABLE. I herewith reprodnce "The Fable of the Menta- tive Couple," a bit of writing in the lighter vein perpetrated by myself about a year ago. My ex- cuse for writing this tale, and for reproducing it now, is that it carries with it a decided moral, and teaches an important truth. It brings out the dis- tinction existing between the Motive and the Emo- tive phases of the mind, and beneath its flippancy is concealed some good, sound psychological truth. I ask that you read it, in connection with what I have just told you regarding the offices of the will, desire, imagination, etc. It will show you, in fig- urative style, the operation of the two poles of the Deeire-Will. And it will show you how the emotive pole or phase, if left unguarded by the protective faculties, will be led into all sorts of trouble. It will »I80 show you how the protective faculty may be dis- armed and overcome by a diversion of its attention from its task. There are several important psy- chological facts broughit out in this little fable, and a Momber of important "morals" to be deduced there- from, I trust that you will seek for the truth and prindples underlying the trifling words of the fable. MIND POWER Just as important truths may be conveyed in the fairy tales of the child, so may just as important facta be taught by the fairy tale fable of the Menta- tive Couple intended for the "grown-ups." Each of us, man or woman, has a Mentative Castle, in which dwells a Mentative Couple — Voles iind Emotione. And Volos often strays away, leav- ing Emotione unprotected. And the fascinating stranger often puts in an appearance. And Emo- tione often is beguiled by his wiles. And Volos of- ten is fooled by having his attention and interest dis- tracted by clever schemes, leaving Emotione un- protected again. So, while recognizing the value of Emotione, learn to keep Volos at home at the gate of the castle, and dc not allow him to be "side-tracked." Heed the advice of the wise man of the fable. There is an important lesson for you in this fable if yon ' take the trouble to find it. THE FABLE OF THE MENTATIVE COUPLE. Once upon a time there lived in the land of I talvania, in a wonderful building called The Menu tive Castle, a man and a woman, called "The Mq tative Couple." They were happy though marri They lived in harmony, because they were useful^ one another, and neither was complete without 1 presence of the other— and neither did his nor h best work, unless the other was present and assid mg. Well, now, the man was called "Volos" (wh; DESIRE AND WILL IN FABLE 97 is the same as the English name "Will"), and the woman' was called "Emotione," which in the lan- guage of that country meant something like a com- bination of emotion, desire and imagination. Now, the chronicle informs us that these two people had natures entirely different from each other, as has been said. We are told that Volos was of a stern, inflexible, strong, positive nature; apt to stick to a thing once begun; full of the "will-to-live" and ' ' vitality ' ' ; full of determination and spirit with a strong dash of the "let-me-alone" and "get out of my way" in his make-up; with a taste for meet- ing difficulties and overcoming obstacles; with a goodly habit of reaching out and taking hold of ■what Emotione wanted and needed ; and a powerful lot of self-respect and self-reliance in him. He was apt to be firm although his firmness was not the stub- bornness of the mule. His general keynote was strength. He was a good warrior and defender of bis castle. But Emotione was of an entirely differ- ent type, temperament, and character. She was most impressionable, imaginative, emotional, credu- lous, fanciful, full of desire, curious, sympathetic and easily persuaded. While Volos was all willing and thinking, Emotione was all feeling. Volos was a strong character, but lacked certain qualities that make for success — but these qualities Emotione possessed, and she supplied the deficiency in Volos. Volos had to "figure out" everything, while Emotione had intuition, and jumped at a eon- 98 MIND-POWER fllusion in a way remarkable to Voios, who eould understand the process at all. When he would i I'Jnaotione for an explanation, she would say, lightl^ "Oh, just because!" which answer would often pro- voke profane and irreverent discourse on the ] of Volos. But, nevertheless, he learned to respa these "becausea" of Emotione, and found that t helped him in his business. Emotione would drea out tbings, and see things a long way ahead, j then Volos would proceed to put these plans in operation. Volos couldn't see very far ahead • his nose, while Emotione could see miles beyooj and years ahead. And besides this faculty of 1 tal imagery that came in so useful in Volos' bu ness, Emotione also possessed a burning and : dent desire for things, which she managed to conj municate to Volos, thereby causing Mm to get t and do things that otherwise he would never 1 dreamed of doing. Emotione was like fire, Volos like water. The water would hold the fire i check, but at tbe same time the Fire would ha up the Water and tbe result would be tbe Steam ( Action. And, so, you see these two— this Menti tive Couple— formed a fine co-partnership, and proi pered mightily. But, alas! tbe tempter entered Eden— and the i tractive stranger meandered in the direction of t Mentative Castle, and when be reached there troulji occurred. And this is what happened: One day Volos was absent from the castle, bei] ' havl DESIRE AND WILL IN FABLE 99 engaged in some arduous eDterprise. And conse- quently the castle was unguarded. Volos had pro- vided against this by instructing Eniotione that she was to keep the castle gate closed tight, when he was away from home, and never to gaze without in hie absence, for there was some mysterious danger lurking without when he was away. Emotione had faithfully followed the directions of her liege lord, although her womanly curiosity was piqued thereat- Many the time she had heard strange knockings at the castle gate, but sbe heeded them not, and even refrained from looking out of the little peep-hoie in the gate— though this last was much against hpr in- clination, for she could see no harm in "just look- ing." But, to return to our tale. This particular day when Volos was absent from home, her curiosity was too much for Emotione when she heard the strange Icnoekings at the gate. And, breaking her rale, she ventured to peep without. Looking down she saw a most attractive stranger, with a fascinat- ing smile on his lips. He looked almost as strong as Volos, but he seemed to have a dash of the woman in him, besides. He had the strength, but also the charm that Emotione recognized as being a part of her own nature. "Ah" sighed Emotione, "here is a man who can understand me," The fas- cinating stranger smiled sweetly, and looking her in the eyes, masterfully asked to be admitted. "No, no," replied Emotione, "I cannot let you in, for 100 MIND-POWES Volos told me not to." "Ah, fair lady," said the Stranger softly. "Volos means all right, but he is rather old-fogyish, and behind the times. He does not ' imderstand, ' as do you and I. Pray, let me in." And, like Mother Eve, Emotione took the bait. Well, to make a long story short, when Volos came home he found that Emotione had subscribed to a set of "Viileveaus Modern Art," a beautiful work published by the De Luxe Bros, of Fifth Avenue, to be issued in 824 weekly parts, at the nominal price of $5 a part— 739 parts of which were already out, and would be delivered shortly. She had also given a number of aide orders for manifold ware.s, which had dazzled her untrained and unguarded fancy. Volos cried aloud to the gods of his land— but it was too late, the contracts had been signed. But this was but the beginning. Volos did not understand just what was the matter, and contented himself with scolding Emotione, whereat she wept bitterly. But the poison went on with its deadly work. And when Volos again was absent from home, the habit reasserted itself, and when the fas- cinating stranger again called at the castle, he was admitted. And when Volos returned, he found the castle furnished from dmigeon to watch-tower with costly rugs, and furniture, and various other ar- ticles, bought from "Morganstern's Popular In- stallment House," at $1,000 down and $100 per week. He also found that the castle had been lightning- roddcd from ground to turret, on each wing, tower. DESIKE AND WILL IN FABLE 101 and annex; and that sundry promissory notes, con- taining a law-proof, judgment-confessed eiause, had been given in exchange therefor. And then Volos swore by the Beard of Mars, the war-god, that he would have no more of this— he would remain at home thereafter. And be did. But the subtle stranger was onto the game, in ail of its details. And this is how he played it on Volos, even though the latter remained at home. A few days after Volos had determined to remain at home, there came a band of mountebanks, singing, dancing, and performing juggling tricks. Volos sat on the great stone beside the open castle gate, and his attention was attracted by the sounds and sights. Faster the dancers whirled— louder beat the drums - — sweeter grew the singing — more bewildering grew the feats of jugglery— until poor Volos forgot all about the open castle gate, so rapt was he at the strange sights, sounds, dances, and feats of jug- glery. Then one of the mountebank gang (who was really the attractive stranger disguised in motley array) slipped, unseen, past Volos, and in a moment ■was engaged in eager conversation with the im- pressionable Emotione. Volos watched the crowd antil it moved away, and then entering the castle, and closing the gate be- hind him, was confronted by Emotione, in tears, for sbe dreaded the coming storm. "Alack a-day, woe is me," she cried, "I am again in trouble, 0, Volos, my liege lord! I have just ordered from the fasei- p 102 MIND-POWER Dating stranger, who slipped past you at the gat( baby-grand, self-playing, automatic, liquid-a valved, radium carburetter, piano-playing, Orgi ette, upon which I may play for you all cU music, ranging from Vogner's Gotteidaminerung \ the popular "Merry Widow Waltz" with : depth of expression, and soulful understanding, cording to the words of the fascinating stranger wTSL took my order." "Gadzooks!" ejaculated Volos, "Fain would ^ cry aloud the name of that production of Vogneri just mentioned by thee. And by my halidom, e'< shalt thou soon be performing the waltz just me^ tioned by thy false red lips! Zounds! Of a truth! have been stung again by that fascinating strangelfl I must gaze no more upon these fleeting scenes \ merriment and amazement, lest I be again decoratt with the asses' ears. Aha! Volos is himself agaiil and the next time the fascinating stranger appeafl upon the scene, he shall be smitten hip and thia with my trusty battle-axe, and my snickersee sh^ pierce his foul carcass!" But, alas ! even once iQore was poor Volos deceiv^ and trifled with — once more poor Emotione fas< nated by the stranger. And it came about in I way. On the day of his last undoing, Volos sat on t open step, in front of the narrowly opened casti door. "No man shall pass me now," cried he. fate willed otherwise. For as he sat there, there a ,','ESIKE AND WILL IN FABLE 103 proacherl i nany people who took seat upon the steps before tJj/j gate, and engaged Voios in long heated, and wenrL'iome discourses regarding the outlook for the eropH; the presidential campaign; the Japanese question J race-suicide; the new theology; how old was Ab/i; the problem of the final outcome of the collisirm hotween the irresistible force and the im- movable body; the canals on Mars; what Roose- velt will (la with his big stick when his term expires ; and rifmy other weighty, interesting, and fascinat- ing topics of general interest. Most agreeable were these visitors, and most considerate of Volos' feel- ings were they. And although they seemed to differ from him at the beginning of each argument, still they courteously allowed him to convince them inch by iu'.'h, until they finally acknowledged that he was invmaible in argument, and invulnerable in logic. '* 'Tis passing strange," quoth Volos, "but never- theless 'tis true — that / always find myself on the right side of every question. And the wonder grows when they all admit it in the end. Verily, am I de- veloping into a wise guy!" And, pondering thus, he fell sweetly asleep from the rigor of the disputes; the flattering attentions shown him; the joy of the victory; and the exceed- ing amount of attention and interest he had ex- pended, for hiunan nature has its limitations, even in the case of one so strong as Volos. And while he f-lumbered, the fascinating stranger (who was really the leader of the argumentative visiting conamit- 104 MIND-POWER tee), crept into the house and unloaded upon ] tione a choice collection of gilt-edged mining & {pure gilt, all the way through in fact) ; a bunch^ flying-machine bonds, and a 5,000 monkey-pow vestibuled drawing-room, observation-car mobile called the ' ' Yellow Peril. ' ' And when ^ discovered what had happened be wept alond, en bitterly, "Odds-bones; s'death — of a cert am ] Baron E. Z, Mark." And thereupon he sent for t wise man who dwelt in the next barony. The wise man came, and after hearing the s said: "My children, yours is a sad case, but i ters may be adjusted without a visit to Sious 1 and without the raising of the question of alin The trouble is as follows: "Volos, without Effl tione, has no desire or incentive to do things, has no wants to satisfy, and therefore does nothi He needs Emotione to supply the desire. Aud v out her he has no feeling — he is nothing but a ha shell clam. Therefore he needs her to supply i feeling, for verily, and of a truth, feeling spice of life. And without her he has no imagi tion, and cannot see beyond the end of his nose- what is life without imagination? Gadzooks, might as well be a mummy ! "And on the other hand, Emotione without "^ is a consuming fire of desire ; an unrestrained in nation ; an intuitive faculty degenerated basest superstition, most deplorable credulity, the idlest fancy. Volos has no desire, emotioiii^ DESIEE AND WILL IN FABLE 105 imagination of bis own— and Emotione has no will of her own. "Verily, cannot it be seen by all that this couple needs one another the worst way? Each, alone, is but an incomplete half. United they stand — divided tbey fall. In union alone is there strength for them. "And more than this, each, without the other, falls a prey to the wiles of some fascinating stranger. We have seen how Emotione was fascinated and controlled by the stranger who gained access to the castle. But I have also seen (by my magic art) that when Volos was away from borne on important business, and not having Emotione along to keep him straight, he fell a victim to the wiles of the De- sire and Imagination of a fair stranger across the river, and did her bidding, and used his will to per- form her tasks, instead of those desired by his own Kmotione. Verily, art these people quits with one another and should now begin over again. True it is that harmony will be theirs only when they are to- gether. "And this ia the secret of the undoing of Emo- tione. Without the will of Volos to protect her, di- rect her, and advise her, Emotione allowed her de- sire imagination, and emotion to run wild and un- restrained. And so she became so impressionable as to allow herself to be mastered by the will of the stranger, who took advantage of the same and gath- «<red to himself many choice orders for things. And even when Volos sat by the door watching the play- I MIND-POWEB ers, dancers, and jugglers, his attention was so c tered on what he saw, that the fascinating stranj slipped through the gate— it was even as if ' had been absent from home. And, again, Volos allowed himself to become engaged in we discourse with the visiting committee, and ust Ms energy and force in argument and dispute i them— and when he permitted himself to 1 lied' into a false security by these United Bretl of the Blarney-Stone — he relaxed his vigilance, allowed himself to become tired, drowsy and sle< and so fell into a doze at his post, and the f again entered and took Emotione's orders for goi "And this then is the Remedy (as my succesEH Lawson of Boston, will say in the centuries t low) —this is the Remedy. Each person of this tative Couple must stick close to the other. Vol must have no 'important business' across the i which will allow Emotione to be without a prota and adviser. And Emotione must stick elof Volos, and satisfy her curiosity, imagination, tion and desire, by setting him to work out thii for her— to do things dreamed of by her- to j her things she desires— to express the things : by her. This is the secret of success, dear Mentati Couple — mutual work by desire and will, working J unison and harmony— each faithful to the otheq each guarding the othei from the fascinating si gera that beset each when separated. Now, children, stick close to each otberl" DESIRE AND WILL IN FABLE 107 And saying this, the Wise Man vanished from sight. And the moral of this fable of the Mentative Couple is this: That the mind of every man and woman is a Mentative Castle, wherein dwells a Volos and an Emotioue. And what happened to the couple in the fable, may happen, and does happen, to many in everyday life. The will, straying from tome, and paying attention to other attractions leaves the castle unguarded, and the fascinating stranger enters. And. again, the will has its atten- tion distracted by passing objects of interest, and forgets the castle door. And again, the will allows itself to be fatigued, tired, and jollied by useless argument, and talk, and cogitation, at the instiga- tion of the designing fascinating stranger, and the latter slips past the gate. And in each case, inside the gate is Emotione unprotected and innocent, true to her own nature, credulous, imaginative, fanciful, desireful, and emotional— is it any wonder that she "orders goods" that are not wanted by the familyf And the remedy of the wise man as given to the Mentative Couple may be, and should be, applied by every man and woman in his or her Mental Castle. And this then is the moral of the fable. And thus endeth the fable of the Mentative Couple, who dwell in the Mentative Castle, in Mentalvania, in the days of old when brave knights held their sway and fair ladies had their way. THE END OF THE FABLE OF THE MENTATIVE COUPLE. CHAPTER Vin MIND-POWER IN ACTION. And now let us consider the subject of the opej ation of Mind-Power, in the phase of its emplojl ment, consciously or unconsciously, to affect tB^ minds of others. It is true that this subject wiU 1 considered in detail in the chapter on Personal Magnetism and Telementation, but it will be well foi us to take a glance at the general workings at I point. I shall cover the points briefly, the elabor^ tion being made at the proper points in the lessons^ In the first place, let us consider the matter i mentative induction. As you have seen, the currents of Mind-Power flow in vibratory waves from ' mind of the individual, and act vipon the minds ( others according to the laws of mentative inductioB They thus set up corresponding vibrations, an therefore corresponding mental states of feeling: in the minds of such people. In other words, theSi vibrations "induce" or set up by induction in 1 minds of others, mental states similar to those ( isting in the mind of the mentator. These induced mental states are similar in qaaUj| and nature to those in the original mind. But, course, they are less in degree, for a part of the ori| MIND-POWER IN ACTION 109 inal energy has been dissipated in many directions, and then again, a certain amount of force is lost according to the degree of resistance in the receiv- ing mind. If the receiving mind sets up, consciously or unconsciously, a considerable resistance to the vibrations, it will either entirely neutralize or repel them, or else rob them of much of their power. If, on the contrary, the receiving mind be in its nature more or less in accord with the vibrations, it will set up little or no resistance, and the induced con- dition will be very nearly as strong as the original impulse. The ether, or fine substance filling space, is con- stantly filled with these mentative currents, of all kinds and degrees, streaming out from the minds of all kinds of people. These currents, of course, come in contact with each other, and often either combine or else act to neutralize each other. For instance, currents of a certain degree or kind of vibration (that is, of a certain mental state) when they come in contact with other currents of similar vibration, will tend to coalesce and combine, there be- ing a harmony and attraction existing between them. But if they are opposing vibrations they will antag- onize each other and act in the direction of neutraliz- ing each other's force If they are of equal strength, both will lose power, but if one is much stronger than the other it will lose only in the inverse ratio of its strength, and the weaker will suffer likewise. That is, the weaker will lose twice as much power as 110 MIND-POWER I the stronger, and the stronger will lose only ] as much as the weaker — supposing that the sti ia of twice the strength of the weaker. In this way is accounted for the well-known i that places, towns, cities, etc., have their own "] sonal atmospheres," which affect persons living i them or visiting them. These "personal atmd] pheres" of towns arise from a combining, ueutrd izing, etc., of the various vibrations arising froi raentative currents from the minds of the peon living in the town. An average vibration is strma which is strongly felt by all within the "field of 3 duction" of that town, A little thought will ma clear to you that this is a correct statement of t mental conditions manifest in various towns, ( etc., all over the world. Each place has its own individuality, which sff makes its impression on those taking up their aboj in it. It is more than geographical and atmospheiS conditions, although, of course, these play th^ parts, as we all know. The average mental state | the people living in the town strikes the key-nofl The stronger vibrations affect the average, and gi-fl a mental tone to the place. The best proof of 1 effect being caused by mental vibrations is found 1 the fact that two towns only a few miles from ( other, each having the same atmospheric and { sraphica' conditions, -will manifest ealir'ily ent mental atmospheres. People often ask: "If it be true that the etl MIND-POWER IN ACTION 111 f filled with mentative carrents, why are we not af- 3ted more than we aret" The answer is that they are affected more than they imagine, but they are still affected much less than one would suppose a\ first thought, for the reason that the currents confiict with each other and rob each other of their force. And then again, Nature instinctively affords a safeguard and sets up additional powers of re- sistance. Just as Nature protects the hearing sense of those who are surrounded with many and con- stant noises, nntil they fail to hear anything but an unaccustomed noise — just as she operates upon the smelling sense of the eheraist until he fails to notice the odors which are most apparent to the stranger entering his shop— so does she give additional un- conscious resisting power to people situated within an active field of mentative induction. Bring a person from a quiet place into a bustling, active city, and he is apt to be swept off his feet at first with the "spirit of the place"— he will either be swept into its prevailing life with an almost irre- sistible impulse, or else he will be repelled by reason of the inharmonious mentative currents. In either case, however, he will be intensely aware of the vi- brations. But, the same man, after a time, will fall to be so affected— he will be better able to resist the vibrations and will manage to live with a greater peace and poise than at first, although he will, of course, alter his nature more or less in harmony with the prevailing tone of the place. He will ' ' feel ' ' 112 MIND-POWER the vibrations less as time goes on. Some peopleJ have so developed this resisting power that they* are almost immune, while others have so little powe j of resistance that they are swept here and there I each strong wave of mentative energy that reachd them— they are always in some field of induction a being swayed by its vibrations. This phase of mentative induction explains ■ phenomena of those great waves of feeling thi sweep over a country, such as the emotion that fo] lowed the sinking of the Maine in the harbor < Havana. You will remember the first shock came to you when you read the account in the mon ing papers. Then there came upon you a growin sense of some impending event of great momenj mingled with a feeling of horror and indignatiod followed by an almost irresistible desire to join i a movement to avenge the outrage. This latU feeling grew perceptibly as wave after wave of fee^ ing passed over the country in mentative currentt setting up increased mental feeling by indueti(M Older people will remember many similar wavd that swept over the land Id past days. These things are common, and give you a clue t the apparent mystery of the action of mobs coDfl posed of a number of individuals who combine 3 numbers and then commit acts that no one man i the lot would think of perpetrating singly or indivi ually. The conscience of the mob is apparently j thing apart from the individual consciences of t^ MIND-POWEE IN ACTION 113 Tinits composing it. After tbe excitement— the morn- ing after— many, if not all, of the persons concerned, ielt a sickening horror and wonder at their work. A mob is a cyclonic center of mentative currents, re- sembling a whirlpool or whirlwind, with an active center and a less active circumference. Great waves of religious fervor noticeable in com- munities during the progress of "revivals" are ac- counted for in the same way. A few active revival- ists start a whirlwind of fervid feeling and emotion, and it spreads out in constantly widening circles, in- creasing until a climax is reached, and then a dimin- ishing strength is apparent, which gradually settles down into the accustomed mental state of the com- munity. These whirlwinds or whirlpools of emotional ex- citement, of whatever kind, are, of course, strength- ened by the constantly repeated suggestions of those participating in it, which with the constantly grow- ing volume of mentative energy being thrown forth serves to add fuel to the fire. This force would go on forever, steadily gaining in strength and volume, were it not for a provision of nature which causes the law of rise and fall ; increase and decrease ; that universal law of rhythm, to manifest in this as in all else in her domain. Everything has its rise, its climax, and its decline. So much for these general waves of mentative en- ergy, or mentative currents. But there is another 114 MIND-POWER phase to be considered— many phases, in fact, ns examine them. First there are mentative currents, arising fn the strong centered desire of some person, who fori ing a strong mental image, hy means of visualid tion, creates for himself a center of desire-fort which guided by his will-power attracts to hima* all that will fit into his plans. He constitutes 1 self a mentative center, around his visualized idgd and constantly sends out strong mentative curren^ charged with the strongest, most ardent desire-fon guided, directed, and projected by his developej Will-Power. He thus sets into operation the grq mental Law of Attraction, of which the early 1 ers on Mental Science talked so much. These ment( tive currents, charged with desire, spread out, soon begin a rotary movement like a whirlpoi sweeping around and around, always drawing ; toward its center persons and things tending to J in with the plans of the center. The original desire in the man's mind is repr^ duced in kind in the minds of thousands of peop by the law of mentative induction, and they all f^ in with the plan, the degree, of course, dependi upon the degree of positivity or negativity of the i ceptive mind, multiplied by the degree of positiv! of the mentator. The great plans of the so-callflj "Captains of Industry" are carried out by reaso] of this law. Many of these great centers of Desire-Force— these MIND-POWER IN ACTION 115 successful men, who attract to them that which they want, and those whom they need — do not realize the Mature of the force that they are using, but there are a constantly increasing number who do know it, and they are "working it for all it is worth." Many of these steady, cool business leaders are really deeply versed in occult laws. If the true facts of the case wfere to creep out, there would he the greatest sensa- tion that the country has ever known. Then there is still another phase of the matter. I al- lude to the cases of men who (generally consciously, but sometimes unconsciously) are focusing their mentative currents directly upon some person or persons who are necessary to their plans and de- sires. They are filled with desire to have these per- sons do thus and so, or not do tbus and so, as the case may be. These men, according to their degree of concentration and will-power direct to the other person or persons strong mentative currents of De- sire-Force, and by mentative induction set up vibra- tions of a corresponding rate in the minds of these others, the degree of effect produced, of course, de- pending upon the degree of negativity of the recip- ient. This effect is produced in two ways, both ac- cording to the law of mentative induction. The first way is to set up corresponding desire vibrations in the mind of t!ie other, so that it will in turn cause his will to carry out the desire. A varia- tion of this is to direct the desire-force toward the will of the other, and thus "entice" or "charm" the 116 MIND-POWER other's will into compliance with the desire of tb^J Bender. This will be understood if you will remem-i her what 1 have said about the resemblance of thoj desire pole io the feminine, and the will pole to thrf masculine. You will see an illustration of this in every phase of mentative influence. The second way is for the will of the sender to force its way past the will of the other and boldly "make love" to the desire of the other, and en-J deavor to "seduce" it by mere strength and per-j sistency until it accedes to his wishes. The varia-J tion of this is seen in the ease where the attackini will boldly grapples with the will of the other, an^ by sheer superiority of power overcomes it an^ makes it captive and obedient. This latter is ver; rare, except in cases of personal interviews between; the two persons, aided by telementation betweenil interviews. You will notice that the phase in which the desirej pole of the mentator does the work is along the linei of ferauiine action, the force being of a charming fascinating, drawing, coaxing nature ; and when the will is employed, the action is decidedly mascm line, the attack being made boldly, and with a show*! of strength, the subtlety of the desire attractioa."! being absent. The giants in the art of mentativeil attraction combine poles in their attacks and wor^ and thus in the words of "Uncle Eemus": "DejrJ eotch 'em comin', and dey cotch 'em goin', "Brer Fox." MIND-POWER IN ACTION 117 Then again, there is the use of mentative induc- tion, in what is known as "Personal Magnetism," which we will see in other chapters of this book. In this phase the mentator pours forth his mentative currents, either in a general way, or else in a con- centrated, directed manner, toward the other, in a personal interview. This is the secret of what is called "personal magnetism," and also of that un- accountable (to the uninformed) manner which some people have of overpowering others by sheer "strength of will." The "personal magnetism" phase of personal influence is the phase of feminine activity; and the "force of will" phase is the phase of masculine activity. Then there is that form of mentative induction called "mental suggestion," which I take up in later chapters. Although suggestion has to do with words, etc., rather than with mentative currents, still the principle is the same— the mental state is "in- duced" by words or physical things which are the result of feeling and mental states, just as is the phonographic record the result of the original speech which it is able to reproduce when the diaphragm is brought in contact with it by means of the needle. And then there is very little mental suggestion that is not accomplished with mentative currents— very little, indeed. In closing this lesson I wish to caution my readers to refrain from manifesting or feeling anything like fear at what I have said about the use of mentative MIND-POWER energy by other people. Bemember, that fear in it- self is the most negative influence and most weak- ening mental state known. It renders negative the most positive man if freely indulged in. No matter how potent may be these mentative currents, there are none that may not be rendered impotent, and in- effectual by your own will-power set in motion by your own desire-force. Each and every one of you have within you, and under your own control, a force that will render you perfectly and absolutely im- mune from undesirable mentative influence, no mat- ter who may use it against you. Nature has blessed all of ua in this respect — it makes no bane without its antidote, and does not depart from its rule in this phase any more than in any other. It supplies the means of self-protection to everyone, and always furnishes the defensive weapon to match the offensive one. As a matter of fact, you are defending yourself constantly, al- though you may not know it. Much of this defensive work is done along subconscious lines, but you are doing much of it consciously by the use of your will and spirit of individuality. You are using the men- tal "No I" all the time— that is, unless you are some poor creature who is afraid to say ' ' No I ' ' even men- tally, and if you are that, then this book is doubly needed by you. I shall instruct every student of this book, in many different ways, as we proceed with the lessoj in this art of self-protection. No one who studj MIND-POWER IN ACTION this book need ever again fear any undue influ- ence on the part of others, I purpose to make mental masters of you, and to teach you to throw off the bonds and shackles of mental slavery. I intend to make you strong, positive individuals, instead of weak, negative personalities. There is nothing to be afraid of except fear— so the sooner you cast off fear the better you will be, and the more advanced on the road to mastery. "While this is not the place for exercises, still I went each and every one of you to start right in now and form a mental attitude of fearlessness and strength, that you may begin at once to send forth mentative currents of that rate of vibration. If you do so— and you will, I know— then you will begin to notice an improvement at once. You will begin to realize your increasing power, and you will also see that others are beginning to feel it. Begin today — this moment — to radiate mentative currents of strength and power in all directions. Stimulate the currents by arousing a strong, intense, burning desire to be strong and to radiate strength vibrations — then back this up by the application of a strong, steady, mas- terful and dominant will— and then "the trick will be done." But right here, remember, first, last, and all the time, that it is not a mere matter of thinking — but a matter of feeling. Thoughts are cold, but feelings are warm, alive and vital. Therefore you must not merely think "I Am Strong," or say it like a par^ 120 MIND-POWEE rot— but you must stir up your nature to its depth, until you can really feel tbat you are indeed strong and possessed of the radiant energy of roentative force. Feeling is living thought. Everything that is worth while was produced by this feeling thought. Feeling — Desire— Emotion— Passion — Wanting — Willing— Demanding— these are the things that have creative power. So do not deceive yourself with this "holding the thought," or any such nonsense of which you have heard so much until you get sick at the mention of the words. It is not simply "holding the thought," it is "holding the desire," and back- ing it up with the will, that does the work To create a thing you must want it with a burning, eager want ' that hrooks no denial— backed up by a will that knows no such word as "can't" or "no." CHAPTER IX. PERSONAL MAGNETISM. Perhaps the most interesting manifestation of Mind-Power along the lines of telementation and mentative induction, at least to the beginner in the study of the subject, is the phase known a9 "Per- sonal Magnetism." We may as well begin by con- sidering the use of the word "magnetism" in con- nection with mental influence, etc. We often hear of "personal magnetism"; "mental magnetism"; * ' magnetic personality " ; " magnetic attraction ' ' ; "magnetic influence," etc., etc., used in the sense of mental attraction ; personal influence ; fascination ; charming; psychological influence, etc. Let ns see just why the term is used. The explanation involves an interesting bit of little known occult history. The word "magnetism," of course, arises from the word "magnet." Now here is an interesting bit of history. You will see in the dictionaries that the term "magnet" was given the lodestone, or nat- ural magnet, because it was first discovered near Magnesia, a town in Asia Minor. This explanation is most amusing to those familiar with the records of the old occult brotherhoods, for the latter know that instead of the magnet being named after the 122 MIND-POWER town, the town was named after the magnet, the latter heing known centuries before the town of Mag- nesia was built. The natural magnet was known in China, Ind: and Persia tliousands of years ago. Its name "mag net, ' ' arose from the same Persian word as ' ' magic, * namely, "mag," signifying the esoteric priesthoa or Magians, The name was given because the power™ of the natural magnet resembled the mental* power exerted by the Magians, and the stone was called lit- erally "the Magian Stone," or the "Magic Stone,' hence the words "magnet" and "magnetism." you see we come by our use of the word in a perfeetlj natural way. An interesting fact (and one that goes to prov* that minds work in aeciistomed channels) is to 1 noted in the circumstance that the mysterious phff nomena of Mesmerism, etc., noticed in Europe and America during the past century or so, came to 1 naturally called "Animal Magnetism"; "Persona] Magnetism," etc., the mind of the public intuitively connecting the phenomena with that of the magneU which it very much resembles. And, in our day, wa speak of people being "very magnetic," "lacking magnetism," having a "magnetic presence,' etc. And so history repeats itself. The magnoj which was originally called the "Magian or Magi Stone. ' ' because its force resembled the menta: tive attraction manifested by the Magi or gians, serves to give a name io similar manifests PERSONAL MAGNETISM 123 tion of mental force centuries after. The "magnet" gives back to the Twentieth Century Magians the name it borrowed from the Magians of 'Ancient Per- sia. It has repaid the debt. While the phase of Mind-Power which has to do "with the operation of the force upon distant minds and objects is perhaps the most startling, still that phase which is called "Personal Magnetism" is one of the most important and remarkable. Its very frequent occurrence often causes us to overlook it, but it is the phase which is effectively used by those who understand it, and the one against which it be- hooves us to guard ourselves. All have noticed that some individuals seem to have a "winning way" about thera, and are able to induce others to fall into their way of thinking, and to do what they wish done. The so-called "magnetic" man is able to sway audiences or in- ■ dividuals by his mystic power, and one often fails to realize just how it was done when he recalls the words spoken, or reads them in cold type the morn- ing after. The secret lies not alone in what is said, or even in how it is said, but rather in how great a degree personal magnetism was emanated by the speaker. Many persons who have dealings with the pub- lic in the direction of selling goods; securing sub- scriptions; selling life-insurance, etc., etc., have ac- quired a degree of the art of using personal magnet- ism, often being unconscious of the force they are 124 MIND-POWEK employing. And many large employers of agenn have schools wherein the agents are taught psychology of suggestion, personal influence, etoJ and more or less of personal magnetism althoug! under some other name. And, more than this, every" person who is in earnest, when talking to another person manifests more or less personal magnetism, unconsciously, or consciously. While the statement may bring down upon head the wrath of those who believe that the phJ nomena of the "old-fashioned revival" are due t| the "workings of the Spirit," I do not hesitate i affirm that all students of psychology know that th greater part of the fervor is due to emotional exeit* ment produced by personal magnetism, manifesting-* along both the lines of mentative currents and sug- gestion. Anyone who has ever attended a negi'o i-e- vival or camp meeting lias carried away with him | memory of the effects of a certain kind of persona magnetism upon a certain type of emotional mindi And not alone in the field of "emotional religion^ does this force manifest itself so strongly— it just as plainly demonstrated in the case of " tional politics." Let any man sit down and saneH consider the performances of the average man of t rank and tile of either of the political parties dit ing a campaign. See how men are swayed by emd tional appeals to their prejudices and party spiri See how they allow themselves to be blinded by glia perso:nal magnetism 125 tering promisea and statements, without a shred of reasonable argument, until they become fanatics. Their emotions are skillfully played upon by the leaders and speakers, and the current of personal magnetism, and suggestion, spreads over the body of the party until they become a mob possessed of certain fixed ideas that have taken possession of Ihem. Families are split by factional differences, and hatred reigns when love formerly had its abode. The excitement grows fiercer and fiercer, until at last the day of the election is at hand, and the coun- try goes into a paroxysm of emotional excitement. Then the result is announced. The next day every one suffers from a relapse, and the country begins to laugh over what has happened. After the sting of defeat has worn off, and the elation of victory has melted away, it is found that the country is moving along ahout as usual— not go- ing to the dogs because some man is defeated, nor taking great leaps forward because some other man has been elected Town Supervisor, or President, as the case may be. The people play their parts year after year— that is the majority of them— being swayed by emotional excitement rather than by rea- BOD, thought, or intelligence. And the men who pull the mental strings grin to themselves as they think over "what fools these mortals he," and prepare themselves to pull the same strings again upon the next occasion, and to make their sheep-like follow- 126 MIND-POWER era again dance to the tune of "My party, right t wrong, my party." And in both revival and political campaign thi moving spirit is the same. Our old friend, persond magnetism, operates through the force of a "feelings" conveyed from the minds of the few 1 the minds of the many, aided and abetted in itij subtle influence by its mate, mental suggestic Gaining force under the force of the desire and t of each person who adds his force to the original im pulse it swells in volume until, like the rolling sno'W balls, it grows to mammoth proportions and sweep! all before it. You have often heard that "enthusiasm is fectious." Did you ever wonder why? Have yoi ever wondered why you enjoyed a theatrical peri formance more when the house was filled than whffl only half its seating capacity was used? Have yc^ ever understood the cause of the wave of enthusiaa that has swept over the large audience, includii^ yourself, until you felt all in a mental glowT Ha^ you ever realized that what is known as "the ] chology of the crowd," by which term is meant thi influence that can be gained over a crowd, whereai the separate individuals composing the crowd coal4 not be so affected, is due to personal magnetism and mental suggestion which is started into operation and then spread from mind to mind by the added d& sire and will manifested in mental states and thei ^QQiated physical actions T PERSONAL MAGNETISM 127 PAnd there is another fact to be remembered while we are considering audiences and crowds. I allude to the fact that the speaker is affected by the per- sonal magnetism of the audience, which flows back upon him, giving him increased power to send again to them his own ideas, awakening fresh emotional excitement in them. It is action and reaction al- ways. It is of the greatest importance that one under- stands the causes of these "mental epidemics," for when the cause is once understood one is far less liable to be carried away by emotional excitement spread in this way. Many sober, sensible people have been swept off their feet by these waves of personal magnetism, and have done and said things that would otherwise have been impossible for them. They have allowed the personal magnetism to reach their minds through the emotive-pole, arousing ideas and desires that otherwise would have been impos- sible. We have seen, or heard, of respectable citizens, in- cluding the members of the so-called learned profes- sions, lawyers, doctors, teachers, preachers, joining in mobs and allowing themselves to be carried away by the personal magnetism and suggestion of the more excitable members thereof, and participating in acts that afterwards seemed lUte horrible night- mares to them. The emotional nature is always very near the surface, in the majority of men, and it should be ever guarded from outside arousing in- 128 MIND-POWEE flnences. The motive-pole of the mind— the ■ power,- should ever be on guard to resist this : vasion of the emotive pole— desire- force. And : should the will ever be on guard to neutralize 1 personal magnetism of others who in personal : terviews seek to bend the minds of their hearers to their ideas, and by thus arousing desire mould them so as to work their wills upon them. In all of these cases of personal magnetism, and mental suggestion whether along the lines of per- sonal influencing, appeals, artful suggestion, etc., as well as in the cases of "mental epidemic," the ef- fect is produced by the raentator, or suggestor, ob- taining the voluntary attention of the other or others, and thus holding his will engaged, and his emotive pole of mind thus unguarded, while he pours in his mentative currents, or suggestions (usually both) into the emotive pole of his hearers. He thus induces in them the desires, emotions and feel- ings which act as motive forces, causing them to act according to his wishes and will. The person affected is rendered unable to reason correctly, or intelligently, for his will is "on a vaca- tion." and his reason is swayed by his desires, emo- tions and feelings thus induced, the necessary sup- port of the will being lacking. The will of the man sending the mentative currents, or mental su^es- tions, is in control, instead of the wills of the hearers and persons influenced. In the eases of widespread "mental contagion" the influence spreads from PERSONAL MAGNETISM mind to mind ,a!ong the same lines, and according to the same laws, I trust tbat what I have said along these lines will appeal to the student in the direction of causing him to interpose a resistance to these currents and suggestions in cases such as I have mentioned. The remedy is in his own hands — simply the interposi- tion of the will, in the manner of which I shall speak as we proceed. Surround yourself with an armor of will-power which will aet as a shield against in- fluences of this sort, and which will beat theia aack upon their senders. If people but understood this law they would cause these selfish mentative cur- rents to be reflected back upon the sender until he was swept away in the whirlwind of his own raising. It is apparent to all students of human nature that there is a wonderful difference in the degrees of what is called "personal force" observable in different persons with whom we come in contact. Some are very "forceful," and others are quite "forceless," and others form varying degrees be- tween these two extremes. This difference in "per- sonal force" depends upon the degree of dynamic "positivity" or negativity" in the "magnetism" of each person. The man who is able to manifest a strong degree of Mind-Power along the lines of motive polarity, or will-power, becomes dj-namically "positive." I use the word "positive" in this connection in the sense of Webster's definition: "having the power to di- 130 MIKD-POWER se «ai1e, I rect action or mfluenee." Passing donn the wale, through varying and lessening degrees of "positrv- itv," we reach the case of the man who is almost devoid of this power of manifesting Mind-Power^ and bis condition we call that of dynamic "negativ- ity." By "negative," as I nse it here, I nte* "non-i)ositive;laeliing the power of direct action inflaence." Now, every person has his own degree of dy mie "positivity." Each one is dynamically tive to some others, and dynamically negative others still— unless indeed one has reached limit of positivity or negativity, which limit camu be definitely fixed. Two persons meet each othi At once there ensues a silent, quiet struggle hetwi their dj-namie mentation, depending for its inten- sity upon the importance of the meeting. Still, any and all events, the struggle ensues, usually un- consciously. It may be over in a moment, or it n: last a long time, but from that struggle, sooner later, one or the other must emerge a victor, unlesi as is rarely the case, they are of equal degrees positivity. And there is no mistake about the resi — each one recognizes himself as the victor, or defeated, and adjusts himself to his relative p tion. I do not mean by this that the degree of dyni positivity is fixed permanently in either pei For the contrary is the ease. One of the persoi who is really stronger, usually, may be weaker PERSONAL MAGNETISM 131 that particular time owing to bis will being fatigued, or by reason of his having relaxed his will-power, as is often the case. And in such a case, the defeated one may be the victor at the next encounter, or may even rally his energies in a moment later and turn the tables. One may have a strong will, in moments of activity, and yet in moments of passivity he may reldx it very much. And, a still more important fact: One may so increase his will-power that be will be able to completely dominate those who form- erly over-mastered and even over-awed him. All of us know of instances of this kind in our own per- sonal experiences. At the extreme dynamic positive pole are to be found those wonderfully forceful men who seem to dominate all with whom they come in contact. These people fairly paralyze the wills of those around them, and induce emotive states almost at will. When in deep, earnest, mentative -effort, they seem to actually "plunge" their will into the mind of the other persons, and set themselves up as the dominant force therein, taking the others' wills captive and holding them obedient to the master will of the posi- tive man. Such men are of oourse rare, and when- ever they exist they make a strong mark on the his- tory of their times, local or general. I do not like to quote Napoleon Bonaparte as an example, for he has been used to illustrate almost everything. But still, Ihe mind intuitively flies to him in thinking of the dominant will. Napoleon had a marvelous will— an 132 MIND-POWER 4 ited not I almost superhuman will. It was manifested only on the world at large, but also upon those closest to him in the way of personal contact. This man worked his will on those around him, and force) his desires upon them, also. He dominated every- thing and everybody, and hie contemporaries, even his enemies, testify to this marvelous personal power. He is a very good example of this extreme, positive type. Passing down the scale, we see men of strong peri Fonal force in all walks of life. These men formerl; played the part of warriors or rulers of kingdoms but the increasing importance of commercial life the world's affairs has developed and brought fort! a new type of these positive men, who now she themselves as "captains of industry," prominei figures in "frenzied finance," makers and rulers oi the gi'eat "trusts" of this country, and others. Jittle lower in the scale of personal force we men of marked power, but still a little less stro! than those above them. ' And so we pass do' through the varying degrees of the scale, meet: the average man and woman, and then on to th( "weaklings" of the race. At the extreme negativi end of the scale we find those impressionable crei tures, known to students of experimental psyJ chology as "somnambules," or "im] who have merely to be told to do a thing, in an ai thoritative manner, in order to have them attem] to do it, or at least to feel impelled to do so. F PERSONAL MAGNETISM 133 There are many people upon whom the phenomena of extreme menta! suggestion may be produced while they are wide awake. They will feel the "burn" on their hands, caused by your finger, if yon but suggest it to them in the right way. They will be unable to draw apart their hands, which have been fastened together by your strong suggestion. They will be drawn backward, or forward, by your BUg- gestion. There are many people of this kind, some more impressionable than others, but all quite im- pressionable, who will be driven this way or that way by those who understand the subject. Fortunately, this fact is not generally recognized, or else we should hear of still more cases of "strange influ- ence," etc., in the newspapers. But the subject is becoming more widely discussed and known now, and it is only a question of time when the law will be compelled to take cognizance of it. Fortunately, however, the extreme negative con- dition may be overcome by one, by developing his will and learning the principles underlying the sub- ject. Knowledge of the nature of the subject robs the force of much of its effect, the latter depending largely upon the passive ignorance of the subject. Give bim the proper instruction, and he will be able to interpose a resistance. Every man has his pres- ent place on the scale, but he may improve his po- sition I Personal magnetism bears a close resemblance to that which in olden times was frequently called MIND-POWEE 134 "Mental Faseination. " *' Fascination" meanj '*th6^ act of fascinating, or state of being fascinated.' The word "fascinate" springs from the Latin word 1 "Fascinare," meaning "to enchant; bewitch, charm. J by eyes or tongue; captivate, attract," etc. The definition of the English word, "fascinate," is as follows: "To act upon by some powerful or ir- resistible influence ; to influence by an irresistible charm; to allure, or escite, irresistibly cr pow- erfully; to charm, captivate, or attract pow- erfully; to influence the imagination, reason or will of another, in an uncontrollable manner; to enchant, captivate or allure, powerfully or irresistibly." The above deiinition is condensed from a number of the best dictionaries, and gives the essence of the idea embodied in the word. In this work I use the term "Personal Magnetism" in the sense of: The.i action of Mind-Poiver in the direction of powerfully^ inHuencing the imagination, desire, or will of an- I other. This is my own broad definition which in- J eludes all the varied phenomena. CHAPTER X. EXAMPLES OF DYNAMIC MENTATION. The story of dynamic mentation runs along with the history of the human race, for it has always been known to man in some form. Coming to primitive man along with other inheritances from still lower forms, it was used from the beginning. Its earliest forms were similar to its employment by the lower animals, such as has been mentioned in a preceding chapter. The positive minds of the race influenced and dominated the more negative ones. Without un- derstanding its laws, the positive barbarians discov- ered that tbey possessed a stronger power of in- ducing mental states among their negative compan- ions, and were thus enabled to work their will upon tbem. Many of the leaders of barbarian races owe their positions of prominence and leadership to this law of mental induction. But along with the rise of leaders there was man- ifested a similar rise in power and influence of the priests. All races have had their priests, and have today. A priest is a man whose office is that of a mediator between men and their divinities— one who claims to represent the supernatural entities in their dealings with men— a religious, or spiritual "mid- 136 MIXD-POWER cUe-man," as it were (I ose ^this expression in all seiiousness, and with no desire to speak lightly of the priestly offices, which have played an important part in the history of the race). The priests, not being occupied with warfare, or agriculture, and by rea- eon of their support being contributed by the people, found plenty of time to "think," a somewhat rare privilege in the early days (and even in these times, for that matter). And, so, there gradually arose, among all peoples, a priestly caste that possessed the bulk of intelligence of the race. These priests soon began to recognize the irojxirtanee of Mind- Power, and they studied its underlying principles and laws of operation. This of course gave them an additional hold on the people, and a power over them. There seems to be no doubt but that even in the early days of the race, the priestly caste held a very wide knowledge of the laws and practice of djTiamic mentation. In the heart of -^riea today, we find the Voodoo men, or conjurers, or medicine men, well versed in the application of Mind-Power. It was also known among the early American Indians, although their degenerated descendants seem to have lost the knowledge, except in a few instances. The power of the priesthood among primitive races, is based al- most entirely upon some form of dynamic mentation. And, as we see the race ascending in the scale, so do we see the priests displaying a broader and fuller mowledge of the subject in question. The hiatoi I DYNAMIC MENTATION t of the oriental races show that a full knowledge of ^ the operation of Mind-Power has been possessed i by them for thousands of years. In the pictured i stories of the Egyptians, the traces of which appear in their ruined temples and other buildings, we see that they understood the art perfectly. In ancient Persia and Chaldea, the art arose to great heights. In fact, among all of the advanced ancient races of [ men, we find an important place given to the subject , before us. Among the Ancient Mysteries, and the various ceremonies of the temples, of the early races, we see many instances of the use of this power. Back of the rites and ceremonies were always the underlying principle and application. In the early use of the i force, its emplojTiient was largely along the lines of 1 healing. But still we read in the pages of early his- tory of many instances of mental fascination, pure and simple. That which was afterward called Mes- merism, hypnotism, etc., was well known to the an- cients, and, in fact, some of the recorded results coming down to us from the past, have never been equalled hy modern experimenters. Some of the feats of the modern Hindu magicians, or fakirs, have never been equalled by Western hypnotists. Ancient history is full of instances of the oper- ation of dynamic mentation among the people of the ■ early days. It is related that Julius Caesar, while quite a young man, fell In with pirates near the Jsle of Rhodes, who captured his ship, and took him 138 MIND-POWER prisoner. They held him for several weeks, while awaiting the ransom money being raised by his rela- tives. Plutarch writes that while the young Caesar was the captive of the pirates, he asserted his mas- tery over them to such an extent that he seemed a ruler rather than a prisoner. When he wished to rest or sleep, he forbade them to make any noise, and they obeyed him witiout question. He abused them and ordered them around like servants, and . they did not seem able to disobey him. He did not hesitate to threaten them with death when he re- gained his libertj', and they did not resent it— and he afterward made good his threats. It is related of Alcibiadea, the Athenian, that he once made a bet with some of the young Athenian nobles, that he would publicly bos the ears of Hip- ponikos, a venerable and greatly respected citizen. Not only did he bet that he would do this thing, but he also claimed that he would afterward compel the old man to give him his favorite daughter in mar- . riage. The day following, when Hipponikos came out, Alcibiades walked up to him and gave him a resounding box on the ears. The old man seemed dazed and bewildered and retired to his home. A j great public outcry arose, and the young man | seemed likely to fall a victim to the indignation of ( the citizens. But the next day Alcibiades went to , the home of Hipponikos and, after making a pre- tence of baring his back for punishment, he man- DYNAMIC MENTATION aged to induce in the old man a feeling of good humor and mirth, and obtained his pardon and goodwill, the latter increasing daily thereafter un- til finally he grew so devoted to the young man that he offered him the hand of his daughter in mar- riage, which was accepted. Any one who is ac- quainted with the recorded character of the Athe- nians will realize what a wonderful occurrence this ■was. It was a striking exhibition of dynamic men- tation, without a question. All the gi'eat generals of history have possessed this quality. Caesar, Alexander the Great, Napo- leon, Frederick the Great, and the modern mystic- warrior, Gen. Gordon, all managed their men in a mysterious and wonderful manner, so that their troops worshiped them as almost gods, and went to their death willingly and joyfully. The single instance of Napoleon, when he returned from Elba, and confronted the Bourbon army drawn up to capture him, should satisfy any one of the possession of the greatest dynamic power by this wonderful man. You remember that the troops were drawn up confronting Napoleon, their muskets leveled at his breast in obedience to the command "Aim!" Na- poleon, who was on foot, marched deliberately to- ward the troops, with measured tread, gazing di- rectly into their eyes. Then the officers shouted, "Fire!" A single shot would have killed Napoleon, and would have brought to the man who fired it a fortune from the Bourbon King, But not a man 140 MIND-POWER obeyed the order, so completely were they under the spell of Napoleon's fascination. Instead of tiring, they threw down their guns and ran joyfnlly toward the Corsiean, shouting, "Vivel'Empereur!" Their officers fled, and Napoleon, placing himself at the head of the troops, marched on to Paris. Other troops flocked to his standard at each point where he confronted them, although they had been sent out to capture or kill him. By the time the gates of Paris were reached, lie was at the head of an im- mense army. The fascination manifested by this man was one of the most marked instances of its pos- session of which we have any record. And it seem'a to endure to this day— almost a century after hisi death. The very mention of his name makes one's j| blood tingle. All great leaders of men, statesmen, orators and 1 politicians have the power of dynamic mentation de.! veloped to a considerable degree. If you have ever 1 come in contact with a man of this sort, you will J always remember the impression he made upon you.r Every man who knew James G. Blaine will remem- ber his "personal magnetism," of which so mue^^ s said during his lifetime. Anyone who heard i the famous speech of Wm. J. Bryan, at the Chicago^ t •Convention, in which he made use of the famous ex- t'pression: "Thou shall not press upon the brow oft Labor the crown of thorns; thou shall not crucif^\ Mankind upon a Cross of Gold," needs no further ] proof of the reality of dynamic mentation. DYNAMIC MENTATION 141 Bryan was almost unknown to the majority of the delegates, and no thought of nominating him was entertained by them. But his "magnetism" was so great that it swept the convention like a mighty tidal-wave, carrying all before it, and Bryan was carried around the hall on the shoulders of the delegates, who afterward made him their nominee for President. And although defeated twice, this man still possesses a wonderful fascination over hundreds of thousands of people in this country, ■who would rally around his standard at any time that he would sound the call. Henry Ward Beeeher, at the great meeting in England, manifested the same power. The whole meeting was against him, and drowned his words by hoots, yells, and other noises. But Beeeher looked them straight in the eye, and gradually cowed them into subjection, and then talked to them for two hours, and fairly carried the meeting by storm. He was but one man facing thousands of other men hostile to him, and deter- mined to prevent him from speaking. But .the single man won — by his dynamic will. It was not alone the words, in these eases— it was the Mind-Power behind the words. Pothergill relates the following remarkable inci- dents in the life of Hugo, Bishop of Liucoln, which is another illustration of one phase of dynamic men- tation : "Perhaps no exhibition of heroism was ever more remarkable than when Hugo, Bishop of Lincoln, bearded Richard Cceur de Lion, in, ttre dosniii. > 142 MIND-POWEE It Roche d' Andeli. In pursuit of war in Normandy, Richard demanded more supplies from his barons, and the bishop refused to supply any men; the see of Lincoln was bound to military service, he ad- mitted, but only within the four seas of Britain. Eichard was not a man to be lightly crossed, and y Hugo was summoned to Normandy. So enraged was the king with the spiritual peer that when he presented himself in Noiinandy to answer the charge against him, two friendly barons met him to urge I upon him the necessity for sending a conciliatory ■■ message to the king before entering his presence; j^ The bishop declined the advice. The king was sit-3 ting at mass when the prelate walked up to him and,f despite the monarch's frown, said, "Iviss me, my J lord king." The king turned away his face. Hugdq shook him and repeated his request, "Thou hasi not deserved it," growled the king fiercely. "Ifl have," returned the prelate, and shook him all the'i harder. The king yielded, the kiss was given; and I the bishop passed calmly on to take part in the serv^ j ice. Mere indifference io death could never have ^ produced such a result. There was something more. As well as utterly fearless, Bishop Hugo possessed a will-power of most unusual character, of which sev- eral instances are on record. Not only did he face the king and justify his refusal to supply men in the council chamber afterwards; but he went fur- ther, and rebuked him for infidelity to his queen. The Lion was tamed for the moment. The king .icknowleciged nothing, but restrained his paesion, DYNAMIC MENTATION 143 iibBerving afterwards, 'If all bishops were like my '■lord of Lincoln, not a prince among us could lift his head among them.' Such is the story as told by Fronde. Yet Richard was the last man to permit a liberty to be taken with him, as his whole history showed. "Hugo was such a remarkable illustration of what high will-power can do, that another story may be related of him. King Henry Plantagenet had made Hugo Bishop of Lincoln; yet shortly after- wards, on preferring a request for a prebendal stall for a courtier, his request was refused. Hugo had already braved his wrath once, and the king, de- spite the episode of Thomas a Becket, was savagely angry. Henry was with his suite in Woodstock Park, and sat down on the ground pretending to be mend- ing his glove when the bishop approached him. The king took no notice of his spiritual peer. After a brief pause Hugo, pushing aside an earl, sat down by the king's side. Watching the royal proceedings he remarked— 'Your Highness reminds me of your cousins at Falaise.' Falaise was famous for its leather work, and it was at Falaise that Duke Robert met Arlotta the tanner's daughter, the mother of William the Conqueror, This reference to his an- cestry was too much for the king, who was utterly worsted in the discussion which followed." Can anyone doubt the existence of the subtle force of Mind-Power in the instances just relatedt There was Mind-Power behind the words, actions and cour- age of Hugo— without it he would have failed CHAPTER XI DYNAMIC IKDIVIDUALITT, For the purpose of illustrating the personal qual-, ities of the dynamically positive man, along the linegj of Personal Influence, I shall proceed to describej these qualities as existing in a person whom 1 willu call the Dynamic Individual. Let us consider th: man as an actually existent individual, in our treat-J ment of him. You must endeavor to imagine him in this way, that you may understand his qualities. He is a very positive man, magnetically— one of the examples of a strong, forceful man of affairs, whoj| is constantly meeting people, and having relationsj with them. How does such a man act, talk, lookj move and conduct himself. Let us see! In the first place, let us consider his appearanct. j He may be tall or short; dark or fair; stout on {.lender— these things do not count. But, notice thtK that no matter which of the characteristics just niei tioned he may possess or lack, he has a certain ' about him" that all may recognize, once they have- seen it in any one. Let us notice this "air" care- fully, for it may give us a clue. The principal feature about this "air" of the Dy- namic Individual is its suggestion of self-confidence DYNAMIC INDIVIDUALITY 145 and fearlessness. Onr man seems to have a certainty of an inward power and force about him. Not the blustering, self -important air manifested by the pinchbeck imitatorsof our man, buta calm, contained, poised consciousness of strength and self-confidence. Our man seems to feel that there is "something in him" that gives him a strength and firmness un- known to the majority of people. Every such man lias this inner consciousness, and I shall tell yovj ■what it is. As I said in the first chapter, there exists in Na- ture a Universal Dynamic Mental Principle. In tMfj principle each individual is a Center of Power. Tliis, Dynamic Principle in its outward manif estatioiw of one pole of its energy, at least, resembles a uni- versal will. That is, while its inner nature cannot be known, yet in the outer aspect of one of its i.'.oles of energy it resembles a universal will in oper,Atioii. everywhere. And, so, we are justified in thinki'ig of it as Universal Will-Power. The more positive a man becomes, in dyi amic mentation, the closer does he become in contact with this Universal Will. And the closer be is to this TTniversal Will, the more positive does be be ome. It is a case of action and re-action. "To him that hath shall be gi^'en" applies in this case. The qual- ity of dynamic positivity draws one to the Uni' ersal Will, and the nearness to this will renders one more and more positive. But there is this to be noted in conneetior with 146 MIND-POWER this troth. When a man feels the sense of powfls^' ' that comes from a mental relation with the Universal Will, and allows the energy to flow through him, and to manifest in his acts, he has a reservoir of will- power back of him which is inexhaustible and never failing. But if, in his conceit arising from some kuc- cessful action, he begins to think that the power is due to some "personal strength," then he becomes "conceited" and "the pride of personality" grows upon him. This is where he makes his mistake. By this personal view of the matter he fences himself off from the Universal Will and limits his force to that portion which is locked up within hie own mind, in- duced there by the will of the universe. Such a one separates himself from the source of power and puts up a barrier between himself and the universal sup- ply. This is in accordance with the inner teachings of the great schools of occultism, and which teachings agree perfectly with the latest theories of modern Science. There is a great ocean of Universal Will, in which we are but centers of activitj', and if we will but open ourselves to the power and will contained therein, we will have an unfailing store of power upon which to draw. Let us pause for a moment and see what forces are combined in this active mentative center. In the first place we see that the dual aspect of the Mind-Power manifests itself always. That which we have called the Desire-Force, and that which we have called the Will-Power, appear as the two men- DYNAMIC INDIVIDUALITY 147 tative poles. You know this well, for you have studied the previous chapters wherein this point is hrougbt out and illustrated. But here is an as- pect of the matter that I did not bring out in those chapters. I allude to the resemblance of the two phases of Mind-Power, i. e., Desire-Force and Will- Power, to the physical phenomena of magnetism and electricity respectively. Desire-Force, like magnetism, manifests in a drawing, pulling, attracting power; while Will- Power, like electricity, manifests in a pushing, com- pelling, driving power. Desire-Force, like magnet- ism, tends to draw things inward and to itself ; while Will-Power, like electricity, tends to drive things outward and away from itself. This dual manifesta- tion of energy is seen all through Nature in all of its manifold forms and conditions. There is ever the drawing in to a center — and there is ever the pushing outward from the center. And this law manifests upon the mental plane as well as upon the physical plane. We have heard much of people being "magnetic," that is, having the power to attract persons to them — but that is merely one phase of the operation of dynamic mentation. We do not bear so much about people being "electric," and yet the term is just a? proper and applicable as the term ' ' magnetic. ' ' "Electric" people are the people in whom Will- Power is strongly developed and manifest. These peoDle "get after" others and make them do things. 148 MIND-POWER They are the active, energetic, forceful men t wonien who get behind things and push them aloi^ All great leaders possess this phase of energy 1 marked degree. The mere mention of the matt to you will cause you to think of instances of j pie who possess mentative "electricity." are men who are able to make the crowd j them do their bidding— they are able to work th( will upon the mass of people. These men are i to possess a strange power, but very few understiti it. It is entirely different from the fascinating, i luring, charming, attractive personality of the " netic" man, for it forces, and compels by sheer for^ of character and will, instead of drawing and I tracting. You will see why I have spoken of t two phases as masculine and feminine respectiv^ when you consider their different manner of maj testation. But, while both of these forms of power, the " netic" and the "electric," have their strong poii and advantages, I hold that the highly developed! dividual must have both of these phases developi highly. In short, instead of being merely "magnetic," on the one hand, or very "electri on the other band, the ideal man must be "eleeti magnetic." In other words, he must have sides of his mentative energj' highly developed t in full operation. In this way he is able to manifi a combined influence which wiU make him a ^ DYNAMIC INDIVIDUALITY li9 giant of dynamic mentation— a Dynamic Individ- ual. I would advise all who wish to become dynamic individuals to cultivate the mental image of the Uni- versal Will— think of it as a great ocean of "Will- Power, in which you live, and move, and have your being. Feel yourself in touch with it. Think about your relation to it, constantly, and you will find that your mind will gradually open out to admit of the inflow of its power. And when you learn to know the real source of power, then you will no longer deceive yourself and attempt to shut off the flow of the Uni- versal Will by erecting petty personal barriers of conceit. This inner consciousness of the dynamic individ- ual especially if he understands its true nature, will react on a man's personal manner and appearance and cause to manifest in him that calm, serene, pos- itive "air" of power, will and strength, that the great leaders of men always possess. And that "air" is in itself a mighty suggestion to others, for the world has learned to associate it with power and ability. Just as the feeling manifests itself in action, 80 will the outward action tend to induce the inward feeling, as I have told you. If you will endeavor to imitate and reproduce the outward carriage, man- ner, "air" and demeanor of this dynamic individual, you will have taken a step toward inducing a corres- ponding Mental State in yourself. But do not re- luaiu satisfied with this— go right to the fountain- 150 MIND-POWEK head and receive yonr power direct from the XJm versal "WiU. But there ia something else about the dynai individual which is different from Will-1 The will is a cold, keen, powerful force, devoid i color— it is like a great natural force devoid of 1 ing or emotion, although acting in response then What other great force is manifesting strongly j our dynamic individual ? Desire-Force J Yes, t the other great force within him— Desire- Force, matter how strong a will a man may have, evi though he gets in the closest touch with the versal Will, he will accomplish nothing unless he ^ possessed of a developed desire. One must "is to do things, before he wills to do them. Let us I what this Desire-Force is. The Universal Mind-Power seems to be a stro^ something, containing within it all the force , energj- there is in existence. It does not seem 1 have the attributes of personality about it, when it becomes manifested in personal minds, centers of power. When a personal center, or i sonal mind, is established in the Universal, ■ there seems to spring into manifestation a creati desii-e, which constantly urges toward outwd expression. This Desire-Force is seen all through Nature, all of her fonns, and is inherent in all that we ( Life Energy — that is, the energy which prompts t building up of form and shape. This Desire-i DYNAMIC INDIVIDUALITY 151 causes the seed to sprout and the plant to grow — the cell to multiply, and the higher forms to evolve from the lower. It is the -essence of the great Creative Life Energy ever manifest la Nature. It is essen- tially a feminine principle, and la constantly desiring to "give birth," "bring forth," "create." It stirs the will into action, and never is satisfied unless it is performing creative work, mental or physical. Now, there are persons who seem to possess but very little of this Desire-Force, except on the phys- ical plane. Their mental plane manifests very lit- tle of this force, and consequently they accomplish little or nothing of the world's work, and merely carry out the desires of others. But there are others who have this force manifested most strongly within them. They are possessed of a craving, long- ing, desiring force that impels them to "do things." That is, it fills them with ardent desires, along men- tative lines of creation, which are ever crying out for satisfaction. The strong men and women of the world have this Desire-Force highly developed, and its effort toward expression is what causes these people to accomplish things. Now do not mis- take me. This desire is not always in the direction of "owning things," but rather in the direction of "doing things." It is true that when one's desires are along the line of accumulation, the force will be bent in tiiat direction; but it may be less along these lines, and in that case the accumulation will be a mere incident of the "doing." 152 MINDPOWER Our dynamic individual has a great deal of ] sire-Foree within him. He "wants" to do cert things, and he wants to do them very much, wishes to accomplish certain ends, and the de^ becomes an ardent, glowing force that stirs up i desires in those around liim, and at the same ( incites his own will into action. His Desire-Po: combines with his will, and wonderful things i accomplished. When you come into contact with a man of I tense desire, you can fairly feel the force emanati from him. Our dynamic individual has learned 1 concentrate his Desire-Force. When he wants sffl particular thing, he forgets about the minor thin and focuses his desire upon the particular th: craved by him, and thus draws it toward him i intense energy. The will drives, forces, impels compels, with a "push" — the Desire-Force dra'jl induces, pulls toward one, with an irresist( "pull." When our dynamic individual meets ym and wants you to do something, you can feel the j of his Desire-Force, drawing, coaxing, inducing, i luring, and attracting you toward him and objects. One who wishes to "do things" should 1 flame of his desire burning bright. He should ( tinually pour upon it the oil of suggestion, and plj before it the lantern-slides of the mental imagesa the thing desired. If you will study the man' t strong desire, you will see that he draws everyl DYNAMIC INDIVIDUALITY 153 toTvard him that he wants. He has a "pull" upon tilings and leaves nothing undone in the direction of his want. He is hungry and thirsty with desire, and lie seeks satisfaction wherever it may be found, his "w-its being sharpened by the intensity of the desire. And he draws people to him by the very strength of Inis Desire-Force. You will find that people will i-nstiinctively fall in with the suggestions and urg- m^s of the strong desire naan. People, as a rule, air.e "drawn" rather than "pushed" or forced into ^ "tiling. The seductive, drawing, charming, fas- *^iriating force of men is that of Desire-Force, not **f "Will-Power. Yes, again I say to yon that he "W^tio would succeed must, of necessity, keep his fire *^f desire burning bright and tieree, else it will not ^"^^sken into action his own will, nor stir the desire "1 others. ^VVe talk much about Will-Power, and its posses- ^^'^si, but the majority of men fail because they do "•^■fc desire things hard enough. They must want ixigs "the worst way," and then they will bend irything toward getting them. This is true in ease of both good and evil desires— the law is thi tk. ™^ same in both cases, and operates along the same "**-"«, We are acquainted with the disastrous conse- ^5**nces attendant upon the possession of evil de- ^*-'*"es, and have seen many instances of the harm ^""•^onght upon others by reason thereof. But did y^^M ever stop to think that the same degree and in- ^^tisity of desire, turned in tlie right direction, wouia 154 MIND POWER accomplish wonders of good works? If you will put into your plans of proper attainment and aspi- ration the same degree of energy tliat the evil man puts into his schemes of selfish gratification, you will be able to move mountains of diificulties. This Desire-Force in the dynamic individual is that which causes us to feel that *'he wants this thing, and is going to have it." You know the feel- ing, if you have come into contact with strong men. And they draw their own to them by the exercise of this elementary force of Nature. They learn that by mentally drawing to themselves a supply of the Universal Energy they are enabled to trans- form it into Desire-FoTce, as well as Will-Power — the emotive pole is charged, as well as the motive pole. Both draw from the same source, and both have a constant source of supply. And both may manifest a wonderful degree of this transformed energy, in the shape of Will-Power and Desire- Force. In our dynamic individual, both poles are fully charged, and in active operation. Now I have said enough about the theory of the dynamic individual. I shall ask you to read over what I have said above several times— in fact re- read it until you thoroughly understand it. And then I shall take you on to the practical work and ^sercises calculated to develop in you the qualities of that individual. Taking it for granted that you have carefully considered what I have just said, I DYNAMIC INDIVIDUALITY 155 shall ask you to perform the following exercises, etc.: Exercise I. In order to realize the reality of the statement that you are a centre of Mind-Power, you must first enter into a realization of the exist- ence of a Great Ocean of Mind-Power itself. Do not pass over this lightly, for it Is most important. You must begin to create a mental picture of the Universe as a Great Ocean of Living Mind-Power, vibrating with life and force and power. Endeavor to make this mental picture so clear that you can "see it with your mind's eye," and until it becomes a reality to you. Picture yourself as alone in the Universe and surrounded on all sides with a vibrat- ing, pulsating sea of energy, or power. See that power is locked up in that ocean, and that the ocean exists everywhere. Shut out from your mental field all other persons, things or conditions. Imagine yourself as alone in the great Ocean of Power. You must practice frequently upon this mental picture until you are able to visualize it distinctly. This does not mean that you have to actually see it, just as you do this printed page; but that you should be able to actually feel it. You will begin to under- stand just what I mean after you have practiced this a little. This Great Ocean of Mind- Power must be- come real to you— and you must practice until it does so become. The importance of the above exercise may he un- derstood when I tell you that it will be impossible for you to manifest more than a moderate degree of power until you are able to realize yourself as a real centre. And it will be impossible for you to realize yourself as such a centre until you realize the exist- ence of the Ocean of Power itself. For how can j'ou think of yourself as a centre of power, in an Ocean of Power, until you realize the existence of the Ocean itself? The Universal Ocean of Mind-Power con- tains within itself all the Mind-Power, force and en- ergy that there is. It is the source from which all forms of energy arise. It is filled with an infinite number of tiny centres of energy, of which you are one. And in the degree that you draw upon it for strength, so will you receive strength. By all means endeavor to clearly visualize this Great Mind-Power Ocean, for it is the source of all the force with which you are filled and which you hope to acquire. Enter into this great realization, friends, for it is tlw first step to poiver. Exercise II. The second exercise, which will tend to increase your vibration as a centre of Power, is as follows: Picture yourself clearly as a Centrr o? PowEK in the Mentative Ocean. While seeing the Ocean on all sides of you, you must see yourself as the Centre of it. Do not be frightened at this idea, for it is based on the Truth. The highest occult teaching informs us that the Great Mentative Ocean has its centre everywhere and its circumference no- u-herc. That is, that being infinite in space, there is no finite spot that is really its centre and yet, on DYNAMIC INDIVIDUALITY 157 the other hand, every point of activity may be called its centre. Being extended in every direction infin- itely, its circumference is nonexistent. Therefore you are most certainly justified in considering yourself as a centre of the Ocean of Mind-Power. Each dynamic individual is such a centre, and each has his ■world circling and revolving around him. Some have a small world, and some have mighty ones. There are centres so mighty and exalted that the human mind cannot grasp their importance. But even the tiniest point of activity is a centre in itself. So hesitate not, hut hegin to form a mental picture of yoorself as a centre of power. Practice this exercise until you can clearly feel yourself as a centre of power. You must learn to think of yourself as a focal point of force in the ^eat Ocean of Mind-Power. Just as the great body of electricity manifests itself in tiny points of activ- ity, so does Mind-Power express itself in you who are a point of activity within itself. In urging you to perfect yourself in this realization I would impress upon you the fact, known to all advanced occultists, that in the measure of your realization of this mighty qaalitj' of the Ego will be the measure of the power possessed by you. All of the strong men of our times, and of all ages, have had this realization, intuitively or instinctively; that is, altho-ugh they may not have known the philosophy or science of the matter, they have felt this sense of the power of the Ego in them- selves, which gave them the confidence to do things 158 MIND-POWEB and tbe "Will-Power and Desire-Force to carry t their Tindertakings. It is this feeling of inher< strength that makes men strong and snccessfnl a positive. And this feeling and realization may be 4 veloped and unfolded within any one, providing 1 wants Wsuificieiitly." By the exercise of your desire" and will yon may build un this realization of power, and in the building up there will come to you a con- stantly increasing stream of desire and will. In the measure of your expression will be the measure of your impression from the source of all positive im- pression. Exercise III. The third exercise consists in the realization of the nature of the Power. This force, energy or power with which you are being filled, and which you are now attracting toward your centre, consists of the electrical manifestation of Will-Pow- er and the magnetic manifestation of Desire-Force. These two constitute the dual phases of the one force —Mind-Power. And, therefore, you must begin to realize that these qualities are within you in order that you may be able to express them, and thus gain the additional and increased power that comes to those who do express them. You must begin to realize that you have a will which is capable of im- pressing itself on the things, persons and circum- stances of your world — and you must begin to realize that you have a desire which attracts to you the things, people and circumstances of your world, and which, in fact, draws to you tbe very material from DYNAMIC INDIVIDUALITY 159 vshicli your world is made. "When you realize thia dual force within you, it will begin to express itseli automatically. The act of realization causes the men- tal machinery to begin to work smoothly and effec- tively. Therefore picture to yourself this dual force within you. See yourself as influencing, and acting Dpon the world around you. See yourself as a power in the land. And also see yourself as an attracting force, drawing to you that which you need and want and require, consciously and unconsciously. Picture yourself as a Dynamic Individual. You are an in- dividual because you are a centre of power. You are dynamic because you possess the Electric Will and the Magnetic Desire— the twin-poles of Mind-Power. Carry with you this thought constantly and repeat it often to yourself and you will find it a source of Power — you will find the Power pouring into you when you say or think it. Wlien you feel weak, or when you feel the need of additional Power, use this Statement of Power : "I Am Dynamic!" And when you say it, or think it, you must picture to yourself just what you mean by the statement, hence the importance of knowing just what is memit. Do not pass over this Statement of Power as un- important, but try it in actual practice and you will realize what a Battery of Power you have become. Those around you will soon become aware of a new sense of power within you. Keep this Statement of Power to yourself. Do not MIND-POWEB invite the ridicule of those around yon hy telling th« the source of your Power. Do not bother about thei —if they are individuals themselves they will under- stand without being told; and if they are not all the telling in the world would not make it clear to them. Hoe your own row and mind your own busi- ness—and let them do the same. No one can build up bis individuality except from within. And each must work out his own salvation and climb the lad- der of attainment for himself. And the sooner that people learn this the better will it be for all. Don't be a leaner, or a leaning-post. Don't lean on any- one else— and don't let anyone lean on you. There has been too much of this foolish business about living other people's Uves for them, or letting other people live your life for you. Each man or woman must grow into an individual by his or her own Work and life. There is no such thing as vicarious individuality. Don't be afraid to "assert the I" — to claim yonr rightful heritage and birthright to he an individual, and not a parasite. And don't be afraid to shake off and trim off the parasitic persons that have encumbered your own unfoldment toward indi- viduality. Let the parasites take root in the earth, just as you have done ; let them fasten their roots in the great body of strength and power instead of in the mental body of someone else ; let them stop their second-hand nourishment and learn to draw 'rom the first source. This is the only way, and tl 'Ack-— DYNAMIC INDIVIDUALITY 161 of the knowledge of it is filling the world with weak- lings instead of with individuals. Therefore think of these things; hold them well in mind when you make your Statement of Power: ' ' I Am Dynamio ! ' ' In considering the qualities that go to make up the person in whom Dynamic Mentation is likely to be strongly developed, I may mention the following: (1) Physical Well-Bein^; for there is a certain strength about a man or woman in strong, robust health, that must he taken into consideration. It is true that some persons not physically well, but un- healthy, have exercised strong powers, but this was in spite of their lack of physical health, and owing to a strong will which allowed them to master even this obstacle. But, all else being- equal, there is a power abtjut a strong, healthy, vigorous person that makes itself felt. (2) Belief in One's Self; for without this no one manifests positivity. Believe in your own power and ability, and you impress others with the same belief. Confidence is contagious. Cultivate the ' ' I Can and I WUl." (3) Poise; for the calm, well-poised, imperturb- able man has an enormous advantage over one lack- ing these qualities. The man who meets any enier- gency without "losing his head" has something about him that makes him looked up to as a natural leader — he has one of the qualities of positivity. Coltivate the calm masterful mood- ■^» 362 MIND-POWEE 1 (4) Fearlessness; for fear is the most negative emotion in tlie being of man. Fearlessness is a most positive quality, just as fear is the most negative. Cultivate the "I Dare-I Do!" (5) Concentration; for this "one-pointedness'* focuses the "Will-Power upon the object. Do one thing at a time, and do it with all the power that there is in you. (6) Fixity of Purpose; for yon must learn, i know what you want to do, and then "stick to if' nntil it is done. Cultivate the Bull-dog quality— it i needed. To those who recognize the need of the mentioned qualities, but who lack them, I ■ recommend the careful study and determined applica tion of the principles stated in the chapters of t book, entitled, "Mental Architecture," "Makin^ over oneself" and '^Mind-Building", respectively! CHAPTER XII. MENTAL ATMOSPHERE. Our dynamic individual places himself in a recep- tive attitude only toward the great Universal "Will, and in a positive attitude toward all else. In this way he really becomes a most active center of Power, which becomes manifest to all with whom he comes in contact. He may not realize just what he is doing, and may know nothing of the truth herein stated, but, still he feels that he is "in touch with something" that aids and assists him and which gives him strength and dj-namic force. He may talk about his "luck," or his "lucky star," or he may secretly be- lieve himself sjwcially favored by Providence (this is a secret belief of the majority of successful men) — but the fact remains that every positive and suc- cessful man feels, underneath it all, that he has SOMETHING back of him. And this belief takes form in action and causes bim to manifest that "air" of calm, positive power and self-confidence noticeable in Buch men in every instance. You will readily see, from what has been said, that the "Personal Atmospheres" of persons depend npon the character of their naental states, and are the result of the mental currents emanating from them. 164 MIND-POWER Every person has his or her own mentative anra, < body of radiant mentative energy, which flows froi them in all directions. These mentative atmospherej affect the people with whom one comes in contat You know people who seem to carry with them ! atmosphere of "feeling" which affects a roomful < people, or even a building. This atmosphere may I positive or negative in its effect— that is, stimulating or depressing. All of these things arise in the w^ which I have mentioned. It is related of Kachel, th^ great French actress, that although she was beautiful in form or face, still she had that indescrih able charm of personality about her that causa every one to consider her a beautiful woman, so greai was her fascinating charm. That which so many call "Personal Magnetism,^ as distinguished from Personal Force, consists i this mentative atmosphere, or radiant mentative ( ergy, which induces in all within its field a feeli of similar emotion or vibration. The charm of t "fascinating person" is accounted for in the samfl way. It is all a matter of the mentative currenfl^ inducing feeling in others. The power called "Faa3 eination," which has been known in all times and countries, arises from the same cause. It operates by the strong mentative currents pouring from one's mind, and inducing mental states in others. The mentative force emanating from each indi- vidual creates a mental atmosphere around him which often extends a considerable distance from MENTAL ATMOSPHERE 165 his body, especially in the case of strong individuals, whose mental atmosphere is felt when they enter a room or public place. Persons whose personality is weaker have a mental atmosphere extending only a few inches from their bodies, and which is scarcely perceptible to those coming in contact with them. The man who feels himself to be a dj-namic indi- vidual carries with him an aura of mental atmosphere of positive strength, which is plainly felt by those coming in contact with him. People say about such a man that he "has something about him" which im- presses them, but which they fail to understand. It will be worth your while to study this mental atmosphere of some strong man with whom you come in contact, for now that you have the secret of the matter you may take some valuable lessons from him. I cannot very well describe this "air" to you, for unless you have met a man of this kind you will not understand it. But it is a very different thing from the pompous, self-sufficient, self-important, fussy air and demeanor manifested by the cheap imitators of these great men. The dynamic individual does not tell you how great, or smart, or important he is — he leaves that for his cheap imitators ; he makes you feel his strength by his very manner and atmosphere, without saying a word. He has that "something about him" that people notice and wonder at. And that "something" comes from his conscious or un- conscious relation to the Universal "Will. 166 MIND- POWER The "little fellow" who tliinks he is one of I "big ones" believes that his strength comes from l personality, and sooner or later he stumbles becauj of this error. But the real "big ones" of life 1 better; they may not understand it ail, but some i they feel that there is a "something" back of t from which they are able to draw strength and pow and believing this, they are filled with courage a^ daring and radiate their power on all sides. Th^ may talk of their "lucky star" or "special proti denee," or else believe themselves to be "special favored of God" (as is the case with at least c the "bigmen" of modem finance), but no matt what may be their special interpretations of l "something," they all recognize its existence i trust to it. And this conviction and realization g to the strong individuals that air of calm, j power and self-confidence that impresses those ■; whom they come in contact and which forms th<^ mental atmosphere. And in giving you instructions in the art of bui ing for yourselves a positive mental atmospheres can do no better than to refer you back to first p ciples and again bid you to realize that you are a i namic focus— a centre of power— in the great 1 versa] Will, having the dual attribute of Will-Pow and Desire-Force. In short, that you are a living d namo. If you will bnt get this realization firmly fixed | your mind you will automatically create for yonrsd MENTAL ATMOSPHERE 167 a most positive mental atmosphere that will be felt by all with whom you eorae in contact. So first, last and all the time build up this realization. Say to j-our- self, "I AM Dynamic!" — then think it out; dream it out; act it out. And, of course, always realize what all this means. Tou are the channel through which is pouring the Universal Will-Power and in the degree that you alloiv the current to so flow through you, so will be the power you are able to manifest. When you wish to manifest a special degree of power just let this statement: "I am Dynamic!" flame out in vivid letters in your mind. When you feel that you are being approached by some other person of strong will, whom yon do not wish to influence you, just bring this statement into effect, and you will ac- tually see the effect of it upon the other person. He will feel your strong mental atmosphere and will cease trying to affect you. And even when there is no spe- cial need for making the statement of power it will be well for you to keep it burning bright within you, for by so doing you strengthen your realization, and your mental atmosphere reflects the inner mental state. So much for the general mental atmosphere. As ■we proceed we shall see that the dynamic individual creates special mental atmosphere around him by his mental states, depending upon his will or desire at the time. Not only does his will and desire affect oCber persons directly by meana of meiita.V cuti^oA.?., but mentative induction is also set up by the mental atmosphere, without any special effort on his part- In this place I wish to call your attention to the importance of always maintaining your positivity as a means of mental training. Do not allow yourself to become negative to others, even where there is noth- ing lost by so doing, for by this neglect you create a negative habit which will cause you trouble to over- come later. If a person comes into your presence and his personality seems likely to dominate or over- power yours, by all means interpose a mental re- sistance right then and there. It is not necessary for you to manifest the same in words, for that would make you ridiculous in many cases; nor is it neces- sary for you to give any special physical expres- sion to your mental state. Simply look the person in the eye, carelessly and without any special effort, ax the same time making the mental statement, "I am Dynamic !" and you will find that your positivity will rise until it is equal with his, and your feeling of negativity will disappear. In exceptional cases you may add mentally, "1 am more dynamic than you 1" It will be well for you to practice the creation of special mental atmospheres in order to establish the habit and thus render it easier to avail yourself of the same on special occasions. Opportunities of all kinds will present themselves to you in everyday life. The gist of the matter is to surround yourself with a mental aura of such a nature that people will act toward you as you wish them to do. A few examples MENTAL ATMOSPHERE may help you to get a clearer idea of what I mean, 80 I herewith give you the same. I know a lady, living in Chicago, who was con- stantly complaining that people were "always run- ning over her" on State Street (the crowded retail street of the great Western metropolis). She said tliat they were always crowding her off the sidewalk and pushing, bimiping and jostling her in a most an- noying manner. She asked me for instructions as to what thought she should use to prevent individuals from so acting. I answered that I did not think it was necessary to consider the separate individuals in the case, but that she should "treat" tJie crowd as a whole, by means of a protective mental atmosphere. I then advised her to build up a mental atmosphere around this statement: "People respect my rights; they will not unduly impose on me in the street; 1 deny the power of the crowd to impose on me," And she followed this advice, and in a short time had built up a protective mental atmosphere which acted almost magically upon the crowd, who stepped aside and gave her a full right-of-way on the pave- ment. She would simply go on her way calmly, se- renely and undisturbed, and the crowd let her alone. I must add that I think that the original trouble arose from a subconscious dislike of crowds and an ex- treme shrinking from people, the result being that this dislike acted almost as does fear, and really at- tracted to her the interference of people. The new 170 MIND-POWER mental atmosphere dispelled the old one and i her an additional positivity besides. In this connection I would call your attentioaJ that remarkable psychological fact that fear acts 1 an attracting force, in a negative way. If you i a thing very much you attract it to you— and if 3 fear it very much you do likewise. This appaW contradiction has bothered many students of the s ject, hut it seems very plain to me. I think the % planation is that in both cases a vivid mental ] tare is held, and the attraction results along the 1 of visualization, which always tends to material^ the mental image. Another ease, from actual experience. AnolJ lady, also a resident of Chicago, complained that i clerks in the great department stores would not tn her courteously, hut would keep her waiting witl paying her any attention, and in other ways woi treat her like a "human door-mat." She said i would not have minded this so much if other won? were treated likewise, but that while she was ignoz^ others would receive the greatest attention, clerks "falling over themselves" to wait upon thd I told her that she had gradually built up around 1 a mental atmosphere of expectancy — that she ] fallen into the habit of expecting such treatment,^ consequently she got what she expected. I think^ in the beginning she had manifested a timid, "1 ble," meek, "womi-of-the-dust" state of miDdl she entered the big stores, which somewhat < MENTAL ATMOSPHERE 171 awed her. And then, after this drew upon her the neglect of the clerks, who seem very ready to wipe their feet on human door-mats, she grew to regularly expect the shabby treatment. It was not a matter of dress, or anything of that kind, for she dressed well — and, for that matter, I know women who dress poorly who never get any such treatment, for they understand the underlying mental laws too well for that. It was simply a matter of a negative men- tal atmosphere. I told her to "brace up" and create a new men- tal atmosphere, around this general statement: **The clerks like me; they like to wait on me; they ^ve me every attention; they do this because thep like me, and also because I insist upon it as my right !" The charm worked in a short time, and now the good lady reports that the clerks not only treat her well but even take the trouble to call her at- tention to desirable selections, special bargains, and all the rest of it The cure was perfect. I call your attention to the above statement- please note that the first part of it operated along the lines of Desire-Force, and the latter part along the lines of Will-Power. The statement of the first- mentioned lady (the one who objected to street- crowding) was altogether along the lines of Will- Power. I ask the students to study and analyze each of these cases, because by so doing they will be able to apply the principles in cases coming under their own observation, and also in their own cases. 172 MIND-POWER I once directed a lady who complained tliat she was unpopular, and that "nobody loved her," etc., etc., to apply a similar method. She created a new mental atmosphere around her along the lines of the general statement: "People like me; they find me attractive; they love me, and like to be in my company." After a time she reported that from a Btate of "wall-flower-dom" she had become quite a favorite, and in fact was at a loss to adjust herself to the changed conditions, finding somewhat of an embarrassment of "likings" and "lovings." This was a ease of Desire-Force pure and simple. Now do not imagine for a moment that in the above cases, and hundreds of others known to nae personally, the desired result was obtained merely from repeating, parrot-like, or like a phonograph, the words of the statement. This talk of the power of mere words, and all the rest of such talk, has wearied me greatly. I liave seen and heard so much of this nonsense since I have become acquainted with certain people who consider themselves "in the New Thought" that I dislike to use the words "state- ment" or "affirmation.." These people have im- agined that by the mere repetition of words they could work miracles. Pshaw I What nonsense ! They remind me of the Chinese, and certain other people who write long prayers on slips of paper and allow them to flutter in the breeze, hoping that the gods will accept their prayers at face value while the prayer-makers are amusing themselves elsewhere. MENTAL ATMOSPHERE X7^ Sometimes they attach little hells to the prayers in order to attract the attention of the gods. Others paste the prayers on water-wheels, turned by the streams, thereby claiming credit for a prayer at each turn of the wheel. Cheap praying that! Oh, don't laugh— some of you are just as foolish. You have been making your statements and affirmations in the same spirit, and now feel disappointed because "nothing happened." Of course nothing happened; how could it be otherwise? I have said over and over again — and now say it over again another time— that the leords of them- selves are nothing; the real virtue lies in the feeling behind the words. If there is no feeling there is no result. In order to get the results you must erect the framework of words, and then build around it the structure of feeling, and expectation, and visualiza- tion. That's the way to do it. The words are merely the skeleton— the flesh and blood are the feelings and materialized visualizations. The ladies mentioned above, whom I have used as "typical cases" to illustrate the principle — did not rest content with words, for I wouldn't allow them to do so. I kept after them, insisting upon their using the proper mental exercises and methods — that's what did the work. And now I shall give you the same instruction and directions that I gave them- adapt them to your own cases and yon will be likewise successful. The kernel of the process of creating the mental 174 MIND-POWER atmosphere lies in what is called "visualization.** Visualization is simply llie creation of a strong men- tal image of the thing desired, the perfecting it each day until it becomes almost as clear as an existing material thing. Then the visualization tends to ma- terialize itself— that is, it begins to build around it- self actual material conditions corresponding with the mental framework. The statement of woras Is the pattern around which the visualized mental images form themselves. And the mental image is the framework around which the actual material conditions form themselves. The lady above men- tioned made her mental image of the street conduct of the crowd— and the people unconsciously felt it and built themselves around it. So in the ease of the lady in the department store, and the others men- tioned. The mental image manifested itself as a mental atmosphere, and gradually materialized. The thing to do in visualizing is to bring the posi- tive imagination to see and feel the thing as ac- tually existent. Then by constant practice and medi- tation the mental atmosphere becomes formed, and the rest is all a matter of time. See yourself as you wish to be. See others as you wish them to be. See conditions as you wish them to be. Think them out —dream them out— act them out. And materializa- tion will follow upon visualization, even as visualizimj tion followed upon the statement. In this connection, however, I must call your at- tention to the fact that the degrees of receptivity of MENTAL ATMOSPHERE other people to your mental atmosplieres and mental pictures depend entirely upon their degree of posi- tivity. They respond only in the degree that they re- spond to other mentative influences. The strong avoid influenceB to which the weak yield, in this as in every other phase of the phenomena. But do not let that cause fear on your part. You may make yourself positive — you have had the instructions given you, and it is now your own work to do the rest. I might write a whole hook on this subject of vis- ualization in the phase of forming mental atmos- pheres—but I have herein given you the underlying principles, and have also given you a few illustrative examples— you must do the rest yourselves. If you have carefully read this book, and have studied be- tween the lines as well as the lines themselves, you will have grasped the little details of the matter which will not he apparent to those who have not done so. Each will find in this book that for which he or she is ready — and not a hit more. I think the careful students among you will readily understand just what I mean hy this. If you do not understand, then I cannot help you out^ and you must wait until you unfold in understanding. But I would say that a re-reading of this work ia advisable— several re- readings, in fact. Each titne that you re-read it you will find something neiv that you had previously over- looked, and each reading will discover many hidden meanings now suddenly made plain. 17G MIND-POWER I The man who wishes to be successful in his deal- ings with his fellow-men must surround himself with a positive mental atmosphere. He must create an atmosphere of self-reliance and poaitivity that will overcome the negativity of those with whom he comes in contact. This positive mental atmosphere is that subtle influence that emanates from the strong men of affairs, and which affects, influences and controls people to a greater degree than the flow of words which many affect, believing it to be the key of suc- cess. "When you come m contact with one having a mental atmosphere of this kind you are affected by it, consciously and unconsciously. And if it has this effect on you in the case of other persons, why should you not reach out and possess this power yourself! Why should you not be a positive in- stead of a negative 1 The directions and exercises given in this chapter, coupled with the instruction given in other chapters of the book, should enable you to develop around yourself a most positive mental atmosphere, that will make you a power. But it all depends upon your- self—you must exercise your will and desire, just as you would do were they muscles that you wished to develop. The rule operates in the mental as well as in the physical world. In addition to the exercises given in preceding chapters, I would suggest that the following may prove useful to some of you, in special cases, in forming the positive mental atmos- phere. I shall merely give you the verbal frame- S^ENTAL ATMOSPHEKE work, and you must build around it the mental pic- ture, which in turn produces the mental atmosphere. But, remember, even in practising these esercisea never lose sight of the main Statement of Power, "I AM Dynamic 1" for that statement will impart life, vitality and energy to the other mental images and statements. . Here are the statements referred to — the verbal framework around which you are to build your men- tal picture that you wish to materialize on the ob- jective plane. You will find them useful in many cases: MENTAL FRAMEWORK. I. I surround myself with an atmosphere of suc- cess. n. I am positive. I have a strong will. I make a positive impression on those coming into my men- tal atmosphere. HI. I am fearless — absolutely fearless — nothings can harm me. rV. I kill out all worry and discouragement— I radiate hope, cheerfulness and good nature. I am bright, cheerful and happy, and make all around me feel the same way. V. I am well poised, calm and self-controlled. VI. I have a perfect mastery over my temper, emotions and passions, and all recognize this to be a fact. VII. I am at ease here, and all bashfuluess and timidity has departed. I am. calm, at ease and feef at home. 178 MIND-POWER VIII. People like me— I am surrounded with a mental atmosphere that causes people to like me. IX. I am master of my surrouadings— nothing disturbs me— nothing affects me adversely— I am master. X. I am surrounded with a mental atmosphere of protection. No one's adverse thoughts, currents or suggestions can penetrate this protective armor. I am safe from mental attacks, I am safe, strong and positive. In using any of the above statements be sure to follow my advice and instructions regarding the mental images, etc., which put fiesh on these verbal skeletons and make a living force out of the dry- hones of words. Remember the importance of men- tal imaging and visualization in this matter of creafr.'^ ing mental atmospheres. CHAPTER Xni. CHANNELS OF INFLUENCE, In the last chapter I spoke of the effect of men- tal atmospheres with which people surround them- selves. You will notice that in my discussion of that part of the subject I spoke only of the general influence exerted upon others, and not of the direct personal influence exerted by one man upon another in personal intercourse. Let us now consider the channels of direct personal influence. As I have told you elsewhere, every time two peo- ple meet there ensues a silent mental conflict, or struggle for supremacy, from which one or the other emerges a victor, and which victory is fully recog- nized by both of the parties to the proceeding. This mental struggle is usually the combat between the general mental powers of the two, without regard to special mental states induced at the time. But the man who is skilled in the art of dynamic mentation goes further than this, for he recognizes that he may concentrate his mentative energy into definite shape and form, and focus the force of his mental imagery direct upon the other person, with such force and power that the second person will feel the dynamic strength exerted. 180 MIND-POWEE This direct personal influence operates along the lines of both Desire-Force and Will- Power of course. I have explained elsewhere how the Will-Power may he used to awaken desire in another; and how it may also capture the will of the second person. I have also explained how Desire-Force induces a similar desire in the second person ; and also how it is often used to captivate the will of the other person. It is not necessary for me to repeat these things — you are supposed to be fully acquainted with them, from your study of this book. And so I shall proceed to a consideration of the channels of expression of per- sonal influence, and the methods usually employed by those using it. THE INSTBUMEUTS OF EXPRESSION. These channels of influence may be classified as follows : 1. Suggestive channels, consisting of (a) the sug- gestive manner, and (b) the suggestive tone, and (e) the suggestive word ; 2. The instrument of the eye ; 3. The instrument of the touch; and all of these three forms are, of course, merely the channels or instruments by which, and through which, the Mind- Power expresses itself— the channel through which pours the mentative energy. Let us consider them in the above order. In the chapters on "Mental Suggestion," you will find stated the active principles of that phase of the CHANNELS OF INFLUENCE 181 subject, with which you should thoroughly famil- iarize yourself. You will see there that suggestion is the outward symbol of the inward mental state, and that it is the inner state that gives vitality to the suggestion. Get this idea fixed firmly in your mind, and always think of the force behind the sug- gestion. I have explained to you, also, that when one receives a suggestion through a physical agent, there is induced in him the mental state correspond- ing to the one originating that physical suggestion. For example, if you feel yourself filled with con- fidence, energy and fearlessness, your outward appearance will reflect that inner state, and the outer appearance will become a suggestion to others. These others will instinctively feel that your inner state is as I have stated. And, this being so, a phys- ical suggestion made stronger than usual will pro- duce a deeper impression on others than would any ordinary suggestion. In view of the above, you will see why it is that those familiar with the subject deem it important to cultivate the suggestive channel instruments. Be- ginning with (a) the suggestive manner, you will see why it is that we are impressed with the manner of a man who manifests energy, self-confidence, and power in every motion. And also, why we have con- fidence in a man whose manner indicates that he is a person used to being trusted by others — accus- tomed to having confidence reposed in him. And BO I might mention hundreds of examples tending 182 MIND-POWER to show that if a man's manner conveys the impres- sion that he is used to being treated in a certain way, and that he is accustomed to acting in a certain way, we are very apt to accept tbe suggestion of manner, and fall into line with the rest of people. And if the man happens to be a good actor, we may be imposed^ upon and fooled by his suggestive manner. Not only does this law hold good in the case of th&M manner and appearance of success, strength, con^J fidence, etc., but it also operates along the lines i the appearance and manner of failure, weaknesaj^ and distrust. Do you not know of cases wbereii you have felt that certain persons were not worthy* of confidence ; or were not to be depended upon where \ strength of character was required ; or were not " likely to succeed ? Of course you have, and you acted upon the suggestion, too. In illustrating this point, I have frequently used the illustration of the two dogs, the one carrying himself in a manner betokening self-respect and an ability to prevent and resent undue liberties, and the other carrying his tail between his legs, in a manner and appearance indicating that he expected to be kicked and cuffed. The first dog is almost invariably-a treated with respect, even by the most miaehievoua."! youngsters; while the second one almost always u^ i vites to himself the kicks, tin cans and brick bat».J of tbe young hoodlums of the neighborhood. And.i this illustration is as true in the ease of people t in the case of dogs. Better take the hint I CHANNELS OF INFLUENCE 183 But, you may say, how is one to acquire the proper suggestive manner? My answer is that there is but one sure way, and that is to begin to think out the part; visualize it; and act it out. In other words, if you wish to convey a suggestive manner of confi- dence, you must begin to think "Confidence" from morning until night And you must also begin to visualize "Confidence" when you have the chance to do so— that is, you must maJie a mental picture of yourself as manifesting Confidence. And you must also begin to act out the part. Now about this "acting out," I would aay that I mean not only the "playing the part" in your in- terviews with people, but I also mean an actual se- rHes of rehearsals in private, just as you would per- brm if you were preparing to play a part on the age, in public. Tou must form a mental image of ow you would look and act if you were filled with lOnfidence, and were approaching people. You will aid that practice will improve you vei-y much in this ' way, and that you will soon acquire a manner that will "be like second-nature and will really serve to give the HUggestion of your manner to others with whom you come in contact. And, more than this, it will ae- ' tnally tend to build up confidence in yourself. Im- ne yourself as approaching strange people, and hen act out the part the best you know bow, improv- ing a little in ease, and smoothness of action each iiay. Think of how the actor on the stage impresses 'ou — and then remember that the manner was ac- 184 MIND-POWEK quired by constant practice, and work. And yon may do the same, and may manage to impress other peo- ple just as the actor does you. And what is true in I 'the case of "Confidence" is true regarding any char- J acter that you wish to play. Any and all charaetera ■ may be played out in this way, and an appearance Tand manner acquired which will give the suggestion to others. I wish I could make you realize bow much [.there is in this method. If you could realize how I some men have used it to acquire qualities that have J enabled them to prey upon the public, you would ■i realize how important it might be for you for legiti- \ jnate and honorable use. In this acting out, you must remember that the t 'practice will make you so perfect that the part will appear natural when you play it in public But with- out practice, an attempt to play it in public will make one ridiculous. Remember the illustration of the real actor, and you will have the secret of acting out. And also remember this, that in the measure that you "throw your mind" into the part, so will be your success. When you practice, you must throw your mind into the acting, jnst as you would if you were in earnest. It is the mind back of it all, re- member. The second suggestive channel or instrument is "the suggestive tone." This, too, may be acquired' by acting out. You must practice until yon arfr' able to express your meaning with "feeling" that all who hear may be impressed. You should begin your I CHANNELS OF INFLUENCE practice by choosing some eimple words in every- day use — "Good morning!" for instance. Try it now, and see how roughly, clumsily and crudely you give the morning greeting. Then try to imagine that yon are full of good eheer, energy, and bright- ness, and then throw your feeling into your "'good morning," and see how different it seems. Prac- tice this awhile and you will soon acquire a natural, cheery, bright, and invigorating tone when you say "good morning." You will not need a teacher in elocution to tell you how to do this. Try to feel the part, and you will express it naturally. Make your feelings more flexible, and your tones will reflect them. After you have mastered the simpler terms of expression, work up to larger sentences, and speeches. Try them on the chairs in your room, in imagining that people are seated therein; speak to them feelingly and with expression until you ac- quire the art. Yon will not realize how much you may gain by such practice until you actually try it. I wish that you could hear the testimony of some peo- ple who have acquired this art. There is nothing more important in personal in- fluence than a good suggestive tone. Think of the people whom you know, and then remember what an influence their voices have on you. Not only the quality of the voice, but the tone. You readily recog- nize the difference between the tone of the hesita- ting, timid, self -doubting person, and that of the con- fident, self-reliant individual. There is a subtle 186 MIND-POWEE vibration about the tone of the latter that causes one to feel confidence and respect, and which exacts obe- dience in a quiet, calm way, devoid of bluster or rant. If you will but think a moment, you will see that much depends upon the tone. You will see that when you say to a person, "You caul" the tone in which you say "can!" goes a long way toward pro- ducing the response. And so it is with the suggestive tone, no matter what it is made to express. It always impresses upon one that the speaker using it means '- what he says. And that is why many public men J practice year after year in mastering this instru- -' ment of influence— the suggestive tone. Again, would I refer you to the example of the actor — see how he manages to throw feeling into his tone. And you may do likewise, if you will but practice in earnest, and throw your mind into tJie work. Think of the tiling you wish to express — visualize it — and then act it out in your tone. You will be surprised at the rapid progress that you will make. Remember ■ ' always, though, the tone is but the instrument of eS'%3 pression of the mind back of it. Many people make the mistake of "speaking with. 1 the muscles instead of with their nerves," as on^ i writer has expressed it. In other words, they aeemj to throw muscular force into their tones, instead of 3 nervous energy, and in so doing they make a great J mistake, for the former has a dull, non-penetrating, ]l r effect, whereas the latter vibrates subtly and reachea | ■ the feeling part of one's mind. Feel, feel, feel, whs CHANNELS OF INFLUENCE 187 you wish to speak impressively, and your tones will reflect the same, and induce a corresponding feeling in others. The voice is a mighty indicator of the mental state within. Excepting the eye, no outward form of ex- pression of character responds so quickly and fully to the inner mental state as the -voice. The voice and eye are the two principal outward avenues of expression of the mental states within, and both reg- ister the subtle changes and degrees of the inner state. If you will stop to think for a moment and consider the different voices of the people you know, you wiil see that in nearly every case the voice gives one a clue to the character or prevailing mental states of the speaker. Not alone the quality of the voice but the tone. Fvery reader knows the difference be- tween the tones of the hesitating, timid, self-doubt- ing person, and that of the confident, self-reliant in- dividual. In the tone of the latter there is notice- able that peculiar something that denotes power and authority, and inspires attention, interest and re- sp€>ct, without need of vulgar self-assertion or blus- tering speech. Let us listen to the tones of our dynamic individual. First, it is under the control of his will. It is loud or soft, as be wills it to be^it never runs away from him. If the person to whom he is talking raises his voice to a strident pitch, our individual does not fol- low suit. On the contrary he puts a little more force into his tone, but keeps the pitch the same, and be- fore long, by his will, in bis evenly pit*iked.tOTy&,V<>i 188 mND-POWER will actually force down the pitch of the other to a normal degree. I have seen many instances of this fact, and have noticed that the temper of the other person is toned down in accord with his decreasing pitch of voice. A calm, even positive tone, in which the will is apparent in self-control and in forceful effect, will master the tones of others pitched in a fiercer key; and in the mastery of the voice of the other you will often effect a mastery of his will. By making captive the outer expression you often capture the inner man. There are two very good reasons for one studying! the voice of the dynamic individual, as follows: {1)T Because it is by his voiee that he manages to make I some of the most powerful suggestions upon others; ■ and (2) heeause by the expression in his voice, or rather the inner impulse causing the vocal expres- sion, he causes to flow out strong mentative cur- rents which affect and influence the other person. ] So in its inner, and outer, aspects the cultivation o£^ the voice is quite desirable. You will find that the dynamic individual partic- ularly if he is engaged in an occupation necessita- ting his giving orders, and directions, or advice, to others, has developed a voice resembling in many de- tails the "suggestive voice" habitual to the practi- tioner of mental suggestive therapeutics. The rea- son is plain. Both the man of business affairs and force, and the suggestionist, have accustomed them- selves to speaking in a forceful, firm, positive man- CHANNELS OF INFLUENCE i"ir, and thus fairly "driving home" their ideas ex- pressed in words. The man of affairs does not know just why he does this, but his tone is the outward ex- pression of his forceful mental state. And this is likewise true of the suggestionist, althought he may have deliberately cultivated the suggestive tone at the beginning of his practice. It is somewhat difficult to correctly define and ex- plain the suggestive tone, although if one once hears it he will never forget it. But I will try my best to make it plain to you here. In the first place, the sug- gestive tone is fairly charged with the mental idea hack of the words. Each word has an inner meaning, and tlie suggestive tone carries this idea with it, so that the hearer gets the full mentative benefit and influence of it. Do not imagine that this tone is theatrical, or tragic, or unnatural. It is none of these. It is a forceful, natural tone. Its expression is that of "being iu earnest" and meaning just what yon are saying. You know how you would speak if you were earnestly telling some one to do some important thing, upon which much depended. Well, that's the tone, modified of course by the particular circum- stances and necessities of each case. It must be in earnest— must be more or less "intense"— must have focused in it the "feeling" behind it, in sach a way as to awaken in the mind of the hearer the feel- ing back of the words. The voice of the dynamic individual is flexiblR, and adaptable to any mood or phase of feeling that I he wishes to induce in his hearers. It may be pos) tive and masterful, along tbe lines of suggestion 1 direct command, or autLority. Or it may be },ubtl| and Lnsinnating, along the lines of suggestion by aSj Bociation or imitation. Or it may assume a teacher- like tone, along the lines of suggestion by repetition, in which the statement is made in a quiet, convincing way, as a teacher makes his statements to his class, the repetition of which brings conviction to tbe mind of tbe hearer. Or it may take on that peculiar caress- ing tone which is noticed in magnetic men of a cer- tain type, who allure, cliann, fascinate and draw to them other people by reason of tbeir subtle power of "charming." This power, which finds its expres- sion largely in tbe voice always reminds me of a fe- male leopard or tiger, for the feline is mingled with the feminine in a peculiar way. This tone of the voice can be best described as "caressing"— when it is exhibited by one well versed in its use every word seems to be a soft caress, and has a peculiar soothing effect upon tbe bearer, lulling his will to sleep and opening his emotive mentality to the sug- gestions and mentative currents of tbe speaker. In short, the dynamic individual, in his use of tbe voice, has acquired to a certain degree tbe art of tbe actor and orator. He is able to express "feeling," real or assumed, by his voice, so that a eorrespond- mg mental state is set up in the minds of his hear- ers. And one may acquire this art. By practice i vibrant, resonant, expressive voice may be colti CHANNELS OF INFLUENCE 191, vated, and used, too, "with the greatest effect in per- sonal magnetism. As an instance of this let me cite you tiie ease of Nathan Sheppard, the well-known lecturer and authority on public speaking. Mr. Sheppard relates that when he first made up his mind to devote himself to public speaking he was told by his tutors that he would be a perfect failure in such a profession, because, as he says "My ar- ticulation was feeble; my organs of speech were in- adequate; if I would screv? up my little mouth it could be put into my mother's thimble." These facts were enough to discourage any raan, but Shep- pard rose above them, and determined to apply Ms will to the task of conquering these disadvantages, and mastering the subject of public speaking. And he succeeded marvelously. By pure will-power he, as he says, "increased my voice tenfold; doubled my chest, and brought my unoratorical organs somewhat in subjection to my wiU." He became one of the best public speakers of his time. So there is hope for all of you, if you will but nnanifest persistency and earnestness in your application of the will. The third suggestive channel is "the suggestive word." I may be able to explain this more clearly when I call your attention to the fact that each word is a crystallised thought. In every word there is an imprisoned thought. And when you lodge a word in the mind of another person, the crystal covering is dissolved, and the released thought manifests itself. And, this being so, it becomes important for one to carefully choose the crystallized thoughts, or words, v^liieh he wishes to implant in the mind of an- other. You should study words until you are ah\e t distingaish between those which carry a live, activ^^ feeling thought, and those less strong. Take the word "strong" for instance. Does it not diake you feel strength when you hear it forcibly and feelingly pronounced? Take the word "kind/' and see what feelings it arouses in you. Pronounce the words "lion" and "lamb," and see the different feelings you experience from the differing soundSiJ Take the word "crash," and see how it suggestafl the crashing, crunching, tearing, startling thing for which it stands. Compare the sound of the words "rough" and "smooth"— and you will see what I mean. The only way that I can point out to you to acquire the use of suggestive words is to study words themselves. Listen to the words used hy others, and note their effect on you. Take a small dictionary and run over its pages, and you will soon have a collec- tion of good, strong, -effective terms for handy use when occasion demands. A man does not have to he "highly educated" in the usual sense of that term, in order to use strong, suggestive words. Some in- stinctively choose vital words, charged with feel- ing, and such make their words felt. Think i this matter. In the use oi' all the three suggestive instmmentE or channels, remember that the object is to mal others feel the mental state you are expressing. Is the whole thing in a nutshell. CHAPTER XIV. INSTEUMENTS OK EXPRESSION. Nest in order in our list of instruments of channels of mentative expression is the eye, that most won- derful of all the human organs, and which is as much an instrument for the expression of Mind-Power as it is an instrument for receiving the sense-impres- sion of sight. Let us consider it in its former aspect. In the first place, the eye is one of the most potent and effective instruments of suggestion, although I have not included it in that class. The expression of the eye wUl induce mental conditions in others along the lines of suggestion, and those who understand and have mastered this art of using the eyes have at their disposal a wonderfu] instrument of suggestive influence. Those of us who have ever met a very "magnetic" man, or a "cliarming and fascinating" woman, have carried away with us a lively recollec- tion of "the expression of the eyes" of such a per- son. Actors and public speakers, as well as those whose business it is to meet and impress people, often make a close study of eye-expression in crder to produce a heightened effect along these lines. And what kind of an eye has our dynamic Individ- ^al1 Need you ask this question? What would you r I 194 r exuectt Ofal MIND-POWER expect t Of all the physical avenues of expresBion of the mental state within, the eye is the most potent and nearest to the "soul within." The eyes have well been called " the windows of the soul," and they give '1 a clearer idea of the inner man than all else com- bined. And, therefore, we may expect our magnetic man to have an eye that reflects the power within him. And we are not disappointed, for even a hasty ' glance will show that he has what people call "an 1 expressive eye." It manifests every mental state, at the will of its owner. Now stern, now tender, now commanding, now loving, now masterful, now ca- | ressing— it is an obedient instrument of the will op- [ erating it. And it produces the most wonderful sug- gestive effect upon those coming under its speU. As 4 I an inducer of mental states, the eye has no equal among the physical agents— even the voice, won- \ derfully potent though it be, must yield precedence I it. It is more than a physical agent— it is a di- rect avenue for the passage of mentative currents. Very dynamic people, when aroused by deep in- 1 terest, emotion or desire— combined with will— seem. J to hav^ a constant stream of mentative energy flow- 1 ing from their eyes, which is felt by those within 1 their field of influence. I need not call your atten- tion to the wonderful power of eye, for you are fully J acquainted with it from personal experience. Youl know how power shows itself in the eyes of people. - In cases where the will has been developed to a very high degree, it is true that the mentative energy can INSTRUMENTS OF EXPRESSION 195 be so concentrated by a very earnest and powerful glance that an actual physical effect may be produced. I have known and heard of cases in which a pow- erful glance halted people in their tracks. Cases of this kind are told of Napoleon, and others of de- veloped Will-Power, Andrew Jackson is said to have so paralyzed the will of a noted desperado by his glance that he surrendered meekly and accompanied his captor, although fully armed and heretofore deemed absolutely fearless and dangerous. The des- perado afterward said that he could not understand just why he had not killed Jackson where he stood. It is related in some of the ancient histories, or tales, that one of the old Greeks paralyzed an enemy by a single burning glance. You have all seen people flinch and quail before the masterful glance of one possessed of a developed Will-Power. You, per- sonally, know how this feel s. Fothergill says: "The steady conflict of the eye is familiar to many of us. The boy looks at his mother to see if she is in earnest in her threat; when older he likewise looks at his schoolmaster to read his purpose. Two men or women look at each other steadily; no word is said, yet the conflict is over soon. and one walks ahead of the other ever after." Oliver Wendell Holmes describes an "eye-battle'* as follows: "The Koh-i-noor's face turned so white with rage that his blue-black mustache and beard looked fear- ful seen against it. He grinned with wrath, and MIND-POWER 196 caught at a tumbler, as if lie would have thrown its contents at the speaker. The young Marylander fixed bis clear, steady eye upon bim and laid his band on bis arm, carelessly almost, but the Jewel felt it' was beld so that be could not move it. It was of no use. The youth was his master in muscle, and in that lideadly Indian hug in which men wrestle with their I eyes, over in five seconds, hut breaks one of their two backs, and is good for three-score years and ten, one trial enough — settles the whole matter — just as when two feathered songsters of the barnyard, game k and dunghill, come together. After a jump or two [.'at each other, and a few sharp kicks, there is an end I of it; and it is 'Apres vous, monsieur/ with the tbeaten party in all the social relations for all the rest 'of his days." The following rules for the cultivation of eye- expression were obtained from one of the leading au- ' thorities in this line in America. I herewith give I them in detail, for those who may desire to practice I them. I know of none better for the purpose. EXERCISES IN" ETE-EXPEESSION, "Begin by studying your eyes in a mirror. You will see that in the center of the eye-bail there is a black spot; this is called the "pupil" of the eye. The I larger circle surrounding the pupil is called the ris." The white of the eye surrounds the iris. The upper eyelid moving over the eyeball produces a variety of expressions, each giving to the face t I INSTRUMENTS OF EXPEESSION 197 totally different appearance, or expression of sagges- tive ineaning. All recognize the meaning of these different expressions, but very few of us understand the mechanism producing the impression. Standing before your mirror, study these various expressions. The following exercises may help you. "1. Hold the upper lid in such a position that its edge rests half-way between the pupil and top of the iris. This gives an expression of Calmness. "2. Best the edge of the upper eyelid at the top of the pupil. This gives an expression of In- difference. "3. The edge of the eyelid resting at the top of the iris gives an expression of Strong Interest. "4. The edge of the eyelid resting half-way over the pupil gives an expression of Deep Thought. "5. The edge of the eyelid resting just above the edge of the iris, and thus showing a narrow strip of white between the edge of the lid and the edge of the iris, gives an expression of Emotional Activity. "6. The above position, exaggerated so as to show as much of the white as possible between the edge of the iris and the edge of the Hd, will give an expression of Emotional Excitement. "Practice the above expressions and posi- tions, "With a little practice nearly every one may easily acquire the art of expression in the first four exercises, but the last two are more difficult of ac- quirement. The last exercise— Emotional Excite- ment—especially, is found to be quite difScult of at- 198 MIND-POWER taimnent, and but a small percentage are able to pro- duce the expression without considerable practice. Practice these movements until you can reprodtiee them without the aid of the mirror, just as a man may learn to shave without a mirror, by constant practice before one. The exercises will not only enable you to express the different mental states easily and freely, but will also tend to strengthen the muscles and nerves of the eyes themselves, pro- viding that you proceed gradually and do not over- task the eyes at the beginning. Do not scowl, or contract the brows in the practices. A few minutes at a time Is all that you should use in practicing. "When you have mastered the above exercises, especially Nos. 5 and 6, you may try the following, which is the most difficult of all: "7. Rest the eyelid in the position of Strong ' Interest (No. 3), and then at the same time lift the edge of the under lid to the lower edge of the pnpil. • This position gives the expression of Close Scru- tiny. "You will be surprised at the added power of i expression that the careful practice of the above exercises will give you. Tou will be able to manifest | more suggestive feeling, and will induce emotional \ I states of feeling in others. A little practice will < Igive you such convincing proof of this that yoa ■"will not need urging to further perfect yourself in j K^em. The expressions of Emotional Activity an3 Emotional Excitement especially will produce a ■ INSTRUMENTS OF EXPRESSION 199 startling resnlt if used on appropriate occasions when you wish to exhibit the appearance of the deep- est emotional excitement and force." DEVELOPMENT EXERCISES, Tie following Development Exercises are highly ' recommended by the same teacher who has devoted years to study and experiment along these lines : '*!. Open the eyes quite widely, but not so wide- ly as to strain them, and hold them in that position for a few seconds, gazing into your mirror, which must be directly in front of you on a level with your eyes. "While gazing open them a trifle wider still, without straining, and throw an intense ex- pression into them. Do not move the eyebrows, but allow them to remain normal. "2. Resume the above position, and then change to the expression of Strong Interest (see previous exercises), looking at yourself in the glass just as you would in looking at another person with that expression. "3. Eestmie position 1, and then gradually change to the expression of Emotional Activity (see previous exercises) , gazing at yourself in the mirror. "4. Resume position 1, and then gradually change to the expression of Emotional Excitement (see previous exercises), gazing at yourself in the mirror, "5. Resume position. 1, and then gradually ghange to the expression of Close Scrutiny (see 200 MIND-POWEE previous exercises), gazing at yourself in tlie mirror. "In the above exercises you must act as if the reflection of yourself in the mirror were in reality another person whom yoa wished to influence. The better you act this out, the better will your results be. '6, Practice the expression of Strong Interest r on persons to whom you are listening, until you feel Fthat you have awakened a response in them, I may add that the expression of Deep Istehest consists of but the same expression heightened by more feeling behind it; and the expression of Loving Interest is the same, "only more so." This "more feeling" may be either real or assumed, as in the case of the good actor. "7. Practice the expression of Close Scrutiny upon other persons upon appropriate occasions in which you desire to appear as taking a deep, critical interest in some proposition, undertaking, theoiy, etc. Many persons have built up a reputation for being ' good listeners' and ' keen observers ' by this practice. I mention it for what it may be worth to you. I am merely giving you the ' rules of the game,' not necessarily advising you to play it. And now I have reached that part of my subject in which I must speak of the power of the eye to convey mentative force. Owing to some law of ner- vous mechanism not fully understood as yet, the eye is one of the most effective mediums for the passage] of mentative currents from one person to anot^er^ I I INSTRUMENTS OF EXPEESSION 201 ( I shall not attempt to indulge in any special theory ] on the subject but shall proceed to the description J of the facts of the case. I may add, however, that 1 advanced occultists inform us that portions of thai human brain, during a manifestation of strong j L emotional effort, or exercise of will, resembles an in- candescent surface, glowing and phosphorescent^; And that also there are seen great beams of this in- I candescent energy streaming out from the eyes of a , the person, and reaching the mind of other persona. " t And more than this, these "beams" of energy trans- I mit mental states, thoughts, etc., of the person, I just as scientists have found that "beams of [ light" will carry waves of electrieitj", and have thus ' been able to send telegraphic, and even telephonic messages over such beams of light. One who has mastered the fascination of the eye, ' Lis able to convey most readily to others the menta- ttive currents which tend to produce similar mental rstates by mentative induction as explained else- wrhere in this book. If you will but remember the ' above illustration of the "beam of light" along which he electric and magnetic currents travel, and will | |iform a mental picture of these mentative beams ^rom the eye, you will understand the process much letter, and you will at the same time tend to give ) your own mentative beams a substantial reality, ^long the lines of visualization. That is, when yon rish to use these mentative heamsi you should im- ktgine them as actually existing in full force and 202 MIND-POWEE reality, thia will have a tendency to give them a ma- terial reality, and thus render them a highly efficient mediimi for the passage of your mentative currents. And now, right here is the best place to instruct you in the proper use of the eye in what has been. called "The Magnetic Gaze," but which would be more properly styled "The Dynamic Gaze." There has been much nonsense written on this subject, and in some of my own earlier writings I gave direc- tions along these lines which I am now able to re- place with more approved methods, and later dis- coveries coming from the study and experimenta- tion of myself and others along these lines. I am willing to improve upon my own methods as well ae upon those of others— I have no false pride upon this subject, and if tomorrow I find that I can im- prove upon my work of today, I shall do so and give my students the benefit of the change, instead of stubbornly "sticking to it," just because I had once stated a theory, fact, or result. There is no stand- ing still in scientific work — he who stands still really ■ goes backward. IThe former instructions regarding the "Magnetic Gaze" told the student to concentrate his gaze "at the root of the nose" of the other person, that is, right between his two eyes. Now this was all very well, but there is a far better plan. This focusing the gaze between the eyes of the other person, really results in "crossing" your gaze, and thus robbing it of a portion of the direct electro-magnetic power INSTRUMENTS OF EXPRESSION 203 that it possesses. You may prove this by holding up a pencil before your eyes, and focusing your eyes upon it as you draw it nearer and nearer to your eyes. The nearer you get to the pencil, or to the other person, the more will your gaze be "crossed" and the effect impaired- A gaze from a pair of "crossed eyes" is not nearly so dynamic as one from a pair of straight eyes, giving out a direct, forceful impression. The new "Dynamic Gaze" is performed as fol- lows: You do not focus your gaze at a point between the two eyes of the other person, but, instead, yon gaze directly and straightly into his two eyes with your two eyes. You will find this difficult, and tiring, if you perform it in the ordinary way— and herein lies the "secret." Instead of focusing your eyes upon his, as if you really wished to see the color of bis eyes, you must so focus your eyes that you are really gazing through him, as if he were trans- parent and you wished to .see something beyond him. A little practice before a mirror will show you what I mean better than I can explain it to you in words. Practice at "gazing through" objects will aid you in acquiring this gaze. Try for instance focusing your eyes upon the wall opposite you as you raise your eyes from this page. Then as you look at the wall slowly pass your hand before your eyes at a distance of about two feet, but don't change your foaus— don't see the hand plainly, but keep 204 MIND.POWER vour gaze focused on the wall, as if you could see it through the hand. This gaze must not consist of a blanlt, vacant, stu- pid stare, but must be intense and earnest. Practice on objects as above stated, and with your mirror, will aid you in perfecting the gaze. It will help . you if you have some friend with whom you can practice it. The other person will not be aware that you are not "seeing" him, and are "gazing through" him— to him it will appear that you are giving him a very 1 deep, intense, steady, earnest glance. He will see. J your pupils dilate, as they always do when looking I at a distant object, and your expression will be one [ of calm, serene power. And another important point about this gaze is I ' that you may maintain it a long time without tiring' ' the eyes, and without the eyes watering or blinking. You may out-stare another person, or animal, in this way, without fatigue, while the other's eyes grow tired and weak. So much is this true tliat the results | of my own investigation of the subject have con- , vineed me that the animals who manifest "fascina- tion," really focus their eyes beyond the object in j just this way. If ever you get a chance to observe J an animal fascinating another, you will see that I am | right in this theory. This "gazing through" the other person is ao^ J complishedby a certain "accommodation" of the eyej J as ocuhsts and opticians call it, and while you arfJ INSTRUMENTS OF EXPRESSION 205 performing it you cannot examine distinctly, or "see" distinctly the eyes of the other person, be- cause your focus is different. To show you wliy you are able to maintain this gaze such a long time without tiring your eyes, I would remind you of the ease with which you may maintain the expression of being "wrapped in thought," "day-dreaming," ' ' lost in a brown study, ' ' ' 'just thinking about Ithings," etc., with which, you all are familiar. In ■such amenta! state you are able to "gaze into space" >for a long time without tte slightest fatigue, while , few seconds' focusing your eyes upon a near-by I object will tire them very much indeed. Axxd then, Regain, you know how long you are able to gaze at I object far out at sea, or far across the desert, r far down or across the mountain, without tiring ■ eyes. The whole secret is that short-range fcfocusing upon an object tires the eyes much more Itlian does "long-range" gazing into space. This leing the ease, it will tire you far less "seeing hrough" a person, than gazing at him and "seeing" L at short range In practicing the maintaining of the gaze for a long Itime, I would advise against tiring the eyes by gaz- 5 at short-range objects. Better practice at gaz- f at distant objects until you are able to maintain. J gaze a long time, as you will be able to do after Bi little practice. In fact, I advise you to practice the "gazing into space, " because proficiency in that will Enable you to perfect the "Dynamic Gaze." After , 206 MIND-POWEE jfyon have practiced this "gazing through" method [•a hit, you will be able to look at an object a. couple I of feet away, and gaze right through it— that is, i I yon will not consciously "see" it objectively, al- though apparently staring hard at it. Avoid all exercises tiring to the eyes, and proceed ^ i slowly working from trifling successes to more im- ' I portant ones. You will he surprised how a little in- [ telligent practice along these lines will give you a ' penetrating glance, tirm, earnest, and full of "mag- netism" and "fascination," without the slightest 1 sense of strain, fatigue or effort. You have long i wished for such an expression— here it is for you. CHAPTER XV. TJBING THE MENTATITE INSTRUMENTS. In the use of the € ; use 01 the eyes lor the purpose oi convey- ing mentative currents, you should always remem- ber that the feeling is the real power behind these currents of power, and that the brain is the dynamo from which the currents originate. The brain, you know, is the great transformer, or converter of the mentative energy, and acts just as does a dynamo in the direction of sending forth great waves of power. Consequently, if you wish to send out mentative cur- rents for the purpose of inducing feeling in others, you must first have feeling generated in your men- tal djTiamo. It will be well for two people to practice the eye exercises together, but in the absence of a friend in whom you have confidence, you may obtain excellent results by practicing before your friendly mirror. In either case, you must first arouse in your mind the feeling that you wish to express in mentative cur- rents. Put your feehng into your glance, and it will be felt. Exercise i. Look into the eyes of your friend (or your own in the mirror) and then say menially: "1 am stronger than you." Throw into your glance as much of the feeling of strength as you can. MIND-POWER ExEHcisE 2. Say mentally: "I am more Posi- tive than you — / am outgazing pou," throwing as much positivity as possible into your gaze, the sama being inspired, of course, by our feeling. Exercise 3. Say, and feel: "You are afraid of me — I am making you feel my strength," throwing the feeling into your gaze. After you have acquired the faculty of making your strength felt by above exercises yon may use the same upon other people when the occasion renders it advisable. If you are addressed by some person whom you think is trying to master you men- tatively, or whose strong influence you wish to ward off, you may use the above method on bira. As a rule the person who is doing the talking has a slight advantage over the listener, all else being equal. The speaker is the more positive because he is express- ing more power. But you may counteract this, if you are the listener, by simply sending him a glance, accompanied by the feeling of "/ scatter your force into bits — you cafinot affect me!" In resisting an attack of this sort, keep your mouth closed, with the jaws tight, for this "bite" denotes strength and firmness, and brings into play the parts of the brain manifesting these qualities, and thus charges your mentative currents with these feelings. At the same time gaze firmly and steadily into the eyes of the other, using the "Dynamic Gaze.' would bid you remember that the person standing has an advantage over the one sitting. Avoid 1 USING MENTATIVE INSTRUMENTS 209 sitting position when the other person is standing- do not give him this advantage, but take it yourself if you can. In speaking to persons and requesting them to do something, you should accompany the verbal request by a mental command. For instance, if you say ' ' You will do this for me, won't youf "(this is the suggest- ive form of questioning, remember) you should ac- company the question with the command (made mentally) with the proper glance, "You shall do this." If you are the person requested to do some- thing that you do not wish to do, you should answer, "No, I do not care to do this," or "I do not see my way clear to do it," or "I am unable to oblige you," etc., etc., but at the same time you must send the mental ansiver, with its accompanying glance, "I tvill not do it, and you cannot make me." A well-known teacher along these lines several years ago, taught his pupils to gaze into the eyes of persons whom tiiey wished to affect, at the same time saying mentally: "/ am looking at you. I am look- ing through your eyes into your brain. My wilt power is stronger than yotirs. You are under my control. I will compel you to do what I wish. Tou must do ifhat I saif. You shall do this. Do it at once." It will readily be seen that this will generate a Twwerful m.entative current, if there is a sufB- eiently strong feeling— will and desire— behind it. But right here I shall give you an antidote for this kind of influence. In all eases where you are attacked 210 MIND-POWEE mentally in this way you may dissolve the Fori by a positive denial. The positive, denial is the powerful force that scat- ters into tiny hits the force directed against one. It is a destructive agent, just as is the positive state- ment a constructive or creative one. One who un- derstands the scientific use of this destructive force may undo the mentative work of others, to a sur- prising degree. By a strong, positive denial, you may scatter and disintegrate any mentative influence directed against you. This formula will give j'ou a general idea of it. Suppose that you are repeiling a statement such as given above. In that ease you should say mentally, accompanying it with the proper glance, with feeling back of it: "/ deny positively your power over me. I deny it out of existence. I will not do your bidding, and I deny your right and power to command me. I deny your power, and I affirm my own." You may cultivate this power to use the positive denial hy practicing on an imaginary person whom you may suppose ia tiying to influence you. Imagine the strong, positive person before you, trying to in- fluence you and then start in to practice the posi- tive denial on him, until you feel that you have beaten him off, and have sent him flying away in retreat. These imaginary mental battles will develop a great power of mentative resistance in you, and I advise you strenghten yourselves along these lines, if you feel that you are weak. You may improve on the USING MENTATIVE INSTRUMENTS 211 above exercise, by imagining that after your enemy is in full retreat you follow him up and pour statement after statement into him, changing your position from a defender into an attacking force. These imaginary rehearsals will do more for one than people think possible. They are like stage re- hearsals that make perfect the actors. They are the fencing lessons from whieh the swordsman gains skill, and strength. Practice, practice, practice makes perfect in everything— in mentative work as well as physical. There are good psychological and occult reasons behind this method and practice, but I shall not enter upon that field at present— this book is intended to give you the "how" of the subject, rather than the "why." In personal conversation with another you will find it of the greatest value to see as clearly as pos- sible a mental picture, chart or map, of what you are saying to him. By so doing you will impress moat forcibly upon his mind that whieh you wish him to see, and feei. In this statement is compressed the secret of effective speaking. In the degree that you see and feel the thought that you are expressing in words, will be the degree of impression made upon, and mentative induction produced in, the other per- son. The secret of course lies in the power of visual- ization. You may find an evidence of your increasing men- tative influence by trying the psychological experi- ment of "willing" people to move this way or that r 212 MIND-POWER way, by gazing intently at them. In tbis experii it is not necessary for you to gaze into their Gazing at their back, preferably at the upper of the neck, at the base of the brain, will answer, may try "wilitng" persons to look around street, or in public places, etc. Or you may that they turn to the right or left of you, w preaching each other on the street. Or, in stores may "will" that a certain clerk, from out of a ni her. will step forward to wait upon you. These many similar experinaents have an interest to majority of students, a.nd are accomplished with e< parative ease, after sufficient practice. The who] theory and practice consists of a steady gaze, and the mental command, and will, that the person wijl act so-and-so, together with the earnest expectation that he will obey the command, and the mental picture of his doing so. That is all there is to it. In the use of the eye as a mentative instrument, remember first, last, and all the time, that desire and will are the phases of the mentative energj-, and that in the degree that desire is kindled, and will is ex- erted, so will be the power expressed by yourself, and impressed upon others. Read this book over a number of times, until you have fully grasiied the underlying principles. Then commit its exercises and instructions to memory. Then practice fre- quently, and perfect yourself in the methods pointed out, until you render them "second nature," You wilt be conscious of a gradual growth and develop- lOU 'elopvJ USING MENTATIVE INSTRUilENTS 213 ment, along the lines of mentative power and influ- ence. The flame of dynamic mentation once lighted, it will never die out — tend the flame carefully, keep the wick trimmed clean, and fill the lamp with oil, and it will ever burn bright and eu^it beat and light and power. The last mentative instrument mentioned in a pre- vious chapter is "the touch." There wasa time, in my early stages of experimentation and psyciiolog- ieal research, when I laughed at the idea of tiie touch playing any real part in the work of mental influ- ence. Of course I saw the effect of the touch in cer- tain phases of psychological work, but I believed that it was all "merely suggestion," but I soon learned that the touch was really a most potent instrument of mentative energy. I now explain it by the idea of the nerves being like the wires upon which the elec- tric current travels. The brain is the dj-namo, or converter of the energy, and while the latter travels in waves and currents without any wires (just as do the waves of the wireless telegraph) still if there is a tvire to be had, then it follows the lines of least resistance and takes advantage of the nerve-wire. Certain parts of the body have nerve-cells very highly developed in them — are in fact miniature brains. In the cases of some persons of sensitive and trained touch, there exist little clusters of nerve cells at the ends of the fingers, that act like miniature brains. The lips are also highly developed in this lespect, as the well known phenomena of "kissing" 214 MIND-POWER evidences. The fingers and band are excellent j mediums for conveying the meutative energy tb pours down over the nerves from the brain, ; through which it passes to the other person. The use of the touch of the hands as a channel i conveying mentative energy depends greatly upc^ the development of the hands by the individud Those who understand this matter, develop the cf^ ductivity of the hands by "treating" them^ as i lows: Think of your hands as excellent conductod of mentative energy, and imagine that you can f tlie energj' pouring down the nerves of your an and out of your hands, obeying your will, when 3 shake hands with people. You will soon your hands to such a degree that some sensitive j sons will actually "feel" the current passing i them. Always accompany the passage of the ( rent with the thought or feeling that you wish to i duee in the other person, just as you do when ; use the "Dynamic Gaze." In fact, the gaze . the hand-clasp should be used together, when poj sible, for by so doing you double the etfeet. When you shake hands with a person throw mi^ and feeling into it, and do not fall into the mechaJ ical, lifeless method so coimnon among Throw your feeling down to your hand, and at .1 same time make a mental coimnand or statement « propriate to the ease. For instance, grasp the i son's hand with feeling, and interest, saying, : tally, at the same time: "You like me." Then, i USING MENTATIVE INSTRUMENTS 215 you draw you hand away, if possible let your fingera slide over the palm of his hand in a caressing man- ner, allowing his first finger to pass between your thumb and forefinger, close up in the crotch of the thumb. Practice this well, until you can perform it without thinking of it— that is, make it your natural way of shaking hands. You will find that this method of shaking hands will open up a new interest in people toward you, and in other ways you will discover its advantage. You never knew a "fasci- nating" person who did not have a good hand-clasp. It is a part of the fascinating personality. There are many persons, well grounded on the psychological principles underlying the subject, who use the hands as a medium for mentative energy, without shaking hands. For instance, they sit near the other person and place their hands so that their fingers will point toward him, at the same time will- ing that the current flow through the fingers and to- ward the other. They also use their hands in con- versation so as to have the tips of their fingers point- ing toward the other. This last plan becomes highly effective when used with the appropriate gestures, for it is akin to the mesmeric "pass" of the hands. In this connection I would say beware of the person who is always trying to put his hands on you— be- ware of the "pawing over" process. Avoid it in the ordinary way, if possible, or else deliberately prac- tice the positive denial toward the person, holding the idea and mental statement that "I deny the power of your magnetism— I scatter it by my ( nial." In concluding this chapter, I would especially cai^ tion young women, and older ones for that matter, against allowing men to be familiar with them in the direction of "holding hands," or similar prac- tices. Not only does this "familiarity breed eon- tempt" but there are good psychological reasons why the practice is to be condemned. You have seen what part the hands play in "magnetizing" as it ia called, and is it not clearly discernible how one may use the hands in this "petting," and all that sort of thing, in order to psychologically affect another per- son! I am not speaking now of the caresses indulged in by honorable true lovers — for all the talk in the world would not change that sort of thing — but I am alluding to the indiscriminate " pawing over" on the part of strange men that some young girls allow. There is a danger in this sort of thing, and I want you to know it. If you have daughters, or young female relatives, warn them against this thing, and tell them the reasomvliy. And the same thing is true of the man who is al- ways patting other men on the shoulder, or rest- ing his arm around tliem, or else "taking hold of them" in a friendly caressing way during a con- versation. Such men may not know the psychology of the thing, but they bave found out that this sort of "patting up" makes other men more impressible, and amenable to their influence, and so they prao- USING MENTATIVE INSTRUMENTS 217 tiee it. Make them stop it, either by moving away, or by positive denial. Now, ODce more, remember the power of this pos- itive denial as a disperser, and disintegrator of ad- verse influence. If this book taught you nothing else, it would still be "worth wbiie" to you because of this one point of instruction. For this positive de- nial is a luentative armor that will protect you — a mentative sword that will defend you — a mentative lightning flash that will clear the mental atmosphere. Learn the secret of positive statement, and posi- tive denial, and you are clad in an invulnerable armor and are armed with the weapon of iiower— and so you may, like the "Warrior Bold" go "gaily to the fray." But, after all, the secret of influence in our dy- namic individual lies in his naental states. The outer forms are but reflections of the inner. If you will cultivate the connection between your mind and the great Universal Will— the Universal Mind-Power— then your will becomes so strong that the outward expressions will come of themselves. But in mount- ing the first steps of attainment, it becomes impor- ant for the student to pay attention to the outward characteristics, because by so doing he makes a clearer mental path for the acquisition of the de- sired mental states. By the "very laws of mental sug- gestion he is able to imitate these outward expres- sions, and thus induce in himself the mental states, which, in time, become habitual. I dn not mean that 218 MIND POWEE one should allow the suggestion of the other's ; pearance to move him in this way — this is not i idea. What I mean is that one may by auto-suggi tion BO reproduce the outward characteristics a ated with a desired mental state or, quality, and 1 acting them out actually materialize into reality the mental states themselves. Remember the rule- mental states take form in action— and action re- produces their associated mental states! It is a rule that works both ways. The voice makes the phono- graphic record— and the latter reproduces the sound ! Remember this illustration ,for it will help you to get the right conception of the psychological law under- lying the phenomenon. There is a certain point to which I would direct your attention at this stage. I refer to the well- known psychological fact that "mental states ex- press themselves in physical action." Every men- tal state has its associated physical action. And these actions when perceived by another person, are apt to induce similar mental states in that person, along the lines of mental suggestion. But there is another law, less understood by the public, and that is that "the manifestation of physical action tends to induce in the mind of the person performing it, the mental states generally associated with the pro- duction of the action." Let us take a common example, to illustrate the op- eration of these two related laws. Let us suppose that you are holding a mental state of anger, &ghU USING MENTATIVE INSTRUMENTS 219 combativeness, etc. In that case you wi)] find that your brows will frown ; your jaws will be fixed in a savage "bite," and slightly protruded; and your hands will be clenched— the mental state has taken form in physical action. Very well, then— yon all recognize this fact. But there is the law reversed. If you will frown deeply; clench your flsts savagely; fix your jaws in a fighting trim, etc., and will maintain that physical attitude for five minutes, at the same time allowing it to manifest in your walk, etc. (as it surely will) without interference, you will find yourself growing into a mental state of annoyance, combativeness, etc., and if you keep it up long enough, yon will be "mad in earnest." So true is this that if you carry the thing far enough, and run into someone else, you will be very apt to "get into a row" with him. And, still more remarkable is the fact, the person that you "run into" will he very apt to take up the mental suggestion of your manner, and will also "feel fighty." It would not take much to stir up trouble between the two of you. And, still more remarkable, if you continue this physical attitude until it produces the mental state, you will find that you are inducing similar mental states in those around you, by the agency of menta- tive currents. So you see the close connection be- tween physical action, mental states, suggestion, and telenientation ! They act, and re-act upon each other. What has been said of the mental state of anger ap- 220 MIND-POWEE plies equally to any intense feeling or mental state. Like begets like, along all the lines mentioned. Now, all this means tliat the man who is possessed of a strong mental state will manifest, unconsciously, the physical actions which will affect others, along the lines of mental suggestion — he will not have to study the question of what suggestions to use, pro- viding he "feels" sufficiently strong to automati- cally manifest the actions. But when a man does not "feel" sufficiently strong to manifest the suggestive actions, he may produce the same effect by "acting the part" (without being actually involved Ln it) by first reproducing the pliysical actions, which will thus induce a sufficiently strong mental state to manifest itself both along the line of suggestion, and also along the line of personal magnetism. Every good actor induces feeling in you in this way, along both these lines. And you may do the same if you Want to —many dynamic people are doing it every day. On this subject, so far as I have gone, I have given yon a most important secret of psychological infl- ence, in a plain, practical way — so simple in fact that there is a risk of many of you entirely overlooking its importance. Better go back over this part of the lesson again— many times— until you are able to catch its inner meaning, and are able to read be- tween its lines. It's quite worth while, I assure you. Of course, some of ray kind critics will take me to task for teaching this "acting out" idea. They wil( call it "inculcating principles of deceit," etc., etc. — and will then go on their way admiring "magnetic; USING MENTATIVE INSTRUMENTS 221 personalities, and regretting the absence of "tact" in other persons who have rubbed them the wrong way. I have noticed that these hyper-critical people are generally hypo-critical as well. I have known many good men who were not "dy- namic," and the world "turned them down," and often "jumped all over them." And I have known quite a number, not quite so good, who possessed quite a goodly degree of dynamic force, and the world received them with open arms, and showered its praises and rewards upon them. But this does not mean that one cannot be "good" and "dynamic" at the same time. There are plenty of "good" men who are highly "dynamic"— and there are plenty of "bad" men equally so. And there are plenty both good and bad, who lack "dynamic- force." But, note this fact, please— that the good men, and the bad men, who are highly "dynamip," generally manage to "get there," along their own line of life. And both the good and bad who lack "dynamic-force" are generally stranded along the wayside. Dy- namic-force is neither good nor bad— it is a natural force— and is used by all. In this respect it is like any other natural force. And, then again, this book is not for the pur- pose of teaching the "bad" use of "dynamic- force," rather than the "good." It states the principles and the law, as they are. It is true that the bad man may take advantage of the law and use it for bad purposes; hut so may the good man take advantage of it and make himself a greater power for good. 222 MIND-POWER "dynamic-force" is just aa effective "preacher" as it is in the "confidence man"— a ]U8t as effective in the salesman and business i and everyday person, as it is in either the preacher or the confidence man. It is a natural quality, and has nothing to do with "good and bad"— any more than has elocution, oratorical ability, or personal ap- pearance. If the good folk prefer to leave this important sub- ject for the bad folk, that is their own concern, not mine. Personally, I feel like the old preacher, who was remonstrated with by some hide-bound old par- ishioner regarding certain musical innovations that had been introduced in the church service. The old preacher looked kindly at the old veteran "conserva- tive" of the flock, and said: "Well, brother, it may strike you in a different way, but to me it seems wrong to allow the Devil to monopolize all the good music— I believe in giving the Lord his share of it.'* And I say ' * Amen ! " to this idea. If "dynamic mentation" was as much used to further the interests of right, as it has been to fur- ther the interests of wrong, the old world would get down to a little easier motion. If the preacher would make his talks as "dynamic" as the actor does his plays, and the lawyer does his appeals to the jary, there would surely be "something doing" in church work, and the prevailing emptiness of the pews would be cured. If "goodness" was made as at- tractive as "badness," the Devil would be placed on the retired list. CHAPTER XVI. MENTAL SUGGESTION, ■ Before beginning our consideration of the sub- ject of Mental Suggestion, let me call your attention to the following general statements regarding Men- tative Induction (in which general subject is in- cluded the sub-divisions called Personal Magnetism; Mental Suggestion; and Telementative Induction) respectively : (1) Mental States may be caused by Mentative Induction. (2) Such induced mental states may be caused by the Mentative currents of Personal Magnetism; or by the Mentative currents of Telementation ; or by Mental Suggestion. (3) Mentative currents are waves or streams of vibrant Mind-Power, emanating from the minds of people, and carrying with them the vibrations of mental states; the vibrations tending to induce sim- ilar mental states in the minds of people within the field of induction. (b) There are two poles of Mind-Power, i. e., the emotive-pole, manifesting desire, feeling, emotion, etc.; and the motive-pole, manifesting will, etc.; the acting force, affecting other minds, manifested by 22-i MIND- POWER thfcse two poles being called Desire-Force and "^ Power, respectively. (c) Desire-Force tends to awaken similar brations in the minds of others, thus producing s Uar desires— or it charms the wills of others ani oaiises them to carry out its desires— its action snd nature bearing a strong resemblance to feminine mental power. (d) Will-Power tends to awaken desire in the minds of others by sheer mastery and foreefuLness —it also acts in the direction of combating and over- powering the wills of others, and taking them captive —it also directs, masters, concentrates, or restrains one's own Desire-Foree, on occasions— its action bears a strong resemblance to masculine mental power. (e) When the mentative currents are emanated, and Mentative Induction is manifested, when the pro- jector and recipients are in the personal presence of each other, we use the term Personal Magnetism, When the same manifestation occurs when the pro- jector and recipients are not in the personal presence of each other, then we use the term Telementative Induction. But the principle employed is the same in each case— induction through telementation being the operative principle. In Personal Magnetism, however, Mental Suggestion usually assists in the induction of mental states. For this reason, Mental Suggestion should be studied in connection with Per- sonal Magnetism, being supplementary thereto. MENTAL SUGGESTION 225 (4) Mental Suggestion induces mental states, by reproducing ttie original mental atates of others ; or one's own pre\'iou8ly experienced mental states, in- cluding the experience of the raee-aneestors, inher- ited and recorded in the sub-conscious minds of their descendants. Suggestion operates along the lines of acqui- escence, imitation, association, and repetition, al- ways acting through physical agents for inducing mental states. In Personal Magnetism, the mentator pours out his mentative currents, generated by his will or de- sire, or both; either in a general way, or in a con- centrated, directed manner; in a personal interview, and thus influences the mind of others by induction —this is usually, or always, accompanied by Mental Suggestion, using physical agents, such as the voice, eye, manner, etc., which heighten the effect produced. And, now, with the understanding of the above- stated general principles, let us proceed to a consid- eration of the subject of "Mental Suggestion." Every student ol psj'chology and mental science has heard and read much of that phase of mental phenomena called "Mental Suggestion." Much has been written and taught about it, and the term has been claimed by some teachers to cover all phases of mental influence. I do not entirely agree with these extreme advocates of suggestion, however, for I find mnch in the subject that calls for a further explana- tion. But, nevertheless, I feel certain that mental 226 MIND-POWBE BU^estion plays a most important part in almost avery instance of this class of phenomena and musl be seriously considered by all careful students of tlie subject. Combined vrith meutative induction by means of mentative currents, it accounts for nearly everj' phase of the phenomena of mental influence. Therefore I shall devote several chapters to the con- sideration of its underlying principles, laws and method of application. I feel that no one can be a successful practitioner of telementative influence or personal magnetism who is not a good suggestionist, because the very "knaek" of projecting strong sug- gestions is necessary for the forceful projection of mentative energy and mental currents. "While all who have examined the subject are aware of the force and effects of mental suggestion, few have found it possible to correctly define or describe the term, or to explain it to others. But I feel as- sured that my theory of mentative induction, and the two poles of Mind-Power will enable you to form a very clear and comprehensive knowledge of the un- derlying laws of the subject, so that, understanding it, yon will be able to apply its method of application to the best advantage. "Mental Suggestion" is the term used to designate the process of inducing or exciting mental states or ideas, by means of the imagination, by the agency of words; actions; outward appearances; or other physical symbols. 1 divide the phenomena of Mental Suggestion inttj MENTAL SUGGESTION 227 two general classes or phases, i. e., (1) Active Sug- gestion, and {2} Passive Suggestion, as follows; By Active Suggestion I mean the induction or ex- citement of mental state or ideas in others by means of positive command, affirmation, statements, etc., bearing directly upon the -desired mental state. By Passive Suggestion I mean the induction or excite- ment of mental state or ideas by the subtle insinua- tion, introduction, or insertion of ideas into the minds of others, which insinuated ideas act in the direction of inducing the desired mental state. Active Sug- gestion is associated with the use of the motive-pole of the mind of the suggestor ; and Passive Sugges- tion is associated with the emotive-pole of the sug- gestor. One is the masculine method and the other the feminine. And here is a good place in which to direct your attention to a very important fact concerning the op- eration of suggestion in inducing mental states in others. I allude to the fact that suggestion operates along the line of "emotional mentality," "feeling," or "imagination," and has nothing to do with judg- ment, reason, argument, proof, etc. It belongs clearly to the "feeling" side of the mind, rather than to the "thinking" side. One's reason may be appealed to by clever reasoning, argument, logic, proof, etc., and an effect gained — but this belongs to an entirely different phase of mental action. The induction of mental states in others by means of Sfug- gestion has to do entirely with the "feeling" or -''un- 228 MIND-POWER agina-tiTe" phase of the mind. It deals with the production of "emotional mentality" rather than with "rational mentality." This is a most impor- tant point, and one that should be thoroughly un- derstood by ail students of the subject. It is true that suggestion may accompany an ap- peal to the reason or judgment of the person influ- enced, and, indeed, is generally so used ; but, strictly speaking, it constitutes an appeal to a part of the mind entirely removed from reasoning and judg- ment. It is emotional, and imaginative first, last, and all the time. And it operates along the same lines as the mental induction produced by mentative cur- rents, as we shall see. And now, with this preliminary understanding, let us pass on to a consideration of the meaning of the terms used. There is nothing like a clear under- standing of the terms employed in treating of a sub- ject. If one understands the "exact" meaning of the terms, he has progressed very far to an "exact" understanding of the subject itself, for the terms are the crystallized ideas involved in the subject. To understand the full and complete meaning of the terms of any subject is to know the whole subject thoroughly, for no one can understand a term thor- oughly until he knows it in all of its relations— all that pertains to it. Let us start with the word "suggestion" as used by the writers on mental suggestion. Some authori- ties give the broad, general definition of "anything MENTAL SUGGESTION that ia impressed upon the mind throngh the senses, ' ' but this I consider entirely too sweeping, for this definition would make the term cover knowledge of all sort, no matter to what part of the mind it ap- pealed, for all knowledge of the outward world is obtained through the senses. Other authorities define the term as "anything in- sinuated into the mind, subtly, cautiously, and in- directly," this definition fitting nearly the one fa- vored by the dictionaries in defining the word "sug- gestion" in its general sense, which is as follows: "a hint; a guarded mention; an intimation; some- thing presented to the mind directly ; an insinuation ; etc." But this last definition of mental suggestion does not fit all the phases of the subject. It fits ad- mirably into the phase known as Passive Sugges- tion, which operates by direct, forceful command, statement, etc. And so I must giv« my own definition of the term to fit my coni^eption of and understanding of its meaning, I, therefore, here define my use of the term "a Mental Suggestion" as follows : A physical agency tending to induce or excite mental states or ideas through the imagination. This is a broad definition, which, I think, will cover all the ob- servable phenomena of Mental Suggestion. I use the word "physical" to distinguish sugges- tive agents from the "mental" agents inducing men- tal states by the operation of mentative currents, telementation, etc Of course this distinction will I not please those who woold claim all "mental" tion as a form of the "physical," or vice versa, Bw as I have to draw the line somewhere, I prefer to draw it between the "physical" agent and the "men- tal," and I think that the majeritj- of my readers will approve of this position. The word "agent" means, of course, "an acting power or cause," etc. The word "inducing," as I have used it, has been de- fined in the previous lesson. The word "excite" means" to call into activity in any way; to rouse to feeling; to kindle to strong emotions." The im- agination is "that phase of mind which creates men- tal images, or objects, or sensation previously ex- perienced." In my use of the term "physical" in the above de- finition I include all words, spoken, written, or printed ; mannerisms ; physical actions of all kinds ; physical; characteristics aud appearances, etc., etc. All of these physical manifestations act as "agents" inducing mental states under favorable circum- stances. By "mental states" I mean states of "feel- ing or emotion." By "ideas," I mean "images of objects conceived of by the mind," It may be urged that the use of "words, spoken, written or printed," may be employed, and are em- ployed, in every appeal to the mind of another, whether the appeal be along the ILues of suggestion or argument, reason, etc. Certainly I And in that sense they act as suggestions. Arguments appeal to judgment and reason— but not to feeling, emotion or MENTAL SUGGESTION 231 B imapnation which are, on the contrary, eseited or W induced by suggestions or other forms of emotional I induction. One may present an idea to the mind of another, in a bold, forcible, logical manner, accom- panied by argument or proof, hut this is an appeal to reason and judgment, not to "feeling or emo- tion," which belong to an entirely different field of the mind. Then again, many personal appeals, which are apparently made to reason, are really made to the emotional side. One may subtly insinuate into an argument or conversation an appeal to the feel- ings or emotion of the hearer, in the shape of an idea in the nature of a bint, or indirect mention. Such idea will be *'felt" by the listener, who will accept it into his mind, and before long he will re- I gard it as one of his own thoughts— he will make it his own. He will think that be "thought" it, whereas, really, he simply "feels" it, and the "feeling" is induced. This is a case of "suggestion." In ordinary social intercourse you will find that women are adepts in this subtle form of insinnative suggestion, as compared to men. Men will blurt out statements and ideas, and attempt to "prove" them, but the woman will gently "insinuate" the idea into the mind of the other person, so that, with- out having proven a fact, she will have managed to create a definite idea of feeling in the mind of the other by "suggestion." I think I need not give ex- amples of this fact— it is apparent to all who have mingled with people. MIND-POWER And really this "suggestion" resembles the men- tal suggestion of the psychologists very much. It is true' that the practitioner of mental suggestion, in his "treatments," often makes use of direct, force- ful statements, such as: "You are strong, cheer- ful, well and happy," but you will notice even here that he does not "argue the point," or attempt to "prove" bis statements. He simply affirms and asserts the fact, and by constantly repeated sugges- tions he finally causes the mind of the other person to accept the statement. So you see a "suggestion" may be either a subtle insinuation or a bold, positive statement— but it is never an argument, or pro- cess of proof. The "word "impression" is good, as applied to the effect of a suggestion, but I prefer to stick to my own terms, and therefore I shall consider that the ef- fect of mental suggestion is caused by induction. "What," you may say, "I thought that induction was a term used when a mental state was set up in one by mentative currents from the mind of an- other?" Yes, this is true, but my last statement is true also. An induced mental state is one set up by outside influence of some kind, whether that out- side influence be a mentative current or by sugges- tion through a word, a look, a sight or anything else. The word "induce," you know, means: "to lead; to influence; to prevail on; to effect; to cause," etc. And any mental state that is induced by an outside influence comes clearly under the term. MENTAL SUGGESTION 233 Any physical agent that tends to induce a feeling in the mind of another may be called a suggestion. Even the well-known instance mentioned in the test- books on psychology comes under this rule. In that instance it is related that a soldier was carrying some bundles and a pail to his barracks, when some practical joker yelled to hito in an authoritativB voice, "Attention!" Following the suggestion, which induced in him the "feeling" preceding cer- tain habitual actions, he dropped his pail and bundles with a crash and stood at "attention," with eyes front, chin out, protruding breast, stomach drawn in, and hands at his sides with little fingers touching the seams of his trousers. That was a suggestion! Do you see the point! The lives of all of us have been moulded largely by induction through suggestion. We accepted this suggestion, or that one, and it changed the whole cur- rent of our lives. Certain things induced certain feelings— called into activity certain mental states — and action followed close upon the heels of feeling. There are varying degrees of suggestive power, just as there are varying degrees of what is called the "suggestibility" of persons — that is the tendency to accept suggestions. There are people who scarcely ever act from motives originating within themselves, but whose entire lives are lived out in obedience to the suggested ideas and feelings of others. The de- velopment of the Will-Power regulates the degree of suggestibility. The man of tbe strong will is not so 234 MIND-POWEE thej easily affected by a suggestion as is one whose is weak, and who accepts without resistance the gestions coming from all sides. But note the parent parados, persons of weak will may have wills so developed and strengthened by scientific si gestive treatment that they may become verital giants of will. The careful student may feel inclined to ask at this point, why I speak of suggested ' ' ideas, ' ' "W I have said that suggestion has to do with me states of feeling and emotion. Are not "ideas,' asks, something connected with thought rather tl with feeling! The question is a proper one, an( must meet it. The word "idea" comes from Greek word, meaning "to see." In its general ui means a mental image, or a general notion or < ception held in the mind." An idea is "syml: image held in the mind." It is a symbol of sc thing thought or felt. Ideas are not formed by thought alone— feel contributes its share of these mental images. To the truth, the majority of people scarcely "thii at all, in the highest sense of the word. Their Boning and logical faculties are very rudimentai They accept their ideas af second hand or seco: hundred hand— their thoughts must be pre-i for them by others, and the handed-down the result. The majority of ideas held in the of the race arise from feeling and emotion, may not understand things, hut they have expt "idea" Peod MENTAL SUGGESTION 235 enced feelings or emotions regarding them, and have consequently formed many ideas and "ideals" there- from. They do not know "just why" an idea is held by them— they know only that they "feel" it that way. And the majority of people are moved, swayed and act by reasons of induced "feelings," rather than by results of reasoning. I am not speaking of intuitional feelings now, but of the plain, every- day, emotional feeling of people. Do you know what a feeling is? The word, used in this sense, means: a mental state; emotion; pas- sion ; sjTnpathy ; sentiment ; susceptibility ; etc." And "emotion" means an excitement of the feel- ings. ' ' Peelings ' ' belong to the instinctive side of our mind, rather than to the rational or reasoning side. They spring up from the subconscious strata of the mind, in response to the exciting cause coming from without. The instinctive part of our minds are stored with the experiences, feehngs, emotions and mental states of our long line of ancestors, reaching away back to the early beginnings of life. In that part of the mind are sleeping instincts, emotions and feelings, our inheritance from the past, which await but the inducing cause to call them into ac- tivity. The reason or judgment, by means of the will, act as a restrainer, of course, according to the degree of development of the individual. And these outward agents, if of a "physical" nature, are suggestions of all kinds. Look around you at the world of men and women. 236 MIND-POWER Then tell me whether they seem to be moved prin- cipally by reason or feeling. Are their actions based upon good judgment and correct and careful reason- ing? Or are they the results of feeling and emo- tion? Do people do things because the things are considered right in the lig-ht of reason, or do they do them "because they feel like it?" Which produces the greatest motive force— an appeal to the reason of a number of people, or an appeal to their feelings and emotion? Which sways a gathering of people; the votes of a people; the actions of a mob— reason or feeling? Which moves even you, good student, reason or feeling? Answer the questions hon- ^ estly, and you will have the key of suggestive influ*! CHAPTER XVII. POUB KINDB OF STTOGESTION. Mental suggestion produces its effect upon the minds of people along one or more of four general lines or paths of action. All the phenomena com- ing under this head may be placed in one or more of the fonr classes. These four paths, or lines of ac- tion, along which Mental Suggestion operates, are as follows : 1. Obedience 2. Imitation; 3. Association ; 4. Repetition. I shall now proceed to consider these four paths, or lines of action, separately, in order, and in de- tail. Beginning with the first mentioned line of ac- tion, let us consider: Suggestion Through Obedience — Suggestion op- erating along this line consists of the induction of mental states, etc., by the agency of a positive state- ment, assertion, assumption, authoritative attitude, etc., which so impresses itself upon the mind of the person suggested to that he sets up no opposition or resistance, but acquiesces quietly to the suggestion made to him. 238 MIND-POWER Tlie most common form of tbis first method of Sq gestion is seen in the very general acquiescence ^ real or pretended "autliority " on the part of tlier jority of peop'.e. Wbeu such people hear a statement made, positively and in a tone of conviction, by some person in authority, (bey accept the statement, and the feelings arising from the accepted statement, without resistance, and without apy attempt to sub- mit the matter to the exercise of their reason. And this is true not only when the person speaking has really a right to speak anlhoritatively, by virtue of his knowledge, experience, wisdom, etc., hut also when some pretender sets up an appearance of au- thority, and speaking in a positive style, assuming the "Thus saith the Lord" manner, impresses his hearers with the idea he wishes to suggest to them. And then the good folk meekly acquiesce without question and allow their feelings to be aroused ac- cordingly, for the feelings are generally followed by actions in accord therewith. It is astonishing, from one point of view, to see how obedient to this form of suggestion the masses of people are. They will allow their mental states, feel- ings and emotion to be induced by the impudent state- ments, and claims of cunning, shrewd and designing men, as well as by ignorant self-deluded fanatics, who thus influence and sway them. These self-con- stitnted authorities utter their oracular statements and opinions in a tone of absolute certainty, and the crowd takes them at their own valuation. It seems FOUR KINDS OF SUGGESTION 239 to be only necessary for some positive man to attract the attention of the people and then make some bold claim or statement, in the proper manner and tone, and with their appearance of authority, and lo 1 some of the people, at least, fall into line. Did you ever think that people as a rule are ' ' obe- dient animals?" Well, they are, providing you can manage to impress them with your authority. It is mueh easier for them to acquiesce than to refuse to do so. They find it easier to say and think "Yes" rather than "No." Their will is not often called into action by their reason and judgment, it being too often entirely under the control of the feeling and emotional side of them. There is a fundamental law under this phase of suggestive action, and in order to find it we must go back to the beginning of the race, perhaps far- ther. In the earlier days among aniroals and men, there were natural leaders, who ruled by force of might of body or mind. These natural leaders were implicitly obeyed by the masses, who had learned by experience that it was better for the tribe, or herd, as a whole, to be governed by their strongest and sharpest-witted members. And so gradually this dominant idea of acquiescence and obedience to au- thority developed and became a fixture in the race- mind. And it is firmly planted in the mind of the race today, so much so that only the strongest minds are able to free themselves from it to any great ex- tent. It ia authority here^ and authority there, in 240 MIND-POWER law, letters, religion, politics, and every other fieH of human endeavor. People do not begin by asking themselves: "What do I think about this matter!" hut instead start off by Baying : ' ' Wiat does So-and- So think of it?" Their "So-and-So" is their au- thority, who does their thinking for them, and thejE take their keynote from him or her. The authority induces their mental states for them. If these leaders and authorities were really 1 wisest of the race, it would not matter so very mud although even then it might prevent the development^ of individuality in the masses. But the worst featun is that the majority of these "authorities" donM know, and know that they don't Imow, but the people haven't found them out. They assume the manners, air, appearance, etc., of "the real thing," and thai people being accustomed to these symbols of authori ity, and mistaking the invitation article for the rea^ are impressed by the authoritative utterance ; accept the suggestion. This fact is well known to the classes that pre] upon the public. The "confidence men" (in and c of the criminal class) assume this air of authoritj and their suggestions are accepted by the people. They are good actors-— that is one of the requisites of the suggestionist, and these people understanii the law. They proceed upon the theory accredited % Aaron Burr — that remark, you may remember, "waj that "the law is that whieh is boldly asserted aa plausibly maintained." And so these folk keep < FOUB KINDS OF SUGGESTION 241 "boldly" asserting," and "plausibly maintaining, " and find that "it generally goes." To see a principle in its naked simplicity one should look for its operation in extreme instances. And the extreme instance in this ease is the liyp- notic "subject" who has surrendered bis judgment entirely to the mind of the operator. The "subject" will acquiesce in the most absurd suggestions from the operator and proceed to carry them into effect. And suggestion, you know, is the active factor in hypnotism, the hj-pnotie condition being only a psy- chological condition in which the effect of sugges- tion is heightened. But one does not have to go to the ranks of the somnambules for striking illustrations, for such are to be found in all walks of life among people who have no individuality of their own, but who seem to live and act entirely upon the "say so" of others. They have no quality of initiative, but must always be told just what to do, and how to do it, by others. These people will accept almost any kind of sugges- tion, if made by others in an authoritative tone and manner. They do not have to be persuaded by argu- ment, but are fairly driven and ordered to do things by stronger-willed persons. They are impression- able and "sensitive," and seem to have no wills of their own. These people are very suggestible, and every day's history records many startling cases of the effect of suggestion through acquiescence on the part of sudi people. 242 MIND-POWER The key-note of this form of Suggestion is a p tive statement or command, given with the air j appearance of authority. The secret of the effe< is the tendency upon the part of the majority people to acquiesce in an authoritative statemeff or command, rather than to dispute it, and the tendency toward thinking "Yes" rather than "No!" This form of suggestion is to be observed in the highest degree among those who have always de- pended upon others for orders, or instruction, and who have not had to "use their own wits" and re- sources in life. Unskilled laborers and the sons of rich men belong to this class as a rule. These people seem to need someone to do their thinking for them, even in the smallest events of their lives, and are most suggestible along these lines. Then the degree of suggestibility along these lines decreases as we ascend among people who have had to "do things" for themselves, and who have not depended upon others so much. It is the slightest among people who have had the ordering of others to do, or who have had to depend upon their own wits in getting through life— the men of marked degree of initiative have scarcely a trace of this form of suggestibility. "Initiative," you know, is a term for "doing things without being told"— using one's own wits and re- sources—the true "American Spirit" (which so . many Americans lack). The degree of power in giving this form i I VV UlCU OU . B form of su^^^l FOUB KINDS OF SUGGESTION 243 gestion depends materially upon the development of will on the part of the Buggestor, and also upon his assumption of the appearance, manners, air and tone of authority, the latter requisites being the out- ward symbols. If one has the Will-Power strongly developed, the symbols will appear of themselves as a natural consequence. Bnt to those who have not the developed AVill-Power, and whose authority is more or less "counterfeit," the assumption of the outward sjTubols becomes a matter of great impor- tance, and these people devote much study to the cultivation of these outward forms. And these "coimterfeit" symbols— the art of the actor— serve their purpose to impress and suggest to the crowd, and tlieir assumers set up a very brave front and obtain a very fair degree of success in the part they are acting— that is, until they come in contact with a man of real Will-Power, when they gracefully retire after the first clash of mentative swords. To those who are negative and who are too sus- ceptible to this fonn of suggestion, I advise the cul- tivation of Will-Power, which will be fully taught in the later chapters of this book, entitled "Mental Architecture," etc. Nothing but the cultivation of the will will render one positive and impervious to suggestive influences of this sort. The second line of action of Mental Suggestion is that called : Suggestion Through Imitation.— This form of Mental Suggestion is very common— perhaps the 244 MIND-POWEE most common of all the forms. Man is essentia^ an imitative animal. He is always copying tU actions, appearances and ideas of others, therein going to prove his descent from the monkey-likol ancestors, in whom this trait of character was largely! developed. Personally, I believe that those traits of imitation may be traced back to the early days of the race, or before, when animals and men were in a wild state, and exposed to constant danger of attack of enemies. Then a motion of fright on the part of one would be communicated to the others of the tribe, and gradually the trait of instinctive imi- tation was developed, the traces of which are still strongly with the race, even to this day. We may find instances of this trait all around us. "When we watch a tight-rope walker, our bodies instinctively sway in imitative motion. "When we watch the faces of actors on the stage, our own faces work in sym- pathy, more or less. And so it goes on all around us, and in us— ever the tendency toward imitation. Children manifest a great degree of this trait and I copy and acquire the mannerisms of those around to a surprising d-egree of detail. This form of Mental Suggestion ia very common. People are constantly taking up the suggestion of the mental states, feelings, and emotions of those around them, and reproducing them in their own acts. The majority of people are like human sheeg, I who will follow a leader everywhere and along j I Borts of paths. Let the old bell-wether jump overl FOUE KINDS OF SUGGESTION rail, and every sheep in the flock will do likewise— and they will keep on jumping over the same place. at the same height, even if the rail be removed before the whole flock gets over. "We are constantly doing things simply because other people do them. We are constantly aping after others. In our fash- ions, styles, forms, etc., we are servile imitators. Larry Hehr shows a vest button hung by a thread and all the young apes in the land follow suit Funny! isn't itT This law of imitation plays an important part in the phenomena of Mental Suggestion along these lines. Somebody does a certain thing and at once other people take up the suggestion and copy the original actor. Let the newspaper record a certain crime and many others of the same type follow closely after. Let there be a suicide, and many others follow, usually adopting the same methods. Let there be a number of cases of some kind of folly and dissipation, and immediately there is "an epidemic" of the same thing. Let the papers say much about the appearance of a new disease, and at once a number of people manifest symtoms of it. Diseases get to be quite the fashi6n in this way. The feelings and emotions of the instinctive part of the mind are called into sympathetic action along the lines of imitative suggestion, and physical effects follow shortly after. Shrewd men take advantage of this tendency of the human mind, and, by getting a few people interested 246 MIND-POWER P in certain things, they manage to set the fashia and the crowd follows like sheep. Get people talkii about a thing, and the contagion spreads until ever body is interested in the matter. The majority of people are more or less susceptible to this form of suggestion, the degree depending upon their habit of thinking, judging and acting for themselves. The man or woman who has ideas of his, or her, own, is not so apt to be impressed by every wave of popular fashion, style and thought as those who maintain a more negative attitude toward the minds of others. The method of curing an undue tendency toward imitative action is to start in to huild up your indi- viduality, and to develop positivity, along the lines mentioned in the concluding chapters of this book. The third line of action of Mental Suggestion is: Sttgoestion Thbough Absociatioh —This form of Mental Suggestion is very common. It is based upon the acquired impressions of the race, by which certain words, actions, manners, tones, appearances, etc., are associated with certain previously ex- perienced mental states. Mental States take form in physical action and expression, as we know, A man feeling in a certain way is ^t to express himself by certain actions or in certain words. These actions and words thus become sjTubols of the mental state producing them, and consequently tbey produce upon the mind of the person seeing or heai'ing them the mental image connected with that mental state. And this mental image is calculated to induce a FOUR KINDS OF SUGGESTION 247 similar or corresponding state in the mind of the person seeing and hearing-. So that these symbols are really Mental Suggestions, since they tend to induce mental states. I wish to remind you that every ■written, printed or spoken word, or words, is the outward and physi- cal expression of some inner mental state of the person uttering or writing the words. The words are the "outward and visible signs" of an "inward feeling"— remember this always. Mere words, i» themselves, have no suggestive value — the value depends upon the meaning impressed upon them by the mind of the person using them accompanied by an understanding of their meaning by the person hearing or reading them. The word "horror," for instance, or "uncanny," has a definite meaning to persons familiar with it. It bears a direct relation to a mental feeling, or emotion, and is the physical and outward expression of the same. One may say the word over and over again to a person who has never heard it, or to one of another race who does not under- stand the term, and no suggestive eifect follows. But speak the word to one who is accustomed to connect and associate it with a definite feeling that they have experienced, and the feeling will be produced, or "induced," if the circumstances of the use of the word be favorable. The word "love," used properly, will awaken in the mind of its hearers feelings cor- responding with the term. And these feelings must have been experienced before, either directly or indi- 24S MIXD-POWEB rectly, before they may be indaced by snggestii Feelings experienced by one's ancestors leave record in one's sabeonseions mentality, which also be indneed by the appropriate saggestion. Personally, words seem to me to be like the wi record of a phonograph. The record is covered wil minute impressions produced by the sound-wa^ entering the phonograph. Place this record in place in the phonograph and start the latter in moti* and lo I the minate impressions on the record will prodnee or " induce" in the diaphragm the same kind of soond-waves that originally cansed the im^ pressions. In this way a word, which is the physii symbolic record of feeling, will prodnee its assodai feeling in the mind of the person hearing or readi it. And. as I have said, the feeling prodaced will depend largely upon the understanding of the mean- ing of the word held by the person receiving the i pression. For instance, in the case of the "love." let ns suppose that the term is strongly i feelingly suggested to a nmnber of jwrsons at 1 same time, and in the same way, Tou will find tbi the feeling induced in the one person will be that o love of parents; in another love of children; in i other love of husband or wife ; in another love of C in another an exalted affection for some person I the opposite sex ; in another the low animal pas; for one of the other sex ; and so on, each experiem a feeling occasioned by his or her association of t im- ^ FOUR KINDS OF SUGGESTION word with some feeling previously entertained. The same word may induce a feeling of the greatest pleasure in one person, and the greatest horror or disgust in another— the difference depending upon the association of the word in the mind of the two persons. I have dwelt upon these facts in order to make clear to you that there is no magic power in words in themselves, and that all their force and effect depends upon the associated feeling of which they are the crystallized physical and outward former symbol. The word is the body— the feeling is its soul. And so it is. with the suggestion of appearance, manner, surrounding, etc. Each of these depends for force and effect upon some accustomed associa- tion with some inner feeling, which feeling is repro- duced or induced by the outward symbol of the thing. We associate certain things with certain feelings, and when we see these things we are apt to experience the feeling indicated. People have been overcome by the sight of a picture, or a scene in a play— a song— a poem— Or suggestive music. And here is where the art of the suggestiouiat comes into play. He watches closely and discovers that certain words, tones, manners, appearances, actions, motions, etc., are associated in the minds of people with certain feelings and ideas. And so when he wishes to reproduce, produce, or induce in others these ideas or feelings, he simply reproduces MIND-POWEE 2r)ll tho QBsociatetl physical symbols, in words, motion, ur iijtpearaucc, aud the effect is prodae< Tilt' conjurer innkes certaiu motions with his handal which you liuve always associated with certaittl at'tious, and you feel that the action itself has been porfoniiod— but the conjurer omits the action, and you arc fooled. The "coulidenee man'* assumes the npiK'arnuoe, manners and actions which yon have alvciiy;!; tiSiitH'inted with certaiu qualities of character and you fcol that he is what he seems to be— but he isn't, and you are ftwled. This "play-acting" of lHH>iiK> is all a form of sag^stion, and yon are fooled b«oaus«} yoii aooopt the symbol for the reality* unlei >i>u understand the game. The actor assumes 1 aelious^ tiiues, dress aud won.is of certain c and if he Js a gooA actor yon forget tbe reali^ i laugh and Wivp, and otherwise feel that vkat ] see is reaUl.v, althouj^ roa realty knov i it all that it is only a pUr< And all tfais U i svijp^estioa raneaiber. Rwoenber, maw ami alv*;^ ttsfc a tMNi t^nittts hy tte pnsestatiaa «f Ac oaAvmid Sinnhol a^«Miat»d wiA As tttSmg t« W i PM tW risM PM«H u tWpkoaogt^lmd Obc Sa^tistiw ■■iiii'iiiwl tkefav«f s FOITR KINDS OF SUGGESTION 251 operation of tbis form of Mental Suggestion. The orator; the lawyer; the preacher; each uses words calculated to induce mental states, feelings and emotions, in the minds of his hearers. Such a one soon begins to learn the suggestive value of words, tones, and expression. He avoids the use of cold, abstract words, and drifts into the use of those which are symbols for deep feeling and emotion, knowing that these word sjinbols uttered with the proper tone and expression will induce the feelings for which they stand in the minds of the bearers. The bearers' emotions and feelings are played upon, in this way, like an instrument. The emotion or passion, whether it be love, fear, bate, greed, patriotism, courage, jealousy, sj-mpathy, etc., etc., is awakened by the skillful use of the words, tones, and expression which stand as sj-rabols for Uiese feelings. If you will remember how you were touched by an address that afterward seemed to you to be hyper- bolic and flamboyant— without argument, proof or sense— then you will realize how you were made the subject of Mental Suggestion through association. The skillful salesman operates upon you in the same way. So does his twin brother, the advertising man. The revivalist has this art reduced to a perfect science. "Words — words— words— inciters to action; in- ducers of feeling; symbol of mental states, and re- producers of mental states — despise them not; sneer not at them, for they have brought down low the MIND-PO"WEK mightiest of minds, when properly used. Even when written, their potency is great. Countries have often been made captive bv a clever phrase, which when analyzed meant nothing in reason— merely an awakener of feeling. Let me make the catch-phrases of a countrj', and I care not who makes its laws! The man best adapted to employ this form of sug- gestion is he who is more or less of an actor— that is, who possesses the faculty of throwing "expression" and "feeling" into words, actions and manner. Good orators, pleaders, salesmen, and others have this faculty largely developed. It belongs to the feminine side of the phenomena, for it has the "charming," drawing, leading aspect, and works by the employ- ment of the emotive-pole of mentation, rather the will or motive pole, as in the case of the first men- tioned phase of suggestion— that of authoritative statement or command. It operates not by beating down the will of the other person, but rather by in- ducing a sjTnpathetic rhythm of feeling and emotion, which overpowers his own will, and causes it to act accordingly. One should ever be on guard against this kind of influence. The best way to escape it, is to adopt the policy of never acting immediately in response to an appeal of this kind. Eather wait until the effect has worn off, and then submit the matter to the consider- tion of your reason and judgment. Of course, the cultivation of will-power will act as a shield or armor, protecting you from the subtle vibrations of this kind, FOUR KINDS OF SUGGESTION for this form of sn^estion is asually accompanied by strong mentative currents from the mind of the speaker. Fence yourself off from a too ready re- sponse to sympathetic appeals along the emotional lines. Let the head stand by the heart, ready to pre- vent its running away with you. Men should have the reason in the ascendant, not the emotional nature. When you feel yourself being carried off of your feet, by some emotional exeitment, steady yourself and ask your mind this question : is this a mental suggestion?" The question will tend to bring you to your state of equilibrium. When you know what a Mental Suggestion is, then you will learn to recognize them, and be on the lookout for them. This state of mind will act as a strong neu- tralizing agent for the most skillfully put suggestion. Have your torpedo nets out, no matter how secure you may imagine yourself to be. One caution more —be especially cautious, and slow to accept a sug- gestion when you are worn-out, tired, or in a pas- sive, pleasurable state— that is, whenever your will is resting; or else exhausted. On these occasionsi, "when in doubt, say No!" You will save yourself much regret by remembering this bit of advice. It is based on a proven psychological law. I have learned this law by bitter personal experience. Re- member it! Let us consider the fourth line of action of Mental Suggestion: SCGGESIION ThHOUQH REPETITION,— TMs foim of 254 MIND-POWER Mental Suggestion is quite common, and the study <l its manifestations is quite interesting, tor it bring; into operation a well known psychological principle which has its correspondences in the physical wor^ —"constant dripping will wear away the hardeM stone," You know the story of the man who told bii^ favorite lie so often that he believed it himself! WeH this is a psychological fact. People have started i to make a certain appearance of truth, in words, ( manner, by assuming something to be true that ■v not so. Then they kept on repeating the thin^ adding a little here, and a little there, until the thin got to be "a fixed idea" Tvith them, and they actuaU; believe it. And if a person can suggest himself i accepting a false belief in this way, you can see hff it will operate on others. The secret of the operation of this form of sugget tion lies in the pschological facts of "weakened i sistance through repetition of the "attack," and t "force of habit." The first time an unaccustome( suggestion is made, the mind sets up an active i sistance; but the next time it is presented, the sug gestion is not quite so unfamiliar as before, and i lessened resistance is set up; and so on, until at lai 00 resistance is interposed, and the Suggestion, i accepted. You know the old verse : "Vice is a monster of so frightful mien, That, to be hated, needs but to be seen. But seen too oft, familiar with her face, first endure, then pity, then embrace.' FOUR KINDS OF SUGGESTION 255 And this rule holds good with suggestions. We first resist them; then endure them; then accept them— unless we understand the law. The psychological fact involved in this form of suggestion is that impressions upon brain-cells be- come deepened by constant repetition. It is like sink- ing a die into a cake of wax — it goes deeper at each pressure. The mind is very apt to accept as true anything that it finds deeply impressed upon its records. It has become accustomed to finding these deep impressions only when they have been made by repeated efforts of its own intellect, or judgment, or experience, and so when it finds these deep imprea- sions that have been placed there by repeated Sug- gestions of others, it is not apt to discriminate. It finds itself "feeling" these things that have been repeatedly impressed upon it. Like the cuckoo's egg in the robin's nest, these illegitimate mental impres- sions are nurtured as one's "very own." There is a constant struggle for existence upon the part of the ideas, or mental images impressed upon me. The strong crowd out the weak. And in the ma- jority of cases, the strongest ones are those which have either been impressed in a vivid manner, or else by repetition. The second time you meet a man, you may have trouble in remembering him ; but the third time it is easier; and so on, until at last you forget that he ever was a stranger. And so it is with these suggested ideas— you gi-ow familiar with them through repetition; they lose their strangeness to 256 MIND-POWER you; and at last you cease to concern yourself about them. A strange thing is generally inspected, ex- amined, viewed suspiciously, etc., hut after the strangeness has "worn oflF you cease to exercise the former caution. "Familiarity breeds contempt."— and also lack of caution. Suggestion gains force by each repetition. This is one of the fundamental laws of suggestion, and one that all should remember. If you would take mental stock of yourself, you would find that you entertain a vast number of feel- ings, ideas and opinions, which you possess simply through this law of repeated suggestion. You have heard certain things affirmed, over and over again, until you have come to accept them as veritable facts, notwithstanding that you possess not the slightest personal knowledge of any logical proof, concern- ing them. Shrewd moulders of public opinion em- ploy this law, and constantly repeat a certain thing, in varying words and style, until at last the public accepts it as a proven and unquestioned fact. Many a man has gained a reputation for wisdom, merely because his friends repeatedly affirmed it, and the public accepted the suggestion. Many a states- man has had a reputation built up for him by friendly newspaper correspondents, whose constantly re- peated suggestions have caused the idea to crys- tallize into a material form in the public mind. And many a reputation has been destroyed by the re- peated shrugs, sneers, and insinuations of goss^ and evil-wishers. FOUR KINDS OF SUGGESTION 257 Advertisers understand this law, and keep the re-, peated suggestion of the merit of their wares con- stantly before the public mind, until it becomes gos- pel with the people. "If at first you don't succeed," and ' ' Never take No ! for an answer, ' ' are two axioms very dear to the heart of the man who uses sugges- tion ' 'in his business. ' ' Do not be deceived by this subtle form of sugges- tion. Do not imagine that an untrue thing becomes true because it is repeated often. Do not allow your judgment to be lulled to sleep by this drowsy repeti- tion of the slumber-song. Keep awake— keep awake I An understanding of this law of suggestion will throw light on many things that have puzzled you heretofore. Think over it a bit, when you have time, CHAPTER XVilL HOW SUGGESTION IS TJSED. Let US now consider the various forms of applica- tion of saggestion in everyday life. They are several and for convenience I separate them into three f orms, or groups, i.e., (1) Involnntary Snggestion; (2) Vol- untary Suggestion; and (3) Auto-Saggestion. Let ns now consider the first form : Involuntary Suggestion.— By this term I mean the use of suggestion involuntarily; without a partic- ular purpose; or unconsciously. We are giving suggestions of words, manner, action, etc., every moment of our lives. And these suggestions are constantly being accepted by those around ns. We are constantly influencing those with whom we come in contact, the greater part of the work being per- formed unconsciously by ns. We are acting as living inspiration for some, and living discour- agement for others, according to circumstances. Our moods, actions, words, appearance, manners, etCL, act as suggestions to those around us. I am not now speaking of the effect of mentative currents, etc, but of mental suggestion, pure and simple. A business house is permeated by the personality of its head, and his personal characteristics impress HOW SUGGESTION IS USED L themselves upon those under him, by the means of suggestion. He sets the gait of the place. If he is j active, and enterprising, so are the workers employed by him; and if he is careless and shiftless, so will they be apt to be. We affect those around us by our I mental attitudes, manifested in action, and they affect us— if we allow them to do so. Children are quite amenable to suggestion of this I sort, being natural imitators, and they soon take on ] the mental attitude of the parents toward them. If j the parent treats the child as being beyond control, the child will respond; if the child be considered " obstinate, etc., he will take on the suggestion, and the < original trouble will be magnified. People talk ; before their children, little realizing that the little minds are very suggestible, and are constantly taking I suggestive color from those around them. People i should endeavor to present to their children only the ] best, positive, helpful, uplifting, and encouraging , naental states. They should avoid giving the child the impression that it is "bad," or "mean," or "de- ceitful," or "shy," or anything of that sort. The ] child wiU be apt to accept the suggestion coming from a source that it naturally looks to for information, and it will be very apt to proceed to act upon the sug- gestion and make the words of the parent come true. ,1 I have heard of children who had become so im- pressed with their parents' suggestion that they -j would come to some had end, yet," that they had ' to fight against it the balance of their lives. Sow J 260 MIND-POWER the suggestive-seeds that you desire to sprout into reality— be careful to select the right kind. This subject of suggestion to children can be merely al- ■ !uded to here, for it would fill a book of itself. I| felt impelled to say a few words about it in thitt lesson, because my experience has taught me its es-J treme importance. This is the rule of Involuntary Suggestion: Oufd words, actions, manner, tones, appearance, and gen: I personality convey suggestions to those arovnet. tts, inducing mental states in accordance therewith. Therefore, act out only the character that you wish ) inipresB upon the world— and act it the best youl now how. The world will connect you with the pari I are playing, according to the suggestions thuRJ I jnade— sometimes you will get a better verdict than ' lyou really deserve; sometimes a worse one, hut in I either event, your mental attitude, reflected by your linvoluntary suggestions, will have caused the verdict, P whatever it may be. Therefore, form a correct men- I tal attitude, based upon some ideal of the part you I wish to play — and then play it out to the best of I your ability. Observe the outward appearance of the f part you are playing, for this is what the world f [first, last and all the time- and you are judged 1 lyour suggestive "make-up," and stage action. I well your part, for thereupon rests the verdict o^ I ihe audience. The second form of the application of suggestioi HOW SUGGESTION IS USED 261 VoLTiNTART SUGGESTION. — Til 19 form of the ap- plication of suggestion is manifested in eases in which the suggestion is deliberately and purposely made with the end of impressing other persons. Ita manifestations may be grouped into three classes, IS follows: (a) Suggestive Treatment; (b) Hyp- notic Suggestion ; (c) Suggestion in the form of Per- sonal Influence. By {a) Suggestive Treatment I refer to the prac- tice of Mental Suggestion used as a form of "treat- ment" for physical ills, or mental deficiencies, etc. The treatments for physical ills come under the term of "Mental Therapeutics," and will be spoken of in the chapter bearing fhat title. Treatment by suggestion for mental deficiencies, etc., is a branch of science that is rapidly coming to the fore. For some time it was clouded by its mistaken connec- tion with hypnotism, but now that it has been divorced therefrom it is being used to a much greater degree by scientists in all parts of the world. Its principle rests on the fact that brain- centers and brain-cells may be "grown," devel- oped, and increased by properly directed sugges- tions, so that one may be practically "made over" mentally. New qualities may be induced, and ob- jectionable ones decreased. Objectionable habits and traits may be eliminated, and desirable ones substituted or newly induced. The wonders of this form of practical psychology are being unfolded rapidly, and a great era is be- MIND-POWER fore us in this branch of science. The broad prin^ eiple of the "treatment" lies in the fact that l mental states induced by the proper suggestion tend to exercise and develop the portion of the brain in which they are manifested. Hence the theory once understood, and the best method adopted, the rest of the treatment becomes as simple as develop- ing any muscle of the body by the appropriate ex- ercise. I call this form of treatment "Brain Build- ing," by suggestion,- etc. (b) Suggestion in Hypnotism is a subject that I shall merely refer to here, for this is not a manual of hypnotism. Sufficient it is to say that hypnotism is a combination of the use of mentative energy in a certain form, coupled with siiffgestion. It is a proven psychological fact that in the hypnotic con- dition, all suggestions have a greatly exaggerated effect, and a suggestion that would scarcely be no- ticed in the ordinaiy state becomes a strong motive force to one in the state of hj'pnosis. In this state- 1 the most absurd suggestions are accepted, and acted upon — the most extraordinary delusions are enter- tained—and the suggestions of future action, or post- hypnotic suggestions, are made effective. I wish to caution my students against allowing themselves to be hypnotized for experimental or other purposes. It is conducive to negative conditions, and I heartily disapprove of the practice. I would not allow any- one to hypnotize me, and I would urge upon my stu- dents a similar attitude toward "experirn.enters.** The best effects of suggestion may be obtained with- oat hypnosis— the latter is merely an abnormal and morbid state, most undesirable to normal people. Let it alone ! (e) Suggestion in Personal Influence is referred to in other parts of this "work, and appears more fully in the chapters treating of Personal Influence, for it belongs to that phase of the general subject. The third form of application of Suggestion is what is known as : AuTo-SuGGESTioN. — By this term is mental self- suggestion, or suggestions given by one to his own mind. This is a most interesting and important phase of the subject, and will be dealt witii fully in the chapters on Mental Architecture, etc., under which head it fails. It is by auto-suggestions that so many people have "made themselves over," mentally, and have become that which they willed to be. Its prin- ciples are precisely the same as in the other forms of suggestion, except that the treatment is given by one's self instead of by another person. The vehicles of suggestion, i. e., the voice, the manner, etc., have been alluded to in other chapters as we proceeded. An eminent teacher of the use of suggestion in commercial pursuits, in speaking of the effect of suggestion in inducing mental states, says: "You can make a man think with you if you work on his feelings or higher nature, even though you run gunter to his ordinary judgment. If in this way r 264 MIND-POWER you can dazzle liis reason sufficiently, you can spu; him to almost any action of which man is capable.*' And this teacher is perfectly right in his statement altliongh he follows the old "subjective mind" ide^ and identifies "feeling" with the "higher nature,'' instead of treating it as belonging to the emotive pold of mentation. And, if I may be pardoned, I would suggest that the above statemeut would be a Utt nearer the true state of affairs if he had e "Ton can make a man feel with you if you work ( his emotive mentality," etc. The teachers of Business Psychology very i instruct their pupils in the art of suggestion in thffl process of making sales. They instruct the sale men to first gain the prospective customer's "j tention," then "arouse his interest," then awakeq "desire," and then— close the sale. These steps i the psychology of salesmanship apply equally well to the science of advertising, or any other appeal to the minds of people, and are logically correct. Tho^ attention once gained, the mind becomes more i less receptive; the mind once receptive, interest la aroused and a greater degree of receptivity is io duced; interest is gradually led to desire, induced by the subtle suggestion of words and the exhibitioD of the article to be sold ; and at last, when the proper psychological state is aroused, the trained salesman gently hut firmly gives the positive suggestion of a thoritj', or demand, pointing to the place where Lbi customer must sign bis Deme, thus using suggesttod HOW SUGGESTION IS USED 265 Hong both the lines of acquiescence and imitation- Fand the order is taken. Did you ever subscribe to a book at the solicitation of a good book agent f Well, if you did, and will let your mind run backward over the proceeding, you wil! see how the above rule ' works in practice. (1) Attention, (2) Interest, (3) Desire, (4) Sale— these are the steps of salesman- hip by suggestion; and advertising sales as well. Great is suggestion in business! I have known salesmen to gently suggest the closing of a sale by handing the customer a fountain pen, placed at the "suggestive slant," at the same time pointing to the space on the order blank, with the ' ' take-it- for-granted ' ' tone and utterance ; "Sign right here, please!"— and it was signed. The largest employers of agents have regular training schools, in which the new agents are given the benefit of the experience of the old hands at the business— and some of these old hands could give a professional suggestionist points on his own science. The ^gent is told bow the different classes of people act, the objections they will be likely to raise, and how the trained agent may overcome these obstacles by clever work, including, of course, an intelligent nse of suggestion. The average person would be j^urprised at the ideas advanced and the knowledge , Sof suggestion possessed by some of these men. One of these agents onoe told me that one of the iBrst things he learned when starting to work was fhat the agent should never permit the customer to MIND-POWEE Ktake his "prospectus," or saraple pages, in his < lliands. He said to me: "I always keep the ] ■pectus in my own hands, for if I let it get away f mme I will have lost the power of controlJing the at- ■iention and interest of the customer. He will t "have the matter in his own hands, and will have [otten away from me— he will then do the leading, pnstead of my doing it. I always keep the upper land of my man or woman. I do the leading, guid-* Wing, directing and influencing myself— I keep th»^ controlling gear in my 0"wn hands, always." And, in the science of advertising, also, there is t constant use of suggestion— usually conscious anda premeditated. This is taught in the "courses" and "schools" of advertising, and the "ad. men" ■well grounded on the subject. The use of the ' ' direel command," as the "ad. men" call it, is very com-J mon. People are positively told to do certain thin^ in these advertisements. They are told to "Take home a cake of Hinky-dink's Soap tonight; yonri wife needs it!" And they do it. Or they see a mam-J moth hand pointing down at them from a sign, and almost hear the corresponding mammoth voice, £ says {in painted words) : "Say, you! Smoke Honey-Dope Cigars; they're the best everl!!" And, if you manage to reject tl]e command the first time, yon will probably yield at the repeated suggestio; of the same thing being hurled at you at ever; comer and high fence, and "Honey-Dope" be your favorite brand iintil some other su^ei^ HOW ST7QOESTI0N IS USED tion eatchee you. Suggestion by authority and repetition, remember ; that 's what does the businesa for you I They call this "the Direct Command" in the advertising schools. Then there are other subtle forms of suggestion in advertising. You see staring from every bit of space, on billboard and in newspapers and maga- zines : ' ' Uwanta Cracker, ' * or something of that sort — and you usually wind up by acquiescing. And then you are constantly told that "Babies howl for Grandma Hankin's Infantile Soother," and then when you hear some baby howling you think of what you have been told they are howling for, and then you run and buy a bottle of "Grandma Hankin's.'' And then you are told that some cigar is "Gen- erously Liberal" in size and quality; or that some kind of cocoa is ' ' Grateful and Refreshing' ' ; or that some brand of soap is "99.999% Pure"; and that some pickle man makes "763 Varieties"; etc., etc., etc. Only last night I saw a new one—' ' Somebody's Whisky is smooth," and every imbiber in the ear was smacking his lips and thinking about the "smooth" feeling in hia mouth and throat. It was smooth — the idea, not the stuff, I mean. And some other whisky man shows a picture of a glass, a bottle, some ice and a syphon of seltzer, with simply these words: "Oldboy's Highball-That's AH"! All of these things are suggestions, and some of them very powerful ones, too, when constantly impressed upon the mind by repetition. They "get in their work" on you. [ ti :; k A writer on the psyeliology of advertising advises, among other things, that advertisements of article! to eat or drink should contain the words calculatf to induce the feeling of "taste" in the minds of tli< readers. ' ' Sweet, " " refreshing, " " thirst-quencli- ing," "nourishing," etc., etc. — how suggestive they are I And how effective! How do they act? you ask. How! Well, this way— just you read these words: "A nice, hig juicy lemon— tart and strong —I can taste it now!" Just imagine these words accompanied by a picture of a man squeezing the juice of a lemou into his mouth, and where are you? I'll tell you where— your mouth is filled with salivj from the imagined taste of the tart lemon juice: Now, isn't it? Tell this to some of your friends an< see how it works. I once heard a story of a had li' tie boy, who would stand in front of a "Germi band," with a lemon to his mouth, sucking awi vigorously. Ecsult: The mouths of the musicii became filled with so much saliva that they could ni play on. Exit hoy, with Professor TTmpah, the basf horn player, in full pursuit, the air being filled wit] Dunner und Blitzenl" and worse. Just suggei tion! I have known of dealers in Spring goods to fon the season by filling their windows with the advam stock. I have seen hat dealers start up the straw hi son by putting on a straw themselves, their clerks ditto, and then a few friends. The sprink- ling of "straws" gave the suggestion to the street, lea^l m IfiV HOW SUGGESTION IS USED \ aad the straw liat season was opened. Business men understand suggestion. Kven the newsboys undei-- Btand it. The best ones are above asking as tht novices do, "Want a paper, mister?" or worse still, "You don't want a paper, mister, do you?" The good ones say, instead, boldly and confidently, "Here's your paper, mister!" sticking it under yoxtv nose— and you take it. Let me tell you a tale about a "barker" at a pleasure resort in Chicago, several years ago. He was the best I ever heard. Here ia the story— it's a true one: This man was the "barker" or "spieler" for one of the attractions of the place, the "pony ride" at- traction. Many were the ponies lined up to carry the children around the ring, for a nickel a ride. The "spieler" would wait until a crowd of children, with or without their parents, would enter the place and then he would begin in the strongest, most strenuous, lasping, suggestive tone: " Ride, ride BIDE.' Have a ride, take a ride, have a ride, fofre a ride! Anybody, everybody; anybody, everybody I Bide, ride, r-r-r-r-r-r-ride! ! I ! Anybody rides, everybody rides — rides, rides, bhies — rides, rides, BIDES— r-r-r-r-r-r-ridesl Take a ride, have a" ride, take a ride, have a ride, take a ride, have a ride? Anybody, everybody, anybody, eveetbody- ride, ride r-r-r-r-r-r-r-r-r-ride! R-r-r-r-r-r-r-r-r-r-r- - ride! R^r-r-r-r-r-r-r-r-r-r-r-r-r-ride!" He would beep this sort of thing up for several minutes, ap- parently without taking a fresh breath. The very 270 MIND-POWER air eeemcd to quiver and vibrate in the rhythm of his " r-r-r-r-r-r-ide, r-r-r-r-r-r4de!" And every child ■vrithin hearing who oould raise a nickel would surely ride! The word "ride!" positively, authoritatively and constantly repeated, "was one of the most start-- ling exhibitions of this form of suggestion that £■ have ever seen or heard. I have heard many imita^ tors of this "spieler," but have never met his equal. Perhaps he has now passed on to some higher form , of usefulness — he was worthy of it. He was a mas- ■ter, surely. m I I have seen men in bowling alleys caused to makfn ■false plays by some bystander suggesting the fals« Ishot. The same thing is true in shooting gallerieM I etc. You have but to look around you and see thestJ I everyday instances of suggestion, in some form on I other. Induced feeling, remember! That is the keyfl lof all manifestations of suggestion. Look out for it! I And, in conclusion, I know of a little boy who ex- I emplified the law of suggestion one April Fool's Day I by placing a sign on the coat-tail of another boy. TiuM I sign read "kick me!" Ajid they did I fl I The skillful lawyer uses suggestion in his work in [.examining or cross-examining witnesses. He Buff's I gests things to a suggestible witness, and coaxes andfl t leads him on to admissions and statements that hd ft did not intend making— sometimes statements than tare not strictly correct. Such a one will say, "Yam I did so and so," or "You saw so and so, didn't youI"S Letc, the direct statement made in an authoritatJViJ HO"W SUGGESTION IS USED 2?1 ]nanner, causing the suggestible witness to acquiesce. Look out for this confident, authoritative manner, in a lawj'cr or any one else. It is calculated to lead one into acquieacenoe, for man is "an obedient animal," and it is "so much easier to say Yes I than No! when you see that Yes! is expected." It is charged that police detectives have worked false "confessions" out of suggestible criminals in this way, by keeping hammering away at them until their wills are worn out, and they would say "Yes !" to escape further questioning, like the girl who finally accepted the lover's repeated proposal in order to get rid of him. This firm, decided, authoritative statement or demand, when allied to the law of repe- tition, has caused much mischief in the world, and many have "given in" to it, to their sorrow. I trust that these warning words will save some other trouble of this kind. When the law is once under- stood it is comparatively easy to escape the sugges- tion. The strength in the suggestor of this kind liei» in the ignorance of the person suggested. Fore- warned is forearmed, in this case. I have heard of business men who would instruct their clerks to ask questions of their customers in this way: "You like this pattern, do you not?" or "This is a beautiful shade, is it not?" etc., etc., etc. Do you see the point? The statement is made first, and the question is asked right on top of it. Isn't it easier to say Yes I than No ! to this kind of a ques- tion! {See there, now, I asked the question in that 272 MIND-POWER way, myself, although I had no intention of doing I took my own suggestion.) In this connection I may add that it is a well kno" psycbological fact that, when two persons are c< versing, the one standing, or sitting higher thas' the other, has the advantage of a certain positive at- titude or position. And the person seated below the speaker is forced into a relatively passive or nega- tive condition, or position. That is, everything else being equal, the person elevated will be positive to the other, and the one seated on a lower level will be passive, relatively. Tbe raised platform of the teacher, speaker, preacher, etc., has a good psy- chological basis. And tbe power that a lawyer feels when "talking on his feet' to the jury seated in front of him is a manifestation of a law that he may not be aware of— but the judge has the best of tbe lawyer, for the latter must look up to him when talks. Try the experiment of practicing the above poi tion with some friend, first one being seated and then the other, and see how you can actually feel the difference between the two positions. The raised position of clerks in the large stores, and the low seats so accommodatingly placed for the customers, have good reasons. If you ever feel that some one is placing you in a negative or passive condition, rise to your feet, and you will feel doubly strong and forceful. This is a little hint that may be worth many times the price of this book to you, some of HOW SUeSESTION IS USED 273 i these days. Loo^s over tbe foolish things that you have been talked or influenced into, and see if yon were not seated and the other person standing, or seated higher than you. This is a little thing— but it works big results, sometimes. Better heed it. There is a great difference in the suggestibility of persons, some being almost immune from sugges- tion, while others are so suggestible that they have but to be told a tiling in a positive, forceful, confident, authoritative tone and manner, to accept the sugges- tion, particularly if it be repeated several times. They will likewise readily absorb the suggestions of imitation and association. But I have told you about this elsewhere in this lesson. Study those around you, and you will soon discover the different de- grees. The hypnotic "subject" is at the extreme negative end of the scale. I now wish to call your attention to what may be called "future-suggestion," or, as the hypnotists call it "post-hj'pnotism," etc. Future suggestions are like seeds planted in the mind, which grow, blossom and bear fruit at some future time. The hypnotists produce this phenomena by giving the subject, while in the hypnotic condition, the sugges- tion that at a certain time, either in a few minutes, or hours, or days, he will do certain things, or feel certain things. But the newer school of psycholo- gists have discovered that these future suggestions may be made in the ordinary receptive state, just as is the case with any of the other forms of mental sug- gestions, and the result will be the same as that ob- I 274 MIND-POWER tained by the hypnotists, in spite of their theories and methods. I do not purpose going into detail regarding this class of phenomena, becanse all that is necessary to be said can be comprised in the following two state- ments: (1) That, generally speaking, all the phe- nomena of the ordinary Immediate mental suggestion may be produced as future suggestion; and (2) that all the phenomena of future-suggestion, produced by the suggestor upon another person, may be like- wise produced by auto-suggestions, that is, by the person inducing suggestions in himself. Many foolish suggestions are given in everyday life along the lines of future suggestion, and alas I many of them are accepted carelessly, owing to a lack of knowledge of the principle. How many times has it been said to an impressionable young bride, "Nevermind, you'll grow tired of bim after a while," etc. Or to a man, "Wait until the novelty ivears off and you'll see how sick of the job you'll get." Or, "You'll lose your interest and enthusiasm, by-and- by." Or, "You'll find him out after a while and will see that he's not what he seems." And so on^ you may add to these instances from your own es- perience. And too often these suggestions are re- called and have a tendency to cause the person to "make them come true." Many fortune-tellers' prophecies have been made come true in this way by impressionable and ignorant people. I have given you a key to this principle now — heed the lesson t If you feel that an attempt at future impression 1b HOW SUGGESTION IS USED 275 teing made on yon nentralize it witli a mental "No, J won't"! That is the antidote for the bane. The second principle in the statement made sev- eral paragraphs further back— i. e., that all the phenomena of future suggestion may be duplicated by auto-suggestion, or suggestions made by one- self—is true and worthy of consideration. You malm np your mind that you muet awaken to catch a train at four tomorrow morning and you awaken in time. You have set your mental alarm clock. If you have an engagement at three this afternoon you may set your alarm as follows (.talking to yourself, of course) : ' ' Now, see here ! Remember that you must see Smith at three this afternoon— three, three, I say I Ee- member now, three, I say"! And if you impress it sufficiently strong upon your mind, a little before three you will begin to feel uneasy, and then sud- denly your Smith engagement will "pop" into your mind from your sub-conscious region, and you will reach out for your hat and overcoat. Mental alarm- clock, remember! That tells the whole tale, You see, the experimenter giving future sugges- tions simply sets the mental alarm-clock going along the lines of suggestion. He makes the mental sug- gestion and attaches it to the mental alann-cloek— ■when the alarm goes off the suggestion emerges into the field of consciousness and acts just as if it had been freshly made. That's the whole story in plain, homely terms. But don't he frightened, you timid people. Ee- tnember this, that yon will aot accepl a. ^u^-utft w«t- 276 MIND POWER gestion unless you would also accept a present sug- gestion—the degree' of "suggestibility" is the same in both cases. The only reason a future sugges- tion has the advantage over a present one is that it is more subtle, and people are not as much on guard about future things as they are about things to be "done right now." You will resent a suggestion that you "Do this thing right now," while you pay but little attention to the earnest suggestion that "in a year from now you will feel so-and-so about this matter," and dismiss the subject with a shrug of the shoulders, instead of saying, at least mentally, "No, I won't"! The present suggestion is apt to at- tract your attention the more forcibly, because it is more apparent— while the future suggestion is more "insinuating." But now that you know the facts of the matter you may laugh at them both, and take the sting out of them by your little "No, I won't"! And, just one word more. If you feel that you are harboring any future enggestions made on you in the past, but upon which the alarm has not yet gone off, you may kill them by direct self-suggestion, or auto- suggestions to the contrary. That is, you may say "I shall not act upon any adverse suggestions thati^ may have been made to me — I loill them out of mj^^. mind — / kill them this moment by the power of m]^^ will." And at the same time make a mental pietur*-:^ of the suggestion being obliterated by the action o«2» your will, just as the chalk mark is erased from tlKrCd blackboard by the passing over it of the eraser. Ti this plan and be freel M CHAPTER XIX. INDUCED IMAGINATION. .ere is a form of suggestion which tends to arouse activities in the imaginative regions of the minds of people. Of course, the imagination plays a part in all manifestations of suggestion, but in this particular form its action is especially apparent, I call this class of phenomena "Induced Imagination." The term "imagination," you know, means "the power of the mind to create mental images of ob- jects of sense; the power to reconstruct or recom- bine the materials furnished by experience, memory or fancy; a mental image foraied by the faculty of imagination," etc., etc. The word is derived from the English word "image," which in turn has for its root the Latin word "imatari," meaning "to imi- tate." The imagination is creative in its nature and works with the plastic material of the mind. The writers usually make a distinction between what is called "imagination proper," on the one hand, and what is called ' ' fancy' ' on the other. By ' ' imagination proper" is meant the higher forms of activity of the image-creating faculty, such as is manifested in the Creation of literature, art, music, philosophical 278 AIIND-POWEE theory, scientific hypothesis, etc By "fancy*' meant the lighter forms of the manifestation of f image-creating faculty, such as the ideal fandes e day-dreams of people ; the arbitrary and capritao! imaginings; fantasy, etc. "Imagination propei^ may be considered as a positive phase, and "fane; as the negative phase, of the image-creating faeoltj Imagination in its positive phase is a most i portant faculty of the human being. It lies at i basis of active mental manifestations. One m^ form a mental image of a thing before be can r fest it in objective form. It is distinctly creative | its nature, and really forms the mould in which d« and actions are cast— it forms the architect's pU wliieh we use to build our life of action and deei And, mind you this, it is the faculty used in "Vis) alization," which is spoken of in other chapters. Pd itive imagination is very far from being the 1 ful, capricious, light, whimsical thing that many bV pose it to he. It is one of the most positive mai tdtions of the mind. Not only does it precede, ia necessary to, the performance of objective i and the producing of material things— but it is i the faculty by which we impress our mental-im£ii upon the minds of others by mentative induetill and by the uses of desire and will. Positive i nation is the mother of "ideas." An "idea" "an image formed in the mind"; and the imag: tion is the faculty inwhich the "image" (or" is formed. And in proportion to the activity of t INDUCED IMAGINATION 279 fanaginatiou, so is the strength of the image or idea. And as is the strength of the image or idea, so is the degree of its power to impress itself upon the minds of others. So you see, imagination, in its positive phase is a strong, real thing. But it is largely with its negative phase that we shall have to deal with here. You tnow that your negative imagination, or fanc^', may he aroused by outward persons or things. You hear a piece of music, and hefore you know it your fancy is running along painting all sorts of pictures in your mind, and inducing all sorts of feel- ings. A picture may affect you in the same way. A piece of poetry, or poem, may lift you out of your- self on the wings of fancy. A book may carry you along in a world of fantasy and unreality, until you forget the actual world around you— have you not had this experience? And, more marked than any of the above mentioned cases, is the effect of a per- fect stage perfoiToanee, in which the world and char- acters of the play take such a hold upon you as to seem reality itself, and you laugh and cry with the characters of the play. You scowl at the villain, and tremble at the danger of the heroine. You glory in the hero's success, and shed tears at the sorrows and trials of the suffering characters. And you feel these things in proportion that your negative imag- ination or fancy is called into activity by induction. But remember this— the actors, poet, writer, com- poser, or artist created his effect by the exercise of 280 MIND POWER his or her positive imagination ; while the effect I you is induced in your negative imagination. firet is an act of positive creation, while the seoj is merely a reflection Impressed upon your : hy either the suggestion, or the mentative euerg; the actor. In your consideration of the above, remei what I have said about suggestion, in an ea3 chapter. Suggestion is merely the presentatioi the outward symbol of the inner feeling. The radical wing of the school of suggestioi^ pooh-pooh at the idea of mentative energy haw anything to do with the phenomena which we are fl considering. They claim that "suggestion" is i ficient to account for it all. Without going de< into a discussion of this matter, I would ask tq gentlemen: Why is it that the same tvords, utti in the same tone, by two different suggestors, \ duce widely diff-erent degrees of effect? Al is that peculiar personal force that we feel when 6 tain persons suggest, that is absent in the sug] tions of others! My answer is that the differ* lies in the degree of feeling called into activilg the mind of the suggestor — the degree of mentiil energy released by him. And I think that any o ful investigator will agree with me in this, if he 1 open his mind to all the impressions received ( ing his investigations, instead of tying himself i previously conceived theory. The theories of suggestion are not contrai INDUCED IMAGINATK those of mentative energy and induction, when prop- erly understood. The facts of the suggestionists are "undoubted, but they make the mistake of ignoring the mental states of the suggeationist. They think that their effects are produced by suggestion alone, and forget the mental state behind the suggestion whicl is the real motive force. If their theories be true, "why is it that two men using the same words of sug- gestion, upon the same subject, produce varying de- grees of effect? It is because the mental states or dynamic mentation of the two men vary in quality and degree. In connection with this subject of negative imagi- nation or fancy, I would call your attention to a class of phenomena, along tbe same general lines, in which certain states of imagination, or fancy, are self-in- duced. Nearly all races of men have discovered that there are means possible to people whereby they may produce in themselves abnormal conditions, known as the "trance," "dream-states"; "tran- cendental condition"; etc, And men, from the dim past to the present time, have seen fit to indulge in these deplorable practices. The means by which these states are obtained are various, the favorite methods being the gazing at a bright object; fixing the gaze at the root of the nose; staring at the um- bilicus, staring at a drop of ink; inhaling vapors; listening to weird music, etc., etc. Much mock-oc- cultism, which is really "psychism," depends upon tbese methods for its results, manifestation and w 282 MIND-POWER phenomena. The Hindu "fakirs" and the J vishes indulge freely in these metliods, and pn results which while highly esteemed by themsd are viewed with disgust, horror and repulsi true occultists of ali lands, who regard these ] tices as harmful, and the phenomena resulting t from as bogus and misleading. And much of the latter-day western psyehia also based upon the same practices, and brings a like results. In this connection I would say " some of the practices adopted by some of the ' Thought" people belong to this class. I have I certain methods advised for "Going into the"! lence," in which the student is advised to foeaail gaze on the root of his nose, etc., which is the i ticai method used by Braid to produce hypnotic con- ditions, and which is also used by the Hindu ' ' fakirs" to produce "trance" conditions. Is it not time that the truth regarding these things should be known! This "trance" phenomena, whether produced by mesmeric processes or hy other means, are ab- normal, unhealthy, and undesirable phases of men- tal condition. I cannot speak too strongly against the encouragement of, and instruction in, the de- velopment {I had almost said the "DeviJ-opment") of these abnormal states, either by self-practice or by means of hypnotic or mesmeric methods. It is high time that someone should call the attention of the public to the dangers of this so-called "psy- ehism." I know positively that this kind of * INDUCED IM^\GINATION 283 ehism" is not the desirable thing that it is supposed to be. I know, also, that it is very far from true oc- cult development. This kind of "psyehism," when compared with true occultism, is but as the baleful glare of the moon, as contrasted with the bright, warm, life-giving rays of the sun. This false occult- ism, which is not occultism at all, but merely a negative form of ' ' psychism, ' ' has deluded many into its folds, and has led its followers on to planes which are akin to mental quagmires and swamps, following the ignis fatuus, or "will-o'-the-wisp" of this pseudo-spirituality which is but a negative form of psychism. These self-induced abnormal conditions may be produced by hypnotic methods, by leading the sub- ject into the "deeper stages," which some authorities speak of as if tbey were "highly spiritual," but which are nothing more than the miserable, abnormal, deplorable ' ' trance ' ' conditions just referred to. These conditions may be produced by hypnotic meth- ods, simply because any mental state may he so pro- duced, and not because of any mystic process, or knowledge, or connection. They resemble the so- called "sleep-conditions" of hypnotism. The only difference is that the operator induces the condition by mental influence, and suggestion, just as he would induce any other mental state— instead of the sub- ject inducing it in himself. It is the same o!d abnor- mal, hannful practice, in another guise. And any- thing that is said against the self-induced condition i^M 284 MIND-POWEE is equally applicable to the operator-indnced • They are the same thing! It is all hypnosis, or aij hypnosis. I shall not describe the conditions at further len. nor shall I give any instructions in the productionv them. I consider them essentially harmful, and t object in speaking of them here is to warn, off i caution people not to allow themselves to be p!ad in this condition by experimenters. The practictf weakening to the will, for the reason that it depeia upon the tiring of the attention by straining the ey) or other organs of sense. Practitioners of men^ influence in all ages have recognized this fact i have employed objects calculated to tire out the i lention. Bright objects to stare at and thus tire t the sense of sight have been employed ; monotond^ sounds ending in " um-m-m-m-m" are used by \ Orientals to tire oiit the sense of hearing by its i notonous and soothing sound; vapors and perfm and incense are used to overcome the sense of siB — all tending to tire out the will, and to reduce ita a passive, non-resisting stage. Then when the i has been rendered passive, or tired, the mind 1 comes receptive and impressionable, and, in extH cases, becomes as was in the hands of the operati Let me urge upon you to avoid this abnormal ' 'p3| chism"— put it away from you as you would a J sonous cobra, for it seeks to strike at the heart J your will, and would thus paralyze your mental Beware of all that tends to make you weak. Be*J INDUCED IMAGINATION 283 of the claims of "soul-development" or "spiritual- nnfoldineiit" that are accompanied by these meth- sds, for they are but psycbism masquerading as oe- raltism or spiritual developm.ent. Remember my ;: "Does this make me strong?" Apply the toTich-stoae, and then govern yourself accordingly, Concluding this part of the subject, I would say ;liat if any of you are disposed to question the cor- rectness of my above statement, then you have but to examine the tj"pes of "psychics" seen on all sides. Are they not all hyper-impressionable; excessively sensitive; aeurotic; hysterical; passive; negative people? Do they not become as mere psychic harps, upon which the passing mental breezes play, pro- ducing weird sounds ? Remember, now, I am speak- ing of genuine psychics, not the bogus psychics, who are out for the money, ' ' and who are a shrewd, cun- ning lot, far from being impressionable, and in real- ity using their mesmeric power to impress and in- fluence the credulous persons coming under their inSuence. I am not alluding to these people, but to the poor, frail-willed, negative sensitives, who are as impressionable as the photographer's "negative" — and to whom also the "development' ' means but the bringing out of impression from out- lide. I pray you, be a human positive, not a human legativef CHAPTER XX INDTTOED IMAGINATION IN INDIA, At this point I wish to call your attention to a I tare of the subject that has received but scant attlj tion at the hands of western writers. I allude to % wonderful manifestations of induced imagination d played by some of the magicians of the orient, | ticnlarly of India and Persia. These feats are brf performed today in those lands and are equal to 4 of the wonderful instances related of the and Persian or Egyptian magicians. "Without going into an extended consideratioikV the subject in question I will mention a few of ( recorded instances of induced imagination among! oriental people, in order to give you an idea of I degree of power possible to an adept in the praci One writer describes an exhibition of this kind India, witnessed by himself. The writer was a | found skeptic, who believed that it was all "ha; panky" along the lines of sleight-of-hand or sim methods — that is, he so believed until he actually li neseed the demonstration. He goes on to relate t the ma^cian was a native Hindu, of dignified I imposing appearance, surrounded hy a uambe"' •iistants of his own race. IN INDIA 287 le mag^ician seated himself on the ground, with 'eral jars, boxes, implements, and other parapher- nalia before him. He opened the seance by the pro- duction of a number of tiny snakes, which he lifted from one of the boxes, and placed on the ground be- fore him, ill full sight of the audience, after allow- ing the latter to examine the serpents and thereby satisfy themselves regarding their reality. An Eng- lish naturalist present identified the snakes as be- longing to a well known native variety. The ma- gician then began a slow, mournful, droning, mo- notonous song, the predominant sound of which wai "um-m-m-m-m-m-m-m," like the droning of a bumble bee or a distant saw mill. The snakes reared themselves up and moved their heads from side to side at the sound of the chant, the magician touch- ing them softly with his wand from time to time. To the eyes of the audience the snakes seemed to gradually grow from their original tiny proportiona until 6nally they appeared as immense boa constric- tors, which caused great alarm among the audience, both Englishmen and native. The magician bade the audience remain quiet and assured them that there was no danger — then he reversed the process, and the snakes were seen to gradually decrease in size un- til they vanished from sight altogether. The nest act was equally aa wonderful. The ma- ^cian placed one of his assistants in the center of a circle described on the sand, and with appropriate gestures and ceremony went through some magical 2ti8 MIND-POWER incantation. The boy was then seen to spin aroiX faster and faster, like a large top, and then ho^ to gradually ascend in the air, still spinning arom until he vanished from sight. Then the magicianj versed the process and brought him down from f aerial heights, the boy appearing like a small spi at first, gradually growing larger as he neared I earth, until he stood before the audience, bowing $ smiling. The next act was the placing of some mango S^ in the sand, building a tiny hillock around them, magician then began his chant and waved his 1 over the hillock. In a moment a tiny shoot was l to appear, and then a little bush which gradu grew up until a mature mango tree was seen, bean leaves. Then blossoms were seen, and the ripe i appeared, which was passed among the audied Then, reversing the process, the tree disappear gradually, and at the end the magician dug np j original seeds and showed them to his audience. wonderful to relate, the fruit that had been disl buted among the i}eople also disappeared. The concluding act was as startling as those ] ceding it. The magician produced a coil of real r which was passed around for examination. Thei knotted one end of it and then tossed the knot | the air. The rope rapidly uncoiled itself, and I knot was seen away up in the air, and stitl ascend When the rope was completely uncoiled, and the J teft dangling on the ground as if supported by n IN INDIA hook holding the knotted end hundreds of feet up in the air, one of the assistants approached the rope and took hold of it. At a shout from the magician he began climbing rapidly np the rope, and in a short time disappeared from view, after appearing as a tiny speck in the air. Tben at another word from the magician the rope itself flew op in the air and van- ished from sight This concluded the performance. But here is a re- markable sequel. An Englishman present took a anap-shot with a pocket camera, just as the boy be- gan to climb the rope. When the negative was de- veloped there was no trace of rope, boy or anything else appertaining to the manifestation. Even the magician was absent from the center of the scene and was shown on the plate as sitting down on one side, jrith an amused smile on his face. This fact demon- strated that which similiar tests have also proven; i. e., that the feais were not really performed at all, but were simply illusions produced by impressions upon the minds of the audience. In fact, they were examples of induced imagination. I shall give you another proof of this in a moment or two, after I have related a few more instances of this wonderful manifestation. Another writer, a correspondent of an American paper, relates that he was once on a steamer plying up one of the rivers in India, when, at a stopping place, there scrambled up the side as nimbly as a monkey a native Hindu, clad only in a loin cloth and w 290 MIND-POWER having a tight-rolled red bundle fastened at the bJ) of his neck to keep it safe from the water while swii ming from shore. There was nothing about the man to distinguish him from the ordinary fakirs, but he soon showed his quality. Passing along the deck he picked up a ball of thin rope which was lying there, and, unwinding an end, he knotted it and tossed the knot up in the air, where it ascended, rapidly unwinding the ball, until the whole of the rope disappeared in the air, just as in the instance previously related. Tlien passing a sailor who was holding in his hand a broken eocoanut shell containing the liquid or "water" of the nut, be lifted the shell from his hand and holding it high up over a ship's bucket standing nearby he emptied the liquid until it filled the bucket, and repeated the pro- cesB upon another bucket, and so on until twelve buckets had been filled from the half eocoanut shell. Then he picked up one of the buckets filled with the liquid and, holding it in his baud, he caused it to gradually shrink until it completely disappeared. Then a moment later he exhibited a tiny speck in his hand, which gradually grew until it was again, the bucket of water filled to the brim with the liquid, which he then poured out on the deck. Witnessing the strange performance was a young mother with her babe beside her and a young nurse girl several feet away. To her horror the mother then beheld the nurse girl rising a few feet in the air and moving rapidly toward the babe, reaching down IN INDIA 291 for the infant as she glided over it, and then rising high into the air with the child clasped in her arms, until both were lost in the clouds. The mother hurst into frantic cries and shrieks and gazed upward; and as she gazed she saw a fleecy cloud appear, which gradually took the shape of the nurse girl, who grew larger and larger as she descended, until she finally reached the deck again and handed the babe to the rejoiced mother. The mother, after clasping her babe close to her bosom, cried out, "How dare you take my child away?" when to her surprise the girl answered, "Why, ma'am, the baby has been asleep all the time and I have not touched him." And then the fakir smiled and said, "Mem Sahib has only been dreaming strange things." It was merely an in- stance of induced imagination of a remarkable de- gree of power, produced by the Mental Imagery of the fakir ; and his previous feats were also so performed. But this was only the beginning. The fakir then untied his red bundle, and, extracting therefrom a cocoanut he exhibited it to the passengers, passing it around for inspection. Then, placing the nut on the end of a bamboo stick, and, balancing it there, he commanded it in Hindi to spout as a fountain, and immediately a gi-eat jet of water sprang from it, falling over the deck in great showers. He then caused it to stop flowing, and it obeyed; then be re- started it. This is repeated several times. Then he materialized a cobra from the air and caused 292 MIND-POWER it to disappear at Ms command, after he terrified the passengers with it. Then he terialized several human forms in broad sun! in full view of the passengers, and afterwards causeci them to melt away gradually until they disappeared like a cloud of steam. Then taking up a collection, which was quite liberal, he jumped over the side and swam rapidly to shore. The natives among the ship's passengers smiled at the wonder of the Europeans present and laughed at the latter 's talk of jugglery or magic power, in- forming them that it was merely an instance of Hindu Telepathy, or Mental Influence, and that those among them who resisted the spell saw nothing except the fakir with glistening eyes showing every evidence of a powerful and concentrated exercise of his Imagination. These feats are quite com- mon in some parts of India, but they are known to be but mental illusions, for all attempts to catch the exhibition on photographic plates have failed, the plate showing nothing but the magician in a state of mental concentration. The magicians have devel- oped the power of causing many persons at the same time to have the illusion of seeing, hearing, tasting and smelling things that have no material existence. It is induced imagination in a developed degree, but differs only in degree from the phenomena more familiar to the Western. World. In this connection I would like to add the testimony and explanation given to me personally by a greatly IN INDIA esteemed friend of mine— a Hindu sage traveling in this coimtry, who in addition to his Oriental learn- ing has received the highest English education and who is "a highly educated man" in both the eastern and western meanings of the term. This gentle- man told me that when a youth he had witnessed ex- hibitions of the liind just related in his native land. At first he was puzzled and mystified by them, but his naturally scientific turn of mind caused him to seek for the solution. He began experimenting, and soon at least was able to classify the phenomena as pure mental illusion. He found that the crowd would gather close around the magician in order to see ■what was going on, although all were required to keep a certain number of yards away from the won- der-worker by the latter's instructions and require- ments. My friend found that if he retreated a few yards beyond the outer edge of the crowd he could see nothing but the magician, all the "magical do- ings" disappearing. When he would join the crowd the mystic appearances were again plainly seen. He tried the experiment in several ways, with the same result. Then he tried a riskier one and pushed nearer to the magician than was allowable —and with the same result. In short, the influence was confined to a certain area and the mental influ- ence was doubtless increased by the "contagion" of the different minds in the crowd. My friend tested the well-known "Mango feat" and the "Rope-disap- pearing feat" (as related in these pages) in this 294: MIND-POWEK way and determined that they came well under the rale of mental illusion, instead of being an occur- rence defying the established laws of Nature. The testimony of this gentleman corroborated the opin- ion that I had already formed to that effect, which opinion agrees with that of the best authorities. In closing this chapter I wish to point out to the students of the work an erroneous idea that has crept into some of the Western works along the lines of hypnotism, etc., and which I shall now mention and explain. The Hindu magicians, or mesmerists, fre- quently sit in a squatting position during their "en- cliantments, " droning a monotonous, soothing chant, as has been described, and at the tame time moving the body from the waist upward, in a circling, twist- ing motion, from the hips, at the same time fixing their gaze firmly upon their audience. This motion and twisting is merely an accompaniment to the droning chant akin to the motions of the Oriental dancers who twist their bodies in a similar man- ner in rhythm to the music. The motion is merely a custom among these people and hasnothing to do with the production of the phenomena, as all Hindu occult- ists know and will tell you. In fact, the higher ma- gicians among the Hindus do nothing of the sort, but maintain a dignified, calm, standing position, or the firm "yogi" seat," in which the body is evenly and firmly poised in a position of dignified rest, the hands resting on the lap, the back of one hand in th» palm of the other. IN INDIA 296 I native Hindus understand the above matter, lit western visitors jump at the conclusion that this gyrating circling of the body from the hips has something to do with the "power" manifested. And, as I have said, some of the western works on the subject have gone into conBiderable detail regard- ing this wonderful "Oriental Magic," which they assert is accomplished because of this twisting of the body. They might just as well point out some physical trick of motion of each leading western hypnotist and assert that the motion was the "se- cret of his power." I do not think that further comment is necessary in this case. The motions and attitudes, etc., are merely part of the setting of the piece, or possibly bits of "stage business," de- signed to heighten the impression of mystery. That's all. I have been informed by an authority whose word is entitled to the greatest respect, and who has spent many years in India and other oriental countries, that the following method is used by these oriental magicians in developing withia themselves the power to induce these strong mental images in the minds of those witnessing their performances: The magician starts when a youth and practices men- tal imagery in his own mind. This process is akin to Visualization, as mentioned by me in other chap- ters of this work. The magician at first uses his will in an endeavor to form a clear and distinct men- tal image of some familiar object, a tose^ icjT "■«&.- k S96 MIND-POWER stance. He practices until he is able to actually see the thing before him "in Ms mind's eye," just as certain eminent painters have acquired the faculty of "visualizing" the faces of persons they meet, so that they can reproduce them on canvas with- out further sittings. Then he experiments upon larger objects, and then upon groups of objects, and so on to more complex pictures. After years of constant experimentation and prac- tice a few of those undertaking the work find them- selves able to picture any of the scenes described in this chapter as "feats"— that is, they are able to clearly picture them in their own minds. And tbis being accomplished, the magician is able by his highly-developed concentrated will to project the mental image into the mind of those around him. It is induced imagination raised to a high degree of manifestation. The people of the west will not devote tbe time and attention to the cultivation of such faculties, while the oriental will willingly give up half of Mk life for the attainment. But, on tbe other hand, the western man will devote his time to the acquire- ment of Will-Power and concentration in the di- rection of becoming a ruler of men and a general of finance. Each to his taste and temperament — and neither would "trade" places nor power with the other. They are both dealing with the same force, however, as little as they realize it. CHAPTER XXI. THE OOEAW OF MIND-POWEE. r Yon will see by reference to previous chapters that the term "Telementation" is used by me in the sense of "mentative influence at a distance," the word being derived from the Greek word Tele, meaning *'afar off"; and the word "mentation," -which I use in the sense of "mental activity." You will also remember that the word "mentation" implies ac- tivity of the Mind-Power, which I hold to be uni- versal in its character. Yon will also remember that the action of telementation depends upon the pro- duction of induced mental states by mentative cur- rents. Mentative induction, you remember, oper- ates along the same lines as magnetic or electrical induction, that is, a mental state may be repro- duced in another mind by mentative induction oper- ating by means of mentative currents. I have explained how mental states may be in- duced by suggestion, as well as by mentative cur- rents, and shall not allude to this phase at this place, but shall consider mentative induction in its phase of manifestation by means of mentative currents. This mention of teebnieal terms may seen some- what "dry" to yon, but you should acquaint your- 298 MIND-POWEK self with the intelligent use and meaning of 1 terms, for thereby you -will be enabled to hold 1 ideas firmly in your mind. Terms are "pegs" which you may hang thoughts and ideas, so thi you may find them when you need them. Othd wise they are scattered around in confusion. In order that you may more fully understand 1 wonderful phenomena of telementation, I think - would better take another look at the fundament principle or Mind-Power itself. By understand the nature of the force employed, you may beti understand its effect and laws of operation. will remember that I have postulated the existeili of a universal Mind-Power, which is imminent i^ and manifested in, all form of life, energy and mia I have also held that all personal manifestatim of Mind-Power, in ourselves and others, are centers of power in the great Ocean of Univerai Mind-Power. You will remember also, that I haj claimed that the brain was not a "creator" of Mim Power, but rather in the nature of a "converter" or "transformer" of the universal Mind-Power into usable forms and phases. "Well so far, we under- stand the matter. Now let ns pass on to the consid- eration of the mentative currents. In the first place, the currents must be set into motion somewhere and somehow. Where and howf Let us seel "We must see that the mentative cur- rents have their origin, or rather, their initial im- pulse, in and from the mind of some individual. OCEAN OF MIND-POWEE I del How? In and from Mb brain, of course. "Why! Be- cause the brain, is the "transformer" or "con- verter ' * of the Mind-Power into usable shapes and phases. What is the nature of the brain's ac- tion? Science, as well as the occult teachings, in- fonn us that in all brain-processes there is a "burn- ing-up" of brain substance and nervous matter, just as there is a corresponding "burning-up" of the elements in an electric battery. The process is very similar in both cases. Both brain and battery "convert" or "trans- form" an energy already existing in an universal form, which energy cannot be created, added to, nor taken away from. And both use up material in the process. And both generate "currents" of force ■which are capable of affecting changes in other sub- stances, etc. Science shows ns that there is a pro- duction or generation of "heat" in the manifestation of Mind-Power in the brain. The temperature of the brain rises when it is employed in active thought- work, or other forms of mental activity, or excite- ment. And even the temperature of a tiny nerve in- creases when it is used. This fact has been fully demonstrated by Science. "WTiat causes the brain to manifest this energy? Mental states! AVhat is a mental state? You know what "mental" means— and "state" means "a con- dition," So a mental state ia "a mental condition" Then upon what do mental states, or "conditions," depend, and why do they vary? Upon the degree* 300 MIND-POWER of vibration of excitemeiit of the mental apparatus I Mental apparatus? Must a thing have a Mental Ap- paratus, hefore it can manifest mental states, orig- inal or induced 1 Yes ! but remember this, everything has ita meutai apparatus, even down to the atom, and the particles that compose atoms; everything "feels" and "responds to feeling," even among the most material forms— Science states this emphatic- ally; and everything that "feels" and "responds," must manifest desire and will, if only in an elemen- tary way, and must have mental apparatus in order to do this; there is mind, and the machinery of mind, in every atom, and all that is evolved there- from. This is not my personal statement alone, but is the last word of Modern Science, as voiced by her most advanced advocates. "Vibration of excitement," I have said. What is a vibration? It is a state of intense, rapid move- ment of a particle. Science informs us that every- thing is in vibration, always; and that the differing nature of things depends upon their respective rate of vibrations. And what is "excitement," as I use the term? It means "aroused activity." So, then, there is to be found a condition of "aroused vibra- tional activity" underlying all mental states? And this aroused vibrational activity communicates mo- tion to the mentative currents, and starts them 1 ward others in whom they induce similar mentad states. That is the story in full. Then if we have a m«ntal state of ' ' aroused ' OCEAN OP MIND-POWER brational activity" of an individual, how is it passed on to other individuals without direct contact? By mentative currents or waves I What are mentative currents or waves, and how do they operate? Now ■we are right up to the question with a full under- standing of what it means. Then let us answer it in the light of modern Science. There is a great misapprehension in the minds of the majority of people about " currents" and *'waves" of light, magnetism, electricity, heat, etc. They are aware that waves of heat and light, for in- stance travel over millions and millions of miles from the sun to the earth, and are then felt here, although originating there millions of miles away. They know this fully, but they seem to think that the heat ana light are substances that actually "travel" in waves over the distance. But this is not the teaching of Science, which, on the contrary, holds that light and heat do not so travel, but that the original heat and light vibrations set up "waves in the ether," The ether is a suppositious fine. form of matter, filling all space, even between the atoms, as well as between the worlds— nobody knows anything "actually" about the ether, but Science has been forced to pos- tulate its existence, in order to account for certain phenomena. Science holds that these "waves in the ether," once set into motion, travel on until tbey come in contact with matter capable of taking up their vi- brations. When this kind of mattet \s ^whA, W 302 MIND-POWER takes up the ethereal vibrations, and reproduces them in the shape of heat and light In other words, the original light and heat of the sun does not "travel" to the earth to be then experienced by the latter, but, on the contrary, the original solar heat and light set up the "waves in the ether," which travel along until the earth is reached, when meet- ing with the proper material they are reproduced or "transformed" into heat and light vibrations sim ilar to those of the original impulse, and we of the earth feel the heat and see the light. Electricity and magnetism are reproduced in the same way. It is just like the sound vibrations setting up electrical vibration in the telephone, which travel along and then are re-transformed into sound vibrations again at the other end of the line. When you think of this, please remember that the reeeiving-end vibrations are "induced." There is something else just as much generally misunderstood. People think that these "waves" actuaUy travel, just as they think that waves in water travel, when we drop a stone in the pond. But they are mistaken in both instances. The force of the motion of the stone produces the elevation of the water, that you call a wave. Then the motion is passed on and another wave is formed. Then another, and another, until you have a series of waves that apparently travel toward the shore. But the waves don't travel. They merely communicate their motion to the particles of the water next to OCEAN OF MIND-POWER 303 them and a eontinuous moving effort is exhibited. The real motion of a wave is "up and down" only. Place a cork in the water and then create waves and you will see that while the wave motion travels out- ward, the cork merely bobs up and down and does not move with the waves. Here is how Science illus- trates the motion : It bids you take a rope and tie one end of it to a post or wall, etc., the loose end be- ing retained in your hand. Now slacken the rope a little and begin to agitate it up and down. You will then see a wave motion generated, a series of waves passing over the rope from your hand to the post or wall. And yet you know that the rope itself has not traveled, but has merely moved up and down. It is not a matter of travel, but of communicated and induced motion. All waves are alike in this respect —light-waves, heat-waves, electrical-waves, mag- netic-waves and mind-waves. All communicate vi- brations, which move on in a wave motion. But these heat and light waves are "waves in the ether," which ether is a material thing. Do I hold that Mind-Power waves are the same? Not exactly. I hold that Mind-Power is higher even than the finest ethereal substance, and that it pervades the latter. And 1 hold that we are all centers in a greal Ocean of Mind-Power. And, therefore, I claim thai the mentative currents and waves are really cur- rents and waves in that Great Ocean of Mind-Power. And the vibrational activity set up in your mind, my mind, or the minds of thousands, pass on their vi- rtii^bi bratioiiB to tlie great ocean of Mind-Power, and produce "waves" or "currents" of energy, which travel on until they reach the mentai apparatus of other individuals, in which they tend to reproduce the original vibrations or mental states— by induc- tion, remember. In other words, I hold that these "waves" and "currents" are like the ocean's waves and currents— not only of the ocean, but also in it. My idea of the mentative currents or waves are that they are not only manifestations of the Uni- versal Mind-Power, but also that they travel in the Ocean of that universal principle. And that great Mentative Ocean is full of currents, and waves, and eddies, and swirls, and whirlpools, and gulf-streams, and other forms of activity. Picture to yourself a great Ocean of Mind-Power. If you are unable to grasp the idea, then do the nest best thing, and think of tbis mental ocean as a great sea of energy. Or if you prefer, think of it as the great Universal Ether filling all space. At any rate, the picture must show this Mind-Power filling all space, even in between the atoms and even in the atoms themselves. Perhaps you had better com- mence by forming the picture of all space as being empty of all foniis and shapes, and containing noth- ing but this pure Mind-Power— an Ocean of Mind- Power must be thought of as an energy or force, capable of setting into operation al! kinds .»f mani- festations when started. Then think of a tiny center of power being formed in this great Mind-Power OCEAN OP MIND-POWEE 305 Ocean — a little whirlpool, so tiny that the strongest microscopes can scarcely distinguish it. Then see countless numbers of similar whirlpools being formed in this Ocean. These little whirlpools we will call centers of power. They combine and shapes begin to appear. Atoms of matter appear, being composed of combination of these tiny centers, which thus become larger and greater centers. Then come combinations of these atoms and the various forms * of matter result, for all sui)stances, you know, are composed of atoms, in various combinations; all the atoms, seemingly being composed of little par- ticles called electrons, which seem to be like tiny units of force, but which are attracted and repelled by each other, and seem to have their "likes" and ''dislikes," thus showing the elements of mind within them. And then these shapes and forms of matter be- come more and more complex, and the centers of power more potent. And the forms of living tilings begin to appear, mounting from the lowly micro- scopic cell on to combinations of cells, in plant life, then animal life, and then human life. And each form, as it mounts higher, displays more and more Mind-Power. Until at last we see Man witli his wonderful mind, as a great center of power. But, remember this always, that all these shapes and forms, and cells, and plants, and animals and men, have as their inner essential substance this same Mind-Power principle, of which the Ocean itself is 306 MIND-POWER composed. They are Centers of Power in this Mil Power Ocean, but are composed of the same i stance as the Ocean itself. You may think of t as vibratory whirlpools of Mind-Power if yoa 1 and you will not be very far out of the way if 3 do. All things are centers of activity and energy, in the Great Universal Ocean of Mind-Power. These centers of power are of varying degrees of activity. We will call the strong ones "positive," and the weak ones "negative." So according to their vary- ing degrees of power and \ibration, each center is positive to some others, and negative to others still. Each has its degree of positivity. Now think of these centers aa human minds, and you will be able to fill out your picture in detail. Then picture each one of these centers manifest- ing vibrational activity, and thus converting and transforming the mentative energy from the Ocean of Mind-Power. And then see them sending out waves, and currents of mentative energy, which in- duce similar vibrations or mental states in other centers. Then see some of the strong, positive centers, setting up great rotating currents, resem- bling whirlpools in the body of the Mind-Power Ocean, which extend further and further out from the center, and affect other centers far away from it. If you will examine your picture more closely, you will see that these rotary currents are continu- ally drawing to the centers the things, and persons, and ideas that they are attracting by reason of their OCEAN OF MIND-POWEE particular rate of vibration, while things of different vibrations seem to be comparatively unaffected by the currents. This and other things you may see in your picture as it grows clearer to you. And, in ad- dition to these currents, you see great waves travel- ing out in certain directions, toward certain objects to which they have been directed. In short, you see all the phenomena of the ocean of water reproduced in this Ocean of Mind-Power. You see the picture of the circulation of Mind-Power. You see the form- ing and growing and evolution of centers of activity and mentative energy. And when you come to look a little closer at your picture, you will see that each one of these centers of energ}' seems to have two poles of activity, one of which acts in the direction of impelling, driving, pushing, forcing, urging, directing, etc., the action being always "outward"; and the other acting in the direction of drawing, pulling, attracting, coax- ing, alluring, charming, leading, etc., the action always being "inward." One seems to be a mas- culine force, the other a feminine force. One seems to act as Will-Power; the other as Desire-Force. These two poles of Mind-Power possessed by each center are called the motive pole, and the emotive pole, respectively. I have described their char- acteristics several times as we have proceeded in these lessons. But, once more, let me call your atten- tion to the meaning of the terms applied to them. "Motive" means, of course, "that which moves; ^Mdl 308 MIND-POWER that wMeli incites to action." E-motive" means "that whieh moves or excites the feelings." Tou will remember that "excitement" means "aroused activity." So then, "emotive" means "that which arouses the feelings into aetivitj-." And the emo- tive side of the mind always has to do with "feel- ings," and the "motive" with willing. And the best results always arise from a combination of both feel- ing and willing— desiring and acting. As in all other things, a combination of the masculine and feminine qualities and characteristcs produces the best results. Each has its strong and weak points — but together they are irresistible along all lines of work, physical, mental and spiritual. And now the broad outlines of our mental pic- ture have been drawn, and the general details filled in. But our picture is more than this. It is a moving picture in vivid action and spirited motion. It will show us the varied phenomena of telementa- tion in a series of moving, acting, realistic, thrill- ing scenes. And yet all will occur on and in the picture itself, without going outside of it for material. The mental picture contains the material for an infinite variety of action and combination^ it is a world within itself. And now, I -will set the machinery into operation and show you your mental picture of this Mind-Power Ocean and its centers of energy in full motion and activity. Kindly give ma your full attention while I describe the moving Bcenes to you I CHAPTER XXn. A QLJMPBB OF THE OCCULT WORLD, the preceding chapter, I have asked you to form a mental picture nf the Ocean of Mind-Power. Let us DOW proceed to examine this picture in de- tail — let us observe the activities and manifesta- tions that present themselves. In considering this Magic Mental Picture I must imagine that you are a highly developed occultist and that consequently you are ahle to "see" on what oc- cultists call the "Second Plane." "Without going into the subject in detail here (for it forms no part- of this present work) I will say that occultists recog- nize Seven Planes of Life, all of which have their own laws and phenomena. The First Plane is our ordinary material plane, tlie phenomena of which may be observed by all having their physical senses. This First Plane is the plane of matter, and all of its phenomena is that of matter. All that can he seen nn that plane is the movement or presence of matter. Even when we say that we see the manifes- tation of some force (on this plane), we really mean that we see that force as it produces a movement or change in matter— we do not see the force at all; all that we see is the matter moved by the force. 310 MIND-POWER The Second Plane is the plane of forces, on -whxi^ operate energy or force in all of its forms. Oeciil ists who have reached the second degree of unfold- ment, are able to sense the phenomena on this Sec- ond Plane— that is, they are able to witness the plie- nomena of the forces on their own plane and in- dependent of the presence of matter. To illustrate this I would say that on the First Plane (the plane of the majority of the race) the phenomena attach- ing to electricity can he sensed only through the agency of the matter in which the electricity oper- ates—you can see material objects moved by elec- tricity, but you cannot see the electricity" itself. The same is true of magnetism— you may see the needle drawn to the magnet, but you cannot see the cur- rent of magnetic vibrations themselves. You can- not see the vibratory light-waves, but you can see the manifestation of light when these waves strike npon a material object. But, on the Second Plane, those who have at- tained the second degree, report that the "vibra- tory-waves" of electricity, magnetism, light, heat, etc., are capable of being sensed by them without the presence of the material vehicle. They report that they are able to see the vibrations themselves — for instance, they can see the waves of electricity or magnetism as they pass through the ether and before they reach the material objects which they aflfect in a way visible to the ordinary eye. They report that even the vibratory-waves of the X-Bay A GLIMPSE OF OCCULT WORLD SH are visible to them, -witliont the agency of the fluo- rescent screen used by scientific men before the X- Bays become apparent to them. You know, of course, that these X-Eays, and in fact also the higher rays of ordinary light, are invisible to the human eye, although capable of being recorded by instruments, photographic plates, etc. And these Second Plane people report that the vibrations of the Mind-Power waves, or currents, are plainly perceptible to them. But remember, they do not see "Mind" itself— they see merely the "waves" of energy emanating from Mind. The remaining five planes, that is the third, fourth, fifth, sixth, and seventh planes, respectively, are subjects that belong to the higher degrees of oc- cultism, and form no part of the subject of this book, I merely mention them so that advanced stu- dents may recognize that I am aware of their ex- istence and importance, and am not misled by any erroneous belief in there being only two planes. These chapters belong to the Second Plane teachings, and do not deal with the Third Plane or those still higher. They deal with the "energy" phase of Mind— that is Mind in its aspect of Mind-Power. Some day I may write of the "Higher Planes"— but not now. So, to return to our Mind-Power Picture, I will assume that you are able to sense the Second Plane phenomena, and thus actually see the passage and existence of the mentative waves and currents. By 312 MIND-POWER giving you the teachings in this ■way, I mil be able to picture the phenomena much clearer than if I held to the First Plane method. I want to show yoa the forces, themselves, as well as their effect upon material forms. The first thing that you will see in our Mind- Power Picture, is the presence of great clouds of vapory substance, somewhat resembling the fleecy clouds of a summer day, although some of thoj clouds are much heavier and darker looking. And^ J you will note the presence of color in these clondaj some of them being a dull grey, and others beinj^ tinted like the clouds at sunset or sunrise. It is i beautiful sight, this ever changing mass of colored clouds of all kinds, shapes, forms, and degrees of density. Let us consider just what these varioas colors mean— for each has its own meaning, the! color being dependent upon the degree of vibration and the degree of vibration depending upon the feel- ing which started the waves into motion. I had not intended to mention this in these chapters, but I now see that I cannot omit it without causing a loss tafl my students. "When one gets talking about SeeJ ond Plane phenomena, it is hard to refrain from teU ing the story through to the finish. Let me give you the "Emotional Colors," thiW you may recognize them as you see them in the pioi ture. Here they are: Blue is the vibrational ( pertaining to spiritual feeling, and represents the various religious feelings, and emotions, the shade A GLIMPSE OF OCCULT WORLD 313 growing lighter as the religious concept rises to- ward true spirituahty. Light blue repreaects a high, unselfish, spiritual feeling; a hcaiitiful violet repre- senting the highest religious feeling; and a peculiar shade which may be called "ultra- violet" represent- ing a spiritual unfoidment of a very high order. yelloiv is the vibrational color pertaining to the feelings and emotions associated with intellectual power, the shade growing clearer as the intellect mounts to higher conceptions. A dull, dark yellow is the color of the ordinary intellectual state, while the brilliant intellect shows itself in a beautiful golden hue. There is a shade still higher than this, although most rare among the race. I allude to that shade of ti'ue primary yellow, which belongs to those who have attained a high degree of true occult unfoidment— the spiritually illumined. The highest occult teachings inform us that the vibrational shade belonging to "Spirit" or the "Essence of Being," is a pure white light, of an unusual briLlianoy. Orange, which is a combination of yellow and red, pertains to those possessing tlie pride of intellectuality, or intellectual ambition, of a marked - degree. Brown is the vibrational color of avarice and greed. Red is the vibrational color of passion, in all of its phases. Dull, deep red betokens the animal passions, and sensuality. A dark bright red betokens anger and hate— when mingled with black it is anger or hate arising from malice, or envy; when mingled with green it relates to anger from jeal- 314 MIND-POWEE ousy or envy; when shown without the mingling color it denotes "fight" for some supposed right, or ordi- nary cause, "When this color is seen in the shade of Crimson, it betokens a higher form of love, the shade becoming lighter and clearer as the degree of the , feeling advances in the scale of character. A grosi selfish love shows as a dull crimson, while a highe] forai of love displays a clearer shade, terminating a shade approaching a soft rose-color when the char- J acter of the attachment is on a high plane. Green is 9 peculiar vibrational color, and betokens a number oifi odd phases of feeling and emotion. A peculiar dul| dirty green betokens jealousy or envy. A greyisli green indicates deceit, which shade becomes cleareM and brighter as the quality of the "deceit" rises ia the scale. A bright clear shade of green is seen when there is a manifestation of "tact"; "diplomacy"; "politeness"; "adaptability," etc., etc.. Grey ia a. negative vibrational color, which in its dark shades indicates gloom, depression, or melancholy, etc. ; and in a bright clear shade indicates selfishness; and in a certain pallid shade indicates fear or terror. Black is the vibrational color of hate, malice, revenge, and similar states of feeling. These vibrational emotional colors, of course, com- bine, and blend into each other in countless combina- tions, but the above will give you a key to the same. The vibrational colors of the two mental pole; can scarcely be called colors at all, for their colon and shades are derived from the character of tlv A GLIMPSE OF OCCULT WOKLD 315 feeling inspiring them, which gives to them the de- gree of vibration and color indicating the motive or emotive impulse. But there may be seen a differ- ence even in these two; that is, the emotive pole, in its currents of Desire-Force, shows a scintillating effect, as if there were a multitude of minute sparks, or stars in the current ; and the motive pole, in its currents of Will-Power shows an effect something like a multitude of tiny and minute lightning-flashes, playing in the stream or current. In addition to the shades mentioned above, there is another that should be mentioned while we are considering the subject. I allude to what might be called the "vitality vibrations," which radiate from the living body, and which are caused by the ' ' vital force" which permeates the body during life, and makes possible the running of the physical ma- chinery—some prefer to call it nerve-force. These vibrations show no special color, although when near, or in the body, they naanifest a faint reddish tint. But when seen away from the body they show a lack of color, like clear water, and resemble the heated air arising from a stove, lamp, or heated ground— that is to say, they look like a colorless, vibrating body of air. The degree and strength of these vibrations depend upon the state of physical health of the person manifesting them. Now, as we gaze upon our Mind-Power Picture, and see moving thereon the shapes and forms of human beings, we may see that each being is sur- nlfi MIND-POWER rounded with an "aura" or egg-shaped "atmos- phere" of these Emotional Vibrations— radiations emanated from his mental states. This aura extends out from the body for a distance of about one yard, and gradually fades away ae the distance from the body is increased. And the aura of each person i seen to be colored according to the vibrations ' longing to his prevailing mental states. Each mental state shows itself in its appropriate shade, in the proper combinations, blendings, etc.. and therefore, the trained occultist is able to read a person's character like an open book, from thesw emotional colors. And even though one may not be manifesting any special mental state at the mo- ment, his aura will stitl be colored because of his prevailing mental state — his "character," as it were. And of course, these \'ibrations composing the aura of a person will affect those coming in contact with, or near him, or her. That is the reason why we feel the "personal atmosphere" of people when we come near them. Even beyond the visible aura, the vibrations continue in a fainter degree. And so, on our picture we can tell just what kind of peo- ple are passing before us — their mental states are revealed by the Emotional Colors. And now we shall see how people affect others. We see one man approach another. The degree of dynamic positivity of the tirst man is superior to that of the second, and we see, as we watch, that the coloring of his aura gradually interpenetrates that A GLIMPSE OF OCCULT WOELD 317 of the weaker man, and the coloring of the latter's aura gradually grows to more closely resemble that of the first man. "We may watch the process, and thus become aware that the following things are hap- pening, viz., the mental states of the first man are inducing similar feelings and emotions in the sec- ond man, by means of the currents of mentative en- ergy that are flowing toward him. The first man is making no effort to impress the second man, but be- ing the more positive his "magnetism" affects that of the other man and induces similar states. The second man ' ' tabes on the states ' ' of the first man, as we may see by the change in coloring. This is the way that people unconsciously affect other people, and the latter are unconsciously affected. Simply a case of unconscious mentative induction, you see. The second man moves on, feeling more depressed, or elated, as the case may be, by reason of his con- tact with the first man, and also carrying away with him a little of the other man's general feelings, and "character." This second man, a little later on, meets another man, and we may see how this new man affects the "second man" by the suggestion of his manner and words. He does not seem to be sending out such strong currents as the man first spoken of, but his outward symbols of voice, words, manner, etc., are well acted out, and we soon see our "second man" having mental states induced in him by suggestion. You have now seen two stages or phases of mentative induction. 318 MIND-POWER Our positive man has gone on hia way, and sow he spies another man whom he wishes to influemfl in certain matters. Watch him now, and you will" see something interesting. The positive man's aura seems to be disturbed, and great tongues of color seem to leap from it, and lap around the other man, the whole process resembling the action of tongues of flame or fire. These tongues of Miad-Powei wrap themselves all around the other man and some seem to scintillate as they manifest the action of fairly "pulling" him toward the positive man, while others seem to be beating upon him like a rain of tiny flashes of lightning — the one is the play of Desire-Force, and the other the action of Will- Power. This gives us a good illustration of personal influence in an interview, or a phase of personal mag- netism. As the action grows more spirited, you may see the Will-Power of the positive man darting out in straight, sharp flashes, like great sparks from an electric battery, and you may see the process byJ which he beats down, and neutralizes the WiU-Pow of the weaker man, until he seems to exhaust it i take it captive, and the man acquiesces in the staU ments and demands of the stronger willed mai This process is hastened by the fact that the Desin Force of the weaker man has become so impressed by the stronger will that it becomes dazed, or faB<11 cinated; the effect being strongly increased by Hm Desire-Force of the stronger man by setting up men- A GLIMPSE OP THE OCCTJiyT WORLD 319 tative induetion a corresponding vibration in the de- sire-pole of the weaker man. And a fourth element in the attack is that the strong Desire-Force of the strong man also tends to "pull" the will of the weaker one toward it and away from its natural mate, its own desire-pole. This is a ease of a com- bined, determined attack. It is true that the posi- tive man may not know a single fact regarding Mind-Power, but he has learned the process of af- fecting and influencing others, and bending them to his will and desire, although he is ignorant of the scientific explanation of the process. Every posi- tive dynamic individual understands this, instinc- tively, and his knowledge increases as practice gives him more confidence in himself. These people pass from the scene, and we may see in their place men and women "charming," "alluring," and "drawing" others by reason of their Desire-Force operating along the lines of so- called "love," but which is but little more than sel- fish animal passion, in some eases grosser than that manifested by the animals, because it is abnormal in its manifestations, and inordinate in its demands. "We see much of this in our picture but we notice here and there that some people seem able to repel these attractions easily, and are not affected by the currents of desire. Their general mental state is so different that great resistance is in- terposed, and the attacking current is deflected and defeated, even without the use of a great effort of 320 MIND-POWER tlie will. You see man^ instances of this in all forms of mentative influence. ' ' Like attracts like * ' in this mentative work, and those who are attracted are generally those whose mental states correspond to a great extent with those of the person affecting them. There are, of course, exceptions to this rule, owing to ignorance and lack of experience, coupled with confidence and trust— bat the rule is true in general. Passing before you in the picture, you see preach- ers influencing their congregations. You see the great currents of mentative energy rolling over the hall, or church. The congregations being in a re- ceptive and passive attitude, with wills relaxed, they actually draw out the force of the preacher. You may judge just what grade of religious feeling the preacher is pouring out, by examining the shade of his "blue emotiona! color." You will be apt to see a better shade among the poorer churches and de- nominations, and a very repulsive dark purplish blue among the "fashionable" churches, as a rule. You will notice also the waves and currents arising from the congregation, which establishes the *'ai- mosphere" of the church, and which will be ra- mediately felt by a stranger entering its doors. You will see similar things at the theaters, and political meetings, and all gatherings of people, the color al- ways giving you the key to the character of the meet- ing, and the people attending it. Next you see the hypnotist and his "subject" in A GLIMPSE OF OCCULT WORLD 321 a public hall. You will notice that the hypnotist's Emotional Color is not attractive. You will notice the neutral grey color of the aura of the subject, who seems to have squeezed every bit of his own mental states out of him— he Is a "professional subject," and is a slave of the "professor." You will see the hypnotist's magnetism pouring into the subject, and filling his mind completely. You will see how the ■will of the hypnotist supplants the will of the sub- ject, and dominates him absolutely. You will notice that both the desire-pole and the will-pole of the sub- ject seem to show no energy of their own, but are moved entirely by the personality and mind of the operator. This is an extreme case, of course, but it better illustrates the phenomenon. And, by its effect upon the audience, you may determine just how far advanced mentally they are, the color giving you the cue. Of course, Mental Suggestion is playing its part in all of these cases, but we cannot see that because it is not a current or wave, but is merely the opera- tion of outward symbols in the direction of inducing mental states in others— we may see the induced mental states, but can learn the nature of the sug- gestion only by watching and listening at what is said and done. I am mentioning only a few of the many cases that you are witnessing in the picture, but these few cases will illustrate the different phases of the principle and operation of the force. But all of these eases have given you merely an il- MIND^POWER lustration of teiementation at "short range" — now let us proceed to examine the instances of the oper- ation of the same force at "long range," in all of its many and wonderful phases. Before doing so, however, let us take a quick look at the "mental atmospheres" of the towns, cities, and villages, as well as of the buildings, localities, etc., passing before ns on the picture. This is most interesting and instructive. In the first place, you will notice the great clouds of mentative energy per- meating every place, and every corner, each show- ing its own shade of vibrational color, indicating the vibrations arising from the prevalence of certain mental states. I have spoken of the causes of this in a previous chapter, and shall not repeat the de- tails here. You will remember that I have explained to you how the various currents of mentative en- ergy, of all kinds and degrees, come in contact with each other, and often blend, combine, or else act in the direction of neutralizing each other's force. Cur- rents of a similar degree of vibration harmonize, and form combinations, or blendings. Opposing vi- brations in currents tend to antagonize each other, and neutralize each other's force. In this way are the "mental atmospberes"of places formed. You may see theju. in the picture. But, you may ask, why do these clouds persist after the person has sent them forth? The an- swer is that force once set into motion persists for ;i greater or lesser time, depending upon the in- A GLIMPSE OF OCOULT WORLD 323 tensity of the original impulse. Just as the light of a star, or rather, its light-waves, exist and move on centuries after the star has ceased to be; just as the heat vibrations continue in a room, when the pro- ducing cause has been removed; just as odors re- main when the cause moves away; so do the men- tative vibrations, and their corresponding thought- forms, continue long after the original feeling baa passed away— yes, for years afterwards, in some cases. In this way places, houses, stores, etc., maintain "atmospheres" imparted by the vibrations of peo- ple long since moved away, or passed away. Stores are " unlucky" because of the negative mental states of some people who have occupied them. Houses are "haunted" by reason of the vibrations arising from intense desire or feelings, or horror and fear of some one participating in a crime, either as crim- inal or victim. The "atmospheres" of prisons are quite noticeable even to the ordinary visitor, who feels the vibrations with which the place is satu- rated. The atmosphere of places of low pleasures is equally noticeable. I know of a place of this kind in which the vibrations continued for years after the original tenants had departed and the building had been used for business purposes. Hospitals have a very depressing inflnence upon the majority of people. Of course these negative effects can be removed by mentally "treating" the place or room, and sending forth streams of mentative energy of a positire atimulating character. 324 MIND-POWER On the other hand, the presence of an active, < ergetic, successful man, or set of men, in a plai will permeate the place with positive vibrations t will stimulate all who abide there. I have in mindQ certain large office building in a large city, wh: is filled with these vibrations, originally arising frd a few leading men who built and occupied it, t then attracted to themselves others of th-e same 'k the result being that the combined influence : renders the place an "inspiration" for those 1 ing offices in it. I have heard people say that afl moving in that building their business doubled i self, and their energy increased in the same propd tion. There is a law underlying these things, if people understood it they would take advantage^a its positive sides, and avoid its negative phases. J" think that I have given you a good strong hintj this direction. These great clouds of vapory manifested Mii Power, often constitute what are called "Thooj Forms," which I shall proceed to describe to y^ Follow my explanations of these things as they i pear on the picture, please. These thoaght-fon are really "feeling-forms" remember, althougll^ use the more familiar term. These thongbt-fon although all generated or "credited" in the i manner differ very materially in their cbaraci istics, and details. Let us consider some of i details and characteristics, and "appearaj By "appearances," I mean of course, their appei A GLIMPSE OF OCCULT WORLD 325 ance to those who can sense on the Second Plane. IBnt whether one can so sense, or not, the effect of "these thought-forms manifest upon them just the same. It is not necessary to "see" a thing in order -to "feel" its influence. But, you understand this, of course, from what has been said already. The most common form is that of a series of undulating "waves, or ripples of a vapory cloud-like substance, passing out from the mind of the person es- ^periencing the mental state originating them, the -waves manifesting a ring-like form, moving out in «very direction from the common centre, just as do "the rings caused by a stone having been dropped into a pond. The distance traveled, and the rate of speed manifested, depends upon the intensity of the emotional impulse. The speed diminishes ac- cording to the distance traveled, but long after tlie actual motion seems to have ceased, there exists an almost imperceptible motion that causes the outer wave to drift on, in a lazy, listless manner. Another variety of thought-forms manifest like a volume of smoke being blown from the lips of a cigar smoker. Such forms pour out in long streams, then spread out and broaden, although maintaining the direction originally imparted to them. This form arises when the mental state arises directly in con- nection with some other person or thing, and when the attention of the mentator is centered, consciously or unconsciously, upon that person or thing. In this ease, the motion of the thought-form is In the diTfea- r 326 MIND-POWER tion of the person or thing being directly considew by the mentator. Akin to this form, is a series i forms resembling a puifing forth of amoke fromy^ huge smokestack , great ' ' puffs ' ' of mentatra thought-forms being sent out in a certain directitM as the jerky repeated mentative impulses are orig^ ated and manifested in the mind of tlie mentator, \ Other kinds of thought-forms pour forth stead but lazily, in the direction of the object thought ( Others, still, are ejected in all directions from : mentator, like the steam escaping from the lid of J tea-kettle which is being lifted by the force of 1 steam within. Still another form appears like -j "streak" of light flashing from a mirror held in 1 sun. Certain particular forms of Will-Power maj ifest as vivid lightning flashes. Other forms tra'^ and seem to enfold the object thought of, and whii being impelled by the strong desire of the mentatt act as if they were trying to "draw" back to ] the objects desired. In fact, that is exactly ■ nature of the action of this class of thought-forms^ the effect produced depending, of course, upon the positiveness of the mentator, and the strength of the desire. The effect of course also is materially influenced by the degree of positiveness of the per- son affected, and other attractions which prevent the yielding to the "pull" of Desire-Force. In the ease of a strong desire on the part of the mentator, provided that the "ruling passion" is being manifested day after day, there appears a A GLIMPSE OF OCCULT WOELD 327 oombination of thought-forms whieh resembles a huge octopus of dense structure, with enormous vapory tentacles or arms reaching out in all direct- ions seeking the tiling desired, and endeavoring to draw it back to its centre. In the case of a high aspiration, backed by a strong and active will, this combination wilt appear tinted with a color and shade of vibrational color corresponding with the character of the mental state, while in the case of a low character of desire the darker colors will like- wise manifest themselves. Still another kind of thought-form acts as if it were trying to push back the object in some par- ticular direction, while others seem to hold back the object. In both of these cases, the action and direction of the thought-form depends upon the nature and character of the desire or will of the roentator at the time of the conception of the men- tative current. A most peculiar kind of thought- form appears when the mentator is desirous of ob- taining information regarding some certain subject, and is earnestly sending his Desire-Force in all directions in order to draw it to him, the mentator generally being unconscious or at least in ignorance of the nature of the actual process. In this case the thought-form maintains a thin connection with the mind of the mentator, and darting here and there it attracts to itself the thought-forms emanating from the minds of others, which may happen to contain the desired vibration.s. 11 even Teadafe^ wjlN. L 328 MIND-POWER to the presence of other mentators, and absorbs mentative vibrations emanating from them, and erally ' ' steals their ideas, ' ' if they have properly guarded the same by their will. In this connection, I may call to your attentii the well known fact that persons thinking along same lines, although in different parts of the wo) are often brought in close rapport with each oi in this way, as many people know by their own perience. In this case, the thought-forms seem act as a sort of "Mentative Wire" conveying vibrations from one mind to another. Very mm akin to this last mentioned kind of thought-foi is another which occurs in instances of direct t( mental communication between persons. In tl case the thought-form proceeds in a long straigl line, from the one mind to the other, and then acts as a "direct wire" conveying the mentative cur- rents, or vibrations, from one to the other. There is another variety of thought-form that spreads out in gradually widening sweeps, the thought-form having a rotary motion. The sweeps are in a constantly widening circle, and reach out further and further each day, according to the im- pulse imparted to them by the mentator. But the most peculiar feature of this thought-form is a strange movement towards its own centre, by which it "sucks in" all that it attracts to its vortex. This phase is manifested by men of strong positivity whose enterprise and schemes ate spread ovef la.T^ areas, and who set themselves u^g as cenVtes ot Jl r A GLIMPSE OF OCCULT WOKLD 329 mentative "whirlpools," and draw to themselvea all "that come within the sweep of their Influence. They make things "come their way," in fact. I have described but a few of the manifold ap- jjearances and varieties of the thought-forms that ^ou see before you in the picture. But we shall ■consider a few more in detail as we proceed with "the subject. In thinking of these thought-forms always picture them as having shape and form, like any material substance, for by so doing you will "fcetter realize the nature of their workings. Some "thought-forms indeed are not only "things," but "become so infused by the intense desire and will of "the mentator that they become almost like "living forces." Such thought-forms carry the character- istics of the mentator to such an extent — are infused "\ri.th his "nature" to such a degree— that when they .are felt they seem almost like the actual presence of "the mentator himself, that is as if he were present ■wrging his claims or statements in person. Such cases are of course rare, so far as conscious jjroduction is concerned. They may be good or bad. _A- strong desire on the part of a dying person has often caused an actual "appearance" by a loved «ne or friend, although the soul had not left the l>ody. And in cases of dire distress or need people [ often so "draw" upon those who care for them that the latter will send to them a powerful thought-form of help, advice and assistance. Trained occultists can do this voluntarily, and consciously, but very few others have reached this stage. CHAPTER XXm. SELF PKOTBCTION. And now ]et us return to the consideration of tbe various forms of the practical operation of tele- mentation. You will of course realize that even Lu the case of mentative influence in personal inter- views there is a passage of mentative currents and a manifestation of telementation. The distance be- tween the two minds is slight, but the principle in operation is precisely the same as when the distance is hundreds of miles— and the process is identical And you will remember that when I speak of De- sire Force, and Will-Power, I am speaking of the force of the respective Two Poles of Mind-Power— both of these forms being but phases of the same en- ergy or force. So do not imagine that there are three distinct forces- there is but one force, and that is Mind-Power, of which Will-Power and De- sire-Force, respectively, are but manifestations, the difference depending upon the two respective poles of force, the motive and emotive, respectively. I trust that you will remember this. I will divide the manifestations of telementation into two general classes, viz. (1) Direct telemen- tation, that is, that use of tbe Force with the direct SELF PROTECTION 331 purpose of influencing a certain person or persons; (2) Indirect telementation, that is the use of the Force with only a general purpose of effecting the desired result, without special direction toward any particular person or persons. We will now consider these two classes of telementation, in their different phases. First in considering the subject of direct tele- mentation, we see the cases in which personal in- fluence is exerted in personal interviews, and under circumstances in which the montator and the other person or persons are in close contact— that is, with- in each other's sight. Under this sub-class falls the phenomenon of fascination, personal magnetism, personal influence, persuasion, charming, inducing, etc., etc., in all of their many and varied phases. We have seen these several manifestations as we have proceeded in these ehaptfers, and we need not stop to further consider them at length in this place. You understand that the eifect is caused by the out- pouring of the Mind-Power, in the forms of Will- Power and Desire-Force, to the end that similiar mental states are induced in the minds of others and the desire or will of the mentator is satisfied, to a greater or lesser degree, or completeness ac- cording to the circumstances of the case. The second sub-class includes those instances of telementation at a "long range," which produces the phenomena of mental inQuencing, will project- ion, and other forms of influencing, under many MIND-POWER names and disguises, inelading, of course, the ( ployment of the force for the benefit and advi tage of the person "treated" or influenced, as i as the repulsive and deplorable uses alluded tol having been practiced by alt peoples in all times, 3 the purpose of injury to others and selfish profit e advantage to the users. This includes what is known as White Magic, l use of the force in an unselfish and justifiable i and with worthy ends in view ; and Black Magic,! the use of the same force for unworthy ends, and selfish and nnjustifiable ways. But, as I have I in the early part of these lessons, this force is 1 any other great natural force, and is capable I being nsed for good or for evil, according to i moral state of the user. It is true that the ] Magician is always entangled in hia own sooner or later, and falls a victim to the forcei has aroused— but that does not alter the statt that I have made. In this form of tclementation, the menti usually concentrates upon the person or thing t be wishes to affect, and then consciously, and by | use of his will, he sends to that person or tbi current or currents of Desire-Force or WUl-Poi or both. It is known to occnitists that the degrw effect so produced depends largely upon the de^ of concentration employed by the mentator. degree of concentration depends upon the will, I is manifested in the form of attention. Tbe i SELF PROTECTION 333 plan is to use the concentrated ■will to form a clear mental image of the person or thing to be affected, and then to proceed as if one were in the actual pres- ence of the person. The clearer the image, the greater the degree of concentrated will employed, and consequeotly the greater the degree of the pro- jecting power of the current. Underlying all the phenomena of ' ' adverse treatments, ' ' witchcraft, etc.,etc., is the same form of telementation. But, here, I wish to say an important word, and that is that the generally claimed effect of these forms of adverse influence is greatly exaggerated, and all real occultists know that the principal reason of the unquestioned effect of this power Hes in the mental state of belief, faith, and fear of the persons affected. That is, if one "believes" or ' ' fears ' ' that another has the power of ad- versely influencing or affecting him, then the effect will depend largely upon that degree of faith or fear. The persons who are affected by "adverse treat- ments" or " witchcraft" or similiar forms of ad- verse influence, invariably "believe" and "fear" that these influences are effective against them. By their mental states they render themselves neg- ative, and receptive to the influences directed against them. This is an occult truth, and one that should be made widely known. It is the "antidote" to the "bane" of "adverse treatments" of which we bear so much in modern times, as well as in an- cient history, under various names. If people p«p 334 MIND-POWEE ^ would only assert their individual power as centers of power they would surround themselves with such a positiv^e protective aura tliat the waves of adverse vibrations would beat against them without ever reaching within their mental structure. We hear of many cases of people being "treated" in this way, in these latter-day of pseudo-occultism. We hear of "treaters" making "denials" regarding people, and thus sending them adverse telemen- tatioh. These people will assert, and work them- selves up, into a corresponding feeling of "I deny that So-and-So is well; or prosperous, etc., etc.," some even going so far as to "deny" that the other person "is." You may imagine the effect of cur- rents of this feeling reaching a mind rendered neg- ative by "belief" and "fear" that the other person can so affect them. The suggestion of the "fear," or "belief" (and that is just what it is, "sugges- tion") renders the mind of such a person a fit recep- tive agent for the adverse "treatment," I tell you, if you will but assert your Individuality, and assume the fearless attitude, you will be able to laugh in the faces of these "adverse practitioners" of Black Magic, for that is just what it is, no matter how much they may try to disguise it by pious names. These modern "adverse treatments" are nothing less than forms of the old witchcraft which so wor- ried our great-grandfathers; nothing more thau the Voodoo practices, or "conjure business" that so affrights the poor negro to-day. The principlea SELF PROTECTION 335 are the eame— the practice is the Bame— and the practitioners are the same at heart —black-hearted Black Magicians, all of them, and subject to the Bame inevitable fate which overtakes all such people, no matter how high their pretenses. The physical and material agencies used by the Voodoo men, and the "witches" of old,— the wax images, and pith- balls, and all the rest of the tom-foolery, were nothing but the agencies upon which the will of the practitioner could concentrate— an aid to concen- trated will. Of course, besides, they served to ter- rify their victims by suggestion, I do not deny that material objects "take up" and absorb the "mag- netism" of the people, good and bad— for that is a well established occult truth, and the efficacy of "charms," sacred relics, etc., etc., depends upon this fact, together with the aid of suggestion. But / do say that all the charms in the world — all the tvitch- craft and Voodoo material agencies — can produce no other effect than is allowed them by the minds of the persons sought to be affected. Fear and belief de- termines the degree of receptivity to such influences. The Kahuna or "prayer-man" of Hawaii prays people to death, unless they buy him oft— but it is the fear and belief on the part of the people that render his work effective. If they would say "scat" to him, mentally, by asserting their individuality as mentative centers, they would be absolutely im- mune. I need not recount the many instances of this kind of telementation, for adverse purposes, for the ?36 MIND-POWER pages of history are full of them, although the 1 torians sneer at the whole subject, deeming it^ myth, and laughing over the credulity of our f« fathers, notwithstanding the fact that "witchw and "conjurers" went to the scaffold and stake, i fessing their guilt. It is all very well to attribute"J all to the "imagination" of the persons affected, why do they not tell us a little about this stra "imagination" that produced such real effects UJB people. The cause may have been "imaginary hut the effects were certainly very "real." I will relate but one instance, which will serve! a type of these forms of telementation. It is citedlfl an old German physician. He relates that he wa^ consulted by a farmer who complained of being dis- turbed at night by strange noises which sounded like some one striking iron. The noises oceurretl be- tween the hours of ten and twelve every night. The physician asked him if he had any enemy he sus- pected of thus influencing and annoying him. He replied that there was no one but an old village blacksmith, an old enemy whose power he feared, and who lived several miles from the farmer. The physician bade him return the next day, and in the meantime visited the blacksmith, and asked him what he did between the hours of ten and twelve at night, accompanying the question with a glance ot a strong will and power. The blacksmith, now some- what frightened, replied. "/ hmntner a bar of iron every night at that time, and all the ivhile I tMnk SELF PROTECTION 337 ntly of a bad enemy of mvne, who once cheated ^out of some money; and I will at the same time that the noise shall disturb his rest." The physi- cian ordered him to desist, and at the same time made the farmer pay over tie money due the black- smith, and there was no more trouble. If yon wish further instances of this sort, turn over the pages of any old book which treats upon the ' ' Witchcraft De- lusion," and note the similarity. But one instance is enough to illustrate the matter— they are all "cut out of the same cloth." You will note the two neces- sary elements present in every case viz., (1) the use of the force by one person ; and (2) the belief or fear, or both, on tbe part of the second person. Now you have the whole story. And, also remember, this that I have told you— the same Force that is nsed in such eases for evil purposes, may also be used, and is used for the most beneficial and worthy purposes. The "treatments" for good things practiced by the "practitioners" of the various schools of Mental Science, and other New Thought people are along tbe lines of direct tele- mentation. People have been encouraged, helped, healed, reformed, and otherwise aided and benefited by telementation. Do not lose the recollection of the good in considering the bad. The good belongs to the phase of White Magic, and its use can result only in good to the practitioner of it ; whereas the Black Magician must reap the whirlwind of the wind that he has sown. These things "come home to roost," 338 MIND-POWEK always, according to tlieir kind— and they Iri their friends home with them. In addition to the selfish and evil use above men-'" tioned, there is another selfish use of direct telemen- tation that is quite common of these late years. 1 allude to the use of mentative influence, by telemen- tation for the purpose of influencing people to fall in with the schemes and plans and enterprises of the mentator. The principle involved is the same as in all these "treatment," good and bad. And the prac- tice is the same. The mentator forms the mental image of the other person, and then floods him with currents of Desire-Force, or Will-Power, or both, at the same time earnestly willing and desiring that he will do as the mentator wishes him to do. The mentator usually uses his will to make the other do this in the mental picture— in imagination — thus forming a mental matrix, to which he then tries to make the other conform. This is a form of "Visu- alization," of which I shall speak presently. Of course, this practice like any other of the kind, may be defeated by one asserting bis individuality andJ will. Of course, you will not feel disposed to put into op eration many of the methods herein described, yetj from your very acquaintance with what has ' mentioned in these pages, you will be enabled to see the operation of the principles in the everyday life around you. You will see them in operation on every side, now that you are familiar with their SELE' PROTECTION laws of operation. And you will find yourself in- Btinctively guarding against its influence, just as you would guard against a threatened physical IjIow. And you will be surprised, and perhaps pained some- times, at seeing people trying to influence you in this way, whom you would not have suspected of do- ing 80. On the whole, you will be a much wiser and stronger man or woman by reason of the information herein given you. And you will have the advantage of knowing how to resist, defeat and dispel the ad- verse influences that may be used to influence you. Kemember the assertion of the positive will, and the use of the positive denial! The person wishing to influence another at a dis- tance, just as he would in the ease of a personal in- terview, forms a mental image of the person whom he wishes to influence, and then proceeds just as if the person was actually before him, I know of at least one teacher who advises his students to "treat" prospective customers, and others with whom tbey expect to have dealings, or relations, as follows: "Imagine your prospective customer, or other person, as seated in a chair before which you are standing. Make the imagined picture as strong as possible, for upon this depends your success. Then proceed to 'treat' the person just as you would if he were actually present. Concentrate your will npon him, and tell him just what you expect to tell him when you meet him. Use all of the arguments 340 MIND-POWER that you can think of, and at the same time hold the thought that be 7nust do as you say. Try to iuiagiixB hira as complying with your wishes, in every respect, for this imagining will tend to 'come true' when you really meet the person. This rule may be used, not only in the ease of prospective customers, but also in the cases of persons whom you wish to influence in any way whatsoever." Now, all this is very plain to the student of this book, for the principles employed are familiar to its readers. The result of a practice like the above would undoubtedly tend to clear a "mentative path" in the other person's mind, and make easier the ef- fect of a subsequent interview. For the other per- son would be thus accustomed to the idea, thought or feeling, and the work of clearing away the mental underbrush would be done in advance. But, fortu- nately for us all, we have the antidote for this bane, if we have acquainted ourselves with the underlying principles of the subject. So important do I regard the subject of self-protection in connection with di- rect telementation, that I have thought it well to add lo this chapter the following general rules which I trust you will read carefully, and with which you should fully acquaint yourself. The bane is well- known — the antidote is known to but few. For this reason I attach much importance to the study of the latter at this place. In connection with the following rules and advice vou should also acquaint yourself with what I have SELF PBOTECTION said elsewhere regarding protection against sugges- tive impressions; and also with my advice regard- ing the cultivation of a positive mentality ; and with the chapters which take up the subject of establish- ing a mentative center, etc. Here are the rules: — I. In the first place, steady your niinj, aud calm your feeling. Then pause for a moment, and say the words "/ Am," calmly and forcibly, at the same time forming a mental picture of yourself as a center of Force and Power in the Great Ocean of Mind- Power. See yourself as standing alone and full of power. Then mentally form a picture of your aura, extending about a yard on all sides of you, in an egg- shaped form. See that this aura is charged with your Will-Power, which is flowing outward, repelling any adverse mental suggestions that are being sent to you, and causing them to fly back to the source from whence they came. A little practice will en- able you to perfect this picture, which will greatly aid you in creating a strong positive aura of will, which will prove to be a dynamic armor and shield. The affirmation, "/ Am" is the strongest known to occult Science, for it is a positive statement of ac- tual being. You may use the following affirmation also, if you please— it has helped many: "I assert my individuality as a center of force, power and be- ing. Nothing can adversely affect me. My mind ia mine own, and I refuse admittance to unwelcome suggestions or influences. My desires are my own, and refuse to admit undesirable vibrations by indue- r 342 MIND-POWER tion or otherwise. My will is my own, and I ctarga it with power to beat off and repel all undesirable influences. I am surrounded by an aura of positive will, which protects me absolutely." The following denial has proved of the greatest value to many: "I den^, to all or any, the power to influence me against my best interests— I am my own master." These words may seem simple, but if you will use them you will be surprised at their efScacy. You realize, of course, that it is the men- tal state aroused by tbe words, that "does the work," rather than any special virtue in the words themselves. II. Guard yourself from acting upon "impulses. When you feel a sudden or tmaceountable "impnlse' to do this thing, or that thing, stop and assert yonr positive individuality, and then drive out all out- side influences, by repeating the affirmations, etc., given above, and by creating the proi>er mental pic- ture. Then, when you have recovered your balance, consider the impulse, and decide whether it is to your best interests, or otherwise. You will be able to see this clearly, by roason of your "mental houae- cleaning" a moment before. Then, if the impulse seems to be against your best interests, drive it from yon, saying: *'I drive you away from me— you do not belong to me— return to those who sent you," or other words to that effect. This may be rendered more forceful if you will but create a mental piel of the discarded idea flying away from you in 2s g SELF PROTECTION shape of a tiny thought-wave. These mental pic- ■ tares aid one very materially in such matters, both ' in the sending forth of an idea, as well as in the dis- carding of one. III. Cultivate the picture and idea of a positive aura, and always think of yourself as being encased ' in such a one. See yourself as a strong positive "I" — a center of power— encased in an impregnable sheath of auric force. You will thus be able to build up yourself into a mighty center of defence. Tou will be surprised at the confused manner of people who try to influence you, when they come in contact with this aura, and find their suggestions and men- tative currents being cast back upon themselves. Such people find themselves "all broken up" when they meet a condition like this, which they do not | understand, for very few of them are practical oc- cultists. The mental picture of yourself as a center ' of power, surrounded with a positive aura, will, if persisted in, render you extremely positive, so that your influence is sure to fce felt by the world with , which you come in contact. You will often be amused by occurrences follow- I ing after the rejection of these "stray impulses," etc. You will find if you have had an impulse to buy a certain thing, or sell a certain thing at a sac- rifice, that in a day or so, perhaps an hour or so, you will be approached by some person J who will advise you personally to do that same thing, the person being likely to be benefited j 344 MIND-POWEE by the scheme or plan. I do not mean that such' person has neeessarilj' tried to influence you by men- tative currents, for he may not have conscious' done so, but nevertheless that is just what has ha] pened, and bis desire or will has caused these eu: rents to flow in your direction, and you have them. Now that your eyes have been opened to this fact, you will be amused and surprised to see how many corroborative proofs you will receive. Bi always assert your individuality as a center power, and all will be well with you in these matter! A man's Mentative P^orce is immensely more po^ erful when he uses it to protect his individualit than when he uses it to attack the individuality another. In fact, if everyone understood the lai of mentative defence, and would avail himself of th< information given under this bead, there would be almost a total absence of mentative attack, for the futilitj' of the same would soon be recognized. The only reason, that the strong individuals are able affect the wealter ones so frequently is because th( others do not know their inner power, and make defense — in fact, the majority of people do not kno' of these laws at all ; and, if one te!ls them, tbey sneer and smile knowingly, tapping their foreheads to indicate that their informant is "just a little off.** Poor sheep, and geese, they are so happy in their ignorance and conceit that It almost seems a pity to disturb them. But to return to my subject. You will find that the 'ho ij to ids i SELF PROTECTION 345 requires a much less effort of will to protect your iodividuality than it does to attack the individuality of another. You will find that the law is on your side when you say, "/ won't be influenced—/ den'^ the power of another'to weaken my individuality," for you have then called into operation that law of Nature which is always in operation, and which she gives to her creatures in the way of an instinctive protective force. So there is no occasion to be afraid —you are immune from attacks if you will hut as- sert the force within you. In passing on to the other phases of telementa- tion, I would again remind you that in these in- stances of direct telementation the force may be used both consciously, or unconsciously. Those who know the laws of the use of the force may propel these telementative currents direct to those whom they wish to influence, just as they may consciously give mental suggestions in a personal interview. But, even where these laws are not understood, the cur- rents or the suggestions are sent forth by the strong desire or will animating the person. Of course the person who understands the subjeot will be able to direct his force with greater precision and effect, but in any event the effect is produced in the same way. CHAPTER XXIV. IHDIEECT INFLtTENCE. Let us now pass on to a consideration of ( i class of Telementation, which I call "I Telementation," or the use of the Fo^ce with a (/e* eral purpose of affecting the desired result, withom special direction toward any particular person persons. This form of manifestation of telemei tation may be gi'ouped into two sub-classes, viz., in which the general desire or will of the individual" to attain certain results manifests itself in personal interviews, and induces mental states in those with whom he comes iu contact; and (b) in cases wherein the general desire and will manifest in teleraenta- tive currents, or waves, or whirlpools, affecting i persons and things who are interested in any way i the enterprise, scheme, plan or undertaking of th| individual, and tending to cause them to "fall inn line" and obey the will or comply with the desird of the general plan of the invidual. This last form of telementative influence is : more common than one would suppose. Stronj positive men start into motion waves and cnrreafl that sweep over the country, gathering force witf each added impetus, and using the princ INDIEECT INFLUENCE 347 "mental contagion" to increase its influence. Great "leaders of men" are centers of these mentative whirlpools, and similar forms of mentative influ- ence, and draw in, or suck in to themselves persons, things, and objects conducive to their plans and ambitions. They do not have it all their own way, of course, for there are many influences at work which tend to neutralize their efforts. Other men have conflicting schemes which interfere with and often destroy the influence of these great mentators, and people are becoming educated regarding the nature of the forces they employ, and will not ac- cept adverse suggestions or allow their vibrations to influence them. Still the force is still used to great effect by many politicians, and other persons who reach out toward large numbers of people. Leading "generals of business" also make use of the force in this manner, and draw things "their way." In fact nearly everybody who does business with people scattered over a large territory, employs this force more or less, generally unconsciously. And many of these uses work no harm upon those affected, because many of these people are engaged in legitimate enterprise, and want always to give a "square deal," and a "good dollar's worth." I am not holding up this mianifestation of telemen- tation as reprehensible— I am merely stating its gen- eral laws and forms of manifestation. One may repel these mentative waves in the same way, and by the same methods mentioned in the preceding chapters 348 MIND-POWEU in refrence to the repelling of direct telementatioi The rule is the same in both cases, for the principi involved is the same. Before leaving this branch of the subject, I woulc remind you that one may take advantage of this last mentioned form of telementation for his own good, in a perfectly proper and justifiable way. One may wish to gain certain information and knowledge about certain subjects. If so, if he will hold a strong desire that the desired knowledge shall come to Lis notice and attention, and if at the same time he wills that the mentative currents flow forth in search of persons, things, and objects capable of impart- ing the knowledge or information, he will get re- sults. He will find that after a while he will run across people who will be glad to give him the in- formation he wants; or be will pick'up a book that will either tell him what he wants, or else will refer to some other book or subject that will point out the path to him. These instances are quite couunon, and afford wonderful proofs of the laws herein stated. In this way no one is harmed, and mutual benefits are obtained. People are attracted to each other in this way, and each finds his own. The above manifestation results from the oper- ation of what has been called the "Law of Attrac- tion," by the workings of which each person is edn- tinnally drawing to himself the people, things, ob- jects and even "circumstances" in harmony and accord with his prevailing mental states. Like at- INDIRECT IKFLUENCE 349 tracts like, and the mental states determine that which one draws to himself. If you are not satisfied with what is coming to you, start to work and change your mental attitudes and mental states, and you will see a change gradually setting in, and things that you want will begin to "come your way." This law of attraction has been much written about in works on Mental Science during the past ten years, so it is not necessary for me to go into details about *it here. I have given you the general principles in this chapter, and you may apply them accordingly. A most important fact about the effect of men- tative vibrations upon people lies in the principle that one is more affected by vibrations in hanuon> with his own accustomed feelings and mental states, than by those of opposite natures. A man who is full of evil schemes, and selfish aims, is more apt to he caught up by sinnilar vibrations than one who hves above that plane of thought. He is more easily tempted by evil suggestions and influences, than one to whom these things are abhorrent. And the same is true on every plane. A man whose mental attitude is one of confidence and fearlessness, is not apt to be affected by vibra- tions of a negative.pessimistic, gloomy nature, and vice versa. Therefore, if you wish to receive the vi- brations of the thoughts and feelings of others, you must place yourself in a mental attitude corre- sponding with those vibrations you wish to receive. And if you wish to 8void vibrations of a certain 350 MIND-POWEE kind, the best way is to rise above them in yonr o^ mind, and to cultivate mental states opposite t~ them. The positive always overcomes the negative —and optimistic mental states are always positive to pessimistic mental states. The sense of indivii uality, and one's relation to the Universal Min< Power, is the strongest and most positive meni state one can attain. Therefore cultivate it, firi last and all the time. I now come to a phase of the subject that under- lies all of the phenomena of telementation, and really gives the "key" to much of its wonderful effects, I allude to what occultists know as ' ' Visualization. ' ' This visualization is to telementation what the pat- tern is to the maker of objects; what the plan? of the architect are to the builders; what the "mould" or "matrix" is to moulders of metal. It is the skeleton around which the materialization of thought-forms occurs. It is of the greatest impor- tance to you to acquaint yourselves with its laws and effects. To "visualize" means to "see mentally"— that is, to form a mental image of a thing— to "see it in one's mind," etc., Visuahzation, along the Hoes of one's daily occupation is a most important tb: but one that is very poorly appreciated because lif tie understood. The best workmen, writers, invento: composers, etc., are those who are able "to see thing in the mind," and then reproduce it in terialized form. Sir Francis Galton, one of the INDIRECT INFLUENCE 351 authorities upon tte subject, has said: "The free action of a vivid visualizing faculty is of much im- portance in connection with the higher processes of generalized thought. • ' * A visual image is the most perfect form of mental representation wherever the shape, position,and relations of ob- jects to space are concerned. • • • y^g jgyj workmen are those who visualise the whole of what they propose to do, before they take a tool in their hand. • • • Strategists, artists of all denomin- ations, physicists who contrive new experiments, and in short, all who do not follow routine, have need of it. " " 'A faculty that is of importance in all technical and artistic occupations ; that gives ac- curacy to our perceptions, and justice to our gen- eralizations ; is starved by lazy disuse, instead of be- ing cultivated judiciously in such a way as will, on the whole, bring the best return. I believe that a serious study of the best means of developing and utilizing this faculty, without prejudice to the prac- tice of abstract thought in symbols, is one of the many pressing desiderata in the yet unformed science of education." And all that Sir Francis Galton has said above is equally true of the cultivation of the art of visu- alization in connection with telementation. The trouble with the majority of people is that they da not know just what they do ivant. They are not able to form clear mental images of that which they wish to "create" or "materialize." The men who obtain 352 MIND-POWER the greatest and most wonderful reaalts througli mentative influence, particularly in the form of tele- mentation, are those men who are able to ' ' visualize ' ' most clearly the things that they wish to "materi- alize"~who are able to form the mental Image of the things they wish to manifest. The secret of visualization lies in the occult and psycholo^cal principle that "as is the mental mat- rix, so is the mental form ; and as is the mental form , so is the physical materialization." In other words, the visualized mental image is the matrix or mould into which the Mind-Power is poured, and from which it takes form; and around this mental image the deposit of materialization forms— and thus does the ideal become the real. If you wish to get the best effects from Mind-Power you must create a mental image around which the material or physical mater- ialization is formed— and the way to form the proper mental image is by visualization, which thus builds "ip the matrix or mould in which the Mind-Power pours. And as is the matrix so is the image, and as is the image so is the materialization. Before you can draw to you the material needed *or building up the things or conditions you desire you must form a clear mental image of just what you want to materialise— and before you can make this mental image, you must realise mentally just exactly what you do desire. And the process of this is called visualization. That is, you build up a mental mat- rix or mould, little by little, until you have it before INDIEECT INFLUENCE 353 you clearly— until it stands out clearly formed as a mental image, just as you would see it if it were actually materialized. Then you must hold this men- tal image before j'ou constantly, regarding it not as a mere imagination, but as a something real which you have created in your mind, and which wiil pro- ceed to surround itself with the material necessarj' to give it material objectivity, or materialization. If you cannot see the whole thing at first, as a mental image— that is, if yon are not able to build up a complete matrix by visualization, then do the next best thing— which is the very best thing for the majority of people — and build a matrix of the first step toward the whole thing, that is, the first thing that is needed. Then concentrate upon this first thing until the mental image stands out sharp and clear, and you will find that things have been started in motion. Then, yon may add little by lit- tle to your matrix, and build up your mental image a little larger and in greater detail. And here is an important thing. You must mentally see the thing as actually existing, right notv, and not as "going to exist" later on. You must realize that the mental image exists right now, else it will lack clearness and effectiveness. You must pour into that naental image a constant supply of strong, positive Desire-Force, and Will- Power, all of which will spread out in the proper di- rections and affect the material needed to material- ize your mental image. By so doing you impart to 354 MIND-POWER the mentative currents the necessary impetus and direction, and they will operate along these lines, and will proceed to materialize your mental image for you. Things will come your way; people will appear who are necessary to your plans; information will come to you from strange sources, and in unex- pected times and places; opportunities will open themselves up to you. But remember this, that yon must be prepared to act upon these openings, and opportunities. You must be alert and watchful, and expectant. You will have to do the work, remem- ber, yourself, although the forces you have started into operation will supply you with the material. The door will be opened to you, but you must step in yourself; the tools and materials will be provided you, but you must use them; the information will be laid before you, but you must make it your ow Even Mind-Power will not avail the lazy man. 7jf must learn to "do things" yourself. This subject of visualization would fill a book 1 itself, hut I hope that I have been able to give yd a clear idea of its working principles. Eemembi always this rule— this Triple-Key of Attainmeijj as I have often called it: (1) You must desirel thing most intensely; (2) then you must earnestt expect it: (3) then you must use your will in 1 direction of action tending to bring it about. B^ first of all, as I have said, you must know just tvhai you do want, and then proceed to create the mental matrix or mould by visualisation — that is, yon i proceed to mentail^^ see it as siteu^^ e^MAiiit. INDIRECT INFLUENCE 355 This chapter must be read and studied in connec- tion with the chapters preceding it, for tbey blend into each other, and the information "laps." I have given you certain principles, in plain, practical form, which may seem so simple to you as to be passed over without the proper consideration and examina- tion. Do not make this mistake, I pray you. Do not long for high-sounding terms and mystical verbiage. The truth is capable of being expressed without these fancy trappings or draper}-, I have tried to tell you the principle of these things— but you must study carefully in order to grasp every point. I have boiled down, and condensed a great deal of in- formation into this lesson— be sure that you do not allow any of the points to escape you. You cannot expect to acquaint yourself fully with this subject in one hasty reading. You must read and re-read many times, with careful study and thought. You must do some thinking on your own account, in order to apply these general principles to your own ' ' sj-mp- toms" and needs. You must read carefully, and then think a little. There is no royal road to Mind- Power, or anything else. I have tried to make the road a little easier for you— but you must do the traveling yourself. You cannot reach the heights by proxy. You must digest these things yourself— predigested ideas will do you no good. Underlying all of these wonderful manifestations of teleraentation, there is just the simple principle that I have pointed out to you — induction of mental states by Desire-Force and "Will-Power. Evecv- 356 MIND-POWER thing occurs by reason of this principle. Ton i think that the book that you needed, and which cai to you so wonderfully, must have arrived in i other way. Not so, the book was placed here, and moved there, by people, and these people have minds capable of being moved by vibratory waves, and so when once the thing was set into operation, all things worked together toward the given end. Even the present hook reached you under the law of attrac- tion. There is no chance in these matters — there are laws in operation everywhere, and always — and over all there is the Great Law. And, now in concluding this chapter, I would re- mind you to always realize that you are centers of living mental energy in the great Ocean of Mind- Power. And that you are strong in the degree that yon are positive. And that you are positive in the degree that you are an individual. And you are an Individual in the degree that you realize that you are a "center of living will." There is nothing to fear but fear— you are capable of asserting your in- dividuality always, and everywhere— your only chains are those you forge for yourself— you are free right now, here, and always. Do not be deluded by the petty things of personality, that pass away and perish over-night— but rest serene and firm in thg consciousness that you are an in- dividual living will center; and fear Bot to assert the individual "I." There is no Devil but fear— noth- ing but fear can keep you from your own heritage and birthright. Assert the "I" and baniah j CHAPTEB XXV. MENTAL THEEAPETJTICS. ' "Therapeutics" means "the healing art," tbere- ^fore "Mental Therapeutics" means "the art or seience of Menta! Healing." If I were writing this lesson from the standpoint of twenty years ago, I would think it advisable to fill page after page with a recital of the many claims of mental healing, hut no such necessity exists at the present time. People have heard mneh regarding mental healing, and while they may differ in their theories and opinion regarding the nature of the cures performed, still nearly all of them will acltnowl- edge that cures have been made and are being made by mental healing methods. The history of mental healing extends away hack into the past, and the earliest pages of history treat it as if it were a long established and well ac- cepted method. In fact the history of mental heal- ing is the history of Mind-Power, so far as the older peoples and races are concerned. The ancient Magi used their mental powers iit the direction of healing the sick, and restoring natural, healthy conditions. People were brought to the temples to be healed, and after the customary incantations, and ceremo- L 358 MIND-POWER nies, designed to affect tTie imagination and resp» of the primitive people, tliey were fouiid to be I fited, and actually cured in time. But under and baclj of all these ceremonies and rites, the principle eifecting the cure was the same principle that is be- ing used today by all forms of mental healing, un- der whatever names it may be disguised and 1 masked. There is but one mental healing principle,, and that has always been used; is being used now; J and always will be used, so long as the race exists. I And this principle is the application and employ- ment of Mind-Power. Mind-Power is positive to J both force and matter, as we have seen in these ] chapters, and the negative always yieMs to the posi- J tive when the latter is properly and intelligently ap* J plied, Mind-Power really builds up the body froai ] a single cell, and is inherent in every part and par- ticle of the body. Every cell has its supply of Mind- Power— the cell, and combination of cells, and thel whole body in fact, is the result of conditions of man- ■ ifestations of Mind-Power. The body is all mind, at the last analysis. Mind-Power manifests itself in countless ways in the universe, and the physical bodies, and the cells of wbich they are composed are simply certain forms of manifestation of its force. And, this being so, mental healing is not a case of "mind over matter," as is often taught, but is a manifestation of positive mind over negative jnind. The central mind of man is positive to the mind i the body of man, and hence the healing effect. MENTAL THERAPEUTICS 359 Every cell has its share of mind, and science shows UB that each cell can and does live its life as a separate entity, always, however, subordinate to the whole system of cells, ajid the mind controlling it. And the mind in each cell, or system of cells, may be reached by the positive mind of a person, when prop- erly applied. In order to fnlly grasp the significance of this statement, you must remember that every- ] organ, part, bone, nerve, vessel, tissue and every- thing else in your body, is built up of cells which have formed certain combinations. There are in- dividual cells in your blood and other parts of the body; and there are cell communities in your body, which perform certain functions and which you 1 call ' ' my liver " ; " my heart " ; " my stomach " ; " my kidneys, ' ' etc., etc. And there is mind in every one of them. And the mind in every cell, and in every organ may be reached by Mind-Power applied by the mind of oneself or another person. And in this simple statement, I have embodied my idea of mental healing, which idea is based upon years of earnest study, experiment, and investiga- tion, aided by personal acquaintance with and asso- ciation with some of the most celebrated mental healers of this age. I have discarded fanciful theory, after fanciful theory, as unnecessary to ac- count for the facts observed by the leading invest- igators of mental healing, and have at last "boiled down" the matter to this point and idea of Mind in the cells and cell-groups ; which mind is negative MIND- POWER to the positive central mind of the individual, es- pecially when the latter is concentrated wnd vntelli^A i/ently applied. You may ask me the question "Well, hut 'what about all the various metaphysical, religious, and semi-religious theories advanced to account for the cures performed by the various cults and sects of the 'New Thought' and similar movements T" An- swering this I would say that the various cults and sects perform cures not because of their dogmas, but often in spite of them — the real cures being per- formed by Mind-Power, pure and simple, called into operation, and employed, in various forms, and ways, under many coverings, disguises and dra- peries. It is all the same grand old principle, but "with fringe on" — the style of fringe depending on the particular theories and dogmas of the sects. There has been much written, spoken, and taught concerning mental healing, under some name or other, but the majority of the writers have been at- tached to some particular cult, church, or organiza- tion, which claimed that the whole truth rested upon the acceptance of some particular theory, idea, doe- 1 trine or dogma advanced and held by it, in accord- j ance with the particular views of some certain -^ teacher or teachers. And, accordingly, the writings j have been colored by the hue of such belief and ] dogma. One has but to look around him in order j to see that the many conflicting schools of mental J or spiritual healing are all making cures, in spite of J MENTAL THERAPEUTICS 361 the claim of each that its particular school or sect, or church, has a monopoly on truth, and a comer on "true metaphysical healing." The truth is that they all make cures—the percentage heing about the same in each instance, taking the personal qual- ifications of the healers into consideration. In spite of the several claims that "we have the only Truth— all others are in error, and ignorant of the real Truth," etc., etc., all of these "erroneous people" are getting fine results. Their differing and often contradictory theories do not seem to cut any figure in the real work, and one who closely , studies the subject is soon forced to the conclusion that there must be some underlying principle of cure which they are all using. And so there is ! And I call this "underlying principle" the effect of positive central mind upon negative body mind— you may give it any other name you choose, but you will get the results just the same. The various theories, statements, forms, obser- vances, dogmas and u-hat-not, have no other effect than giving a strong suggestion to people tvho are impressed by the same. Some people get better re- sults when the mental healing is accompanied by some religious or serai-religious talk and explana- tion, which appeals to the emotional parts of their nature and makes them more receptive to the heal- ing process of the mind. (Sacred shrines, images and relics cause cures in this way.) Others get better results when some technical metaphysical 362 MIND-POWEE ^ theory is urged upon them, with a great «iiow and use of long high-sounding words— they may not un- derstand the words, but they think that there "must be something in it, for she used words that I couldn't begin to understand, and yet she Imew all about them," eto. Others prefer the scientific explana- tion of the school of Suggestion, which avoids meta- physical or religious theories, and yet get the re- sults. Others, still, adhere to the Mental Science idea of the Universal Mind, and the Personal Mind, and they, too, get results. Others like the Subjec- tive Mind, and Objective Mind idea— and they get results, too. They all get results — but some take more kindly to certain forms, and thus get better results. ' I have frequently advised people to go to heal- ers of certain cults and schools and churches, simply ' because I knew that the ideas of these particular schools, cults and churches would fit the particular temperament of the person in question, and thus the best results would accrue. I am most catholic in my ideas on this subject — I believe in a person em- ploying any phase of mental healing, from Bread Pills to Christian Science— providing that the partic- ular agency employed will invoke the faith, confi- dence and belief of the patient to the utmost. Which- ever form will best do this, that is the form I believe the best for the patient. I can see very well why a person of a warm relig- ious temperament would be better benefited by men- , MENTAL THEEAPEUTICS 363 tal healing in a religious form or phase than from mere suggestion, or ordinary Mental Science — it opens up a part of the nature that is conducive to the cure. And I can see why others are impressed by technical, complicated metaphysical talk, which causes them to wonder and be impressed, and thus arouses an interest and an "expectant attention" which goes a long way toward making the cure. And I can see why others still, would rebel against either of the above mentioned forms, and would be better reached by a plain, scientific presentation of the subject. Every man to his taste— in mental healing as in everything else. In this respect I am ' like the Irishman who said be was glad that all men did not have the same taste, for if they did ev- ery mother's son of them would be wanting to steal his wife away from him. But, yon may ask, why is it that faith, belief, con- fidence, etc., play such an important part in the cures, if it be true that the real cure is effected through the mind in the cells, and cell-groups — what have cells to do with faith! This is a good questinn— and here is the answer. While it is true , that the mind in the cells is the medium or cause of j the cure, still it is a fact that these cells are negative to the influence of the central mind of the person. And if that central mind be filled with the mental states of disease, fear, undesirable beliefs, etc., then | the negative cells and organs must be affected. And, if on the contrary the mental states of the per- 364 MIND-POWEB son be changed from fear to hope, confidence, love, faith, belief and expectancy, then it will be readilya seen that the effect upon the cells will be ehangi for the better. And, if to these improved mental' states, tbere is added a still more positive state— B state of conscious control and power, then will the curative effect be greatly magnified and increased. To tell the truth, I earnestly believe that the one great potent factor in mental healing, ia the re- moval of fear from the mind of the patient, by what- ever means it may be accomplished, whether by leason, argument, faith, hope, or even by supersti- tion. Fear is the most negative of the mental states, and simply paralyzes the whole system. Fear and worry actually poison the cells of the body. This is a scientifically demonstrable fact. And if this pall of fear can be lifted by any means, then a big step in the direction of a cure has been effected. And hope, confidence, and belief, will lift that pall. That is why I believe in everything from Bread Pills to "C. S.," as I said a few minutes ago— which- ever agency induces the greater degree of hope, belief, confidence, and expectancy, is tbe best for the particular case. But in all cases tbe principle of cure is the same — mind. It should not be necessary for me to recite the oft repeated facts of the phenomenon of disease being created by mental states, and of cures arising from the same. Every man or woman who reads these lessons has heard this tale over and over again. MENTAL THERAPEUTICS many times. It is no longer a debatable question, this matter of the effect of the mind in health and disease. The books are full of it. It is as "old as the hills," and at no time in the history of the world has this form of Mind-Power been accorded greater attention and interest. And therefore, I shall omit this part of the story, and proceed to business in the direction of telling you "just how" to apply the Mind-Power in healing, both present and "absent." In the first place, the principles of mental healing are precisely the same principles that are applied in all forma of Mind-Power, as we have seen them in the previous lessons. It is all a matter of "Men- tative Induction," first, last and always. And this induction may arise from either mentative currents, or by mental suggestion. Please fix this statement in your mind, so that I will not have to repeat it Now, let us see what happens if mentative in- duction is set up in the mind of a person by means either of mentative currents, or mental suggestion, when what is called "general treatment" is given. "We will suppose that the mental state of the person has been changed by induction (either from cur- rents or by suggestion) to a strong positive state— and that is what one must aim to produce in the patient. This induced positive mental state in the central mind, is of course, strongly positive to the mind in the body and its cells. The mental image of a normal, perfect, healthy, well body, being held in the central mind of the patient, it follows that the MIND-POWER physical material of the body, and cells will begS to materialize in accordaoee with the pattern i before the mind of the cells, by the central mind i the person. It is the old story of mental visui ization, and physical materialization over agaU Of course, the effect is wonderfully heightened J the patient will direct his desire and will strong to the recuperative or reparative action, in wh effort he may be materially aided by the healer. The desired mental state in the patient may be i dueed either by auto-suggestion (self-suggesticB on his own part ; or by the suggestion of the healei (here is where the ceremonies, and "frills . fringes" of the cults, come in) ; or by the.direet mea tative currents of the healer, applied as indicated in the previous lessons. In this fonn of healing, the healer works by arousing the mind of tJic patient, so that he really cures himself. This "arousing" is of course affected by either suggestion, or nien- tative currents— the effect being the result of "in- duction" in either case, as you will readily under- stand. This form of mental healing, which I call "general treatment" includes both the form of "present healing," that is when the healer is in the personal presence of the patient, or else along the lines of what is called "absent treatments" or "dis- tant treatments," when the healer and the patient are not in each other's presence. Leaving the subject of "general treatment," for the moment, let us consider the broad principleaj MENTAL THERAPEUTICS 367 underlying "local treatment." By "local treat- ment" I mean mental healing effected by the mind of the healer being directly and specially applied to the mind in the cells and organs themselves. You will remember what I have said about there being "mind in the cells and organs"— "local treatment" is an application based upon that fact. The mind of the healer is brought to bear in a positive, direct, special manner upon these cells and organs, and the suggestions, and mentative currents are directed immediately to these organs and cells, without the intermediate employment of the central mind of the patient, as in the case of "general treatment." Of course one may apply "local treatment" to himself, by directing his mind directly to the cells and organs, instead of indirectly by means of general mental treatment. You may wonder why I speak of direct- ing "suggestions "to the cells — you may well ask, "can the cells heart" The cells cannot hear, but the utterance of the words of the suggestion, by you, will enable you to direct your inind more directly and forcefully upon the cells and organs. You will see, as we proceed, that I advocate "speaking right up" to the cells and organs of the body, and telling them just what you want them to do. You will be surprised when you try this and see how they re- spond. Now, that we understand the general principles of both of these phases of mental treatment, let us pass on to a consideration of the practice of mental MIND-POWER healing— the actual "how" of the subject. "We s begin with "general treatment," both present I absent, and will then take up the second phai "local treatment." In both cases we shall a& actual methods of treatment, in detail. But I i ask you to pay close attention to what I have t about these treatments, for I am condensing a whole course of lessons in mental healing Into two chap- ters, and you will miss something imless you watch The first step in the personal form of general treatment is to induce in your patient a mental state of calm, and relaxation. This is quite important because this mental state causes the patient to be- come receptive to the impressions that you wish to make upon his or her mind. The best plan is to have the patient seat himself in a comfortable posi- tion (or if he is lying down, let him assume a com- fortable attitude), and then talk to him a little in order to induce a comfortable, easy frame of mind. which will react upon the physical conditions. Have him relax every muscle, and withdraw the tension from every nerve, so that he will be re]a.xed, and "limber" all over, from head to feet. The best way to determine whether or not the desired con- dition has been effected is to raise one of his hands and then allow it to drop back to his sides or lap. If he is fully relaxed, his hand will drop just as if it were not attached to his body. The mental state producing this physical condition may be best stated MENTAL THERAPEUTICS 369 by the words "Let Go!" One must mentally "let go," before he will be able to "let go" physically. The patient must feel perfectly at ease, and com- fortable, in order that the best results be gained. The healer should endeavor to quiet the mind of the patient by an earnest, confident, sjinpathetic conversation, leading the subject toward bright, hopeful, happy topics, and especially avoiding any- thing likely to arouse antagonism or argument. He should throw earnestness and feeling into his tones, and speak as if his one object in life were to cure the patient, and of which cure he entertained not the slightest doubt. The healer should forget him- self, and concentrate his mentality completely upon the subject of curing the patient. He should be very careful to act out the part of the confident, successful healer, because sick people are very sug- gestible, and take on impressions very easily, and so, if the healer manifests an apparent lack of confi- dence in his outward demeanor, the patient will be most likely to accept the suggestion, and the work of healing will thus be rendered doubly difBeult. If you have studied the principles of mental suggestion, you will see the psychology of this fact. It will be well to begin the treatment by a pre- liminary suggestive treatment, in a conversational tone. You should point out to the patient the con- ditions that you intend to bring about. You should endeavor to obtain the patient's co-operation by means of his holding a mental image of the desired 370 MIND-POWER condition. That is, if it be a ease of stomach trouble, he should form a mental image of a strong, healthy normal stomach, doing its work properly, and digesting the food that is given it, and mani- festing a good, hearty natural appetite. If the patient will do this he will be able to do much to- ward aiding you. You should then tell him that his stomach is Strong, STRONG, STRONG, (speak- ing the words ivith intense feeling and force) and that normal conditions are reasserting themselves under the power of the noind. You should, in many ways and forms, keep before him constantly a pic- ture of the conditions you wish to bring about, for by so doing you will change his mental image of dis- ease into a mental image of health, and the best re- sult is sure to follow. If you prefer the use of the hands in healing, by all means use them, as such practice gives a most powerful suggestion, as well as possessing other advantage-s. You will find that you will he able to imparl a won- derful degree of forceful, earnest intensity to your voice, if you will hut practice "visualization" in your treatments. That is, you must endeavor to actually see mentaUy, the conditions that you wish to bring about. And when you are able to do this, you will be able to hold the attention of the patient as his mind follows your words in your description of the succea- i sive steps of the cure that you intend bringing abont^j He will be able to see himself as gradually improving',"! and growing weD, not only in a general way, but also MENTAL THERAPEUTICS 371 in the sense that he will be able to form a mental pic- ture of the formerly diseased organ actually growing strong and normal. Always keep before you the mental image of the conditions that you wish to bring afeouf — see them before you as actually existing right kom;— and your mind, and actions and voice will con- form to that mental image, for by so doing the patient will receive the best possible suggestion, and your meutative currents will be stronger and more dynamic. In the following chapter, we pass on to a consider- ation of the actual methods of applying Mind-Power to the healing of disease. OHAPTEB SXVI. F MENIAIi HEALISQ UETHODS. And now to the actual work of mental healing by mentative currents. In this work I must again re- peat my injunctions given in the preceding chaptei regarding the holding of the proper mental image ID the mind of the healer. In the degree that the prop- er mental image is held, will be the degree of success in the treatment. ' ' Visualization' ' is the kej--note of this form of mental healing, and the healer should devote himself earnestly to acquiring the art oh visualizing. You must "be able to see the patient i healed, and the organs, parts, and cells as function ing normally and properly. Cast aside all negativi thought, and doubts, and throw yourself earnesti into the work before you. You will find that as the ability to visualize is acquired, there will come to yoo a feeling of strength and power, and a sense of cer-_| tainty about your work. The process of transmitting the mentative en: rents is not especially difficult or strenuous. In fai this part of the work seems almost " automatiolll All that you will have to do is to concentrate yon full attention upon the mental image that yon have visualized, and earnestly desire that the piotnre ma- MENTAL HEALING METHODS 373 terializes, and do not bother at all about the currents, for the latter will begin to flow freely without any voluntary effort on your part. Occasionally you may throw a little Will-Power into the work, in order to stimulate the healing process, but ordinarily the unconscious use of ilie Desire Force will accomp- lish the result. It is not necessary to use the strenuous effort that so many mental healers employ in giving treatments — this is all waste energy, and tires one out without any corresponding advantage to the patient. The clear-cut mental image pro- duced by the practice of visualization performs the work for you, as I have said, almost ' ' automatically. ' ' The more realistic your picture is made to appear to you, the greater the force sent forth, and the greater the degree of success will you have in your healing. Some excellent healers have found that they gained additional force if tbey would add to their mental picture or image, the picture of the mentative cur- rents actually leaving their minds and travelling to- ward the patient, and then enveloping and surround- ing the latter. One very good healer has told me that she always can see, mentally, the patient being "bathed in a perfect stream of her Mind-Power." I feel that this lady is right, and that by addine this feature to the mental image very good results may be obtained. The student of these lessons will find this last image easy to produce if he will re- member what we have said about thought-forms. I do not advise too long treatments, for I believe that 374 MIND-POWEB tlie best results are obtained in a treatment est* ing over say not more than fifteen minutes, should then leave the patient with a few ean words of encouragement and hope, bidding him ] in your work by keeping the proper mental imagei health before him, and especially avoiding all i and worry. The above process of giving a mental treati may seem very simple to those who have not pri ticed It. But you will find that it contains the j essence of the healing process, withont the "frin^ and ' ' trimming. ' ' And more than that you will f wonderfully efficacious— it will "do the work. ' will never begin to even faintly realize the virl such a treatment, until you begin to practice it. will then find yourself so fihed with such a f power, strength and healing force, that you will & like another person. And your patient will 1 feel an immediate benefit. I might write page a page, giving you directions about the treatment, I after I was through, it could all be boiled down i the plain, simple directions already given you. I h given you the basis of the practical treatmei you may add the "trimmings" yourself, if you i that you need them. This same basis you will i to underlie all of the treatments of the various i and cults, after you have trimmed off the ' ditions, ' ' high-sounding words, and metaphysi terms. I have studiod all these forms of treatij and know just what I am talking about when 1 tbia to you. MENTAL HEALING METHODS 375 And now for tlie "absent treatments" along the lines of general treatment. There is practically no difference in the methods. The principal additional process is that of the healer endeavoring to form a mental image of the patient, as if he were right be- fore him in person. If you have ever seen the patient you may easily reproduce his mental image. But if yon have not seen him personally, you can form a. mental image of "a man," or "a woman," without billing in the details of personal appearance, and the result will be similar. You will find the following method will help you in the treatment. Sit down in your chair, after drawing up another chair right be- fore you, but about two or three yards distant. Then picture your patient as sitting in this other chair, and use your imagination to the fullest in this respect. Many practitioners of successful mental healing ac- tually feel that tlie patient is sitting before them in this form of treatment. Then with your patient sit- ting before you (as a mental image) talk to him just as if he were present in person, using the same words, tones, and manner. Throw yourself earnestly into the idea of a personal treatment, and endeavor to for- get that miles are between you. By so doing yoii ■will be able to start the mentatlve currents flowing freely in his direction, and he will be affected by them, and will obtain the best results. I have been told frequently by persons who have taken this form of healing from some of the world's best mental rs, that they could almost see the healer befora 376 MIND-POWER thera— they could certainly feel his presence very fl tinetly. This "talk" to the distant patient should consist of the same calming, quieting, soothing suggestions at first, followed by the positive, stimulating, force- ful suggestions given afterward. Follow the pre- cise instructions given for use in personal treatments, and you cannot go astray. There is no difference, in reality, between personal treatments and absent treatments— if you will remember this, and act upon it, you will have the key to tlie matter. And, then, after the suggestive talks, you should then give the same silent mentative treatment as indicated in my instructions regarding personal treatments. You should form the same kind of mental image, and pro- ceed just the same, in every particular. Even bid him "good-bye" as you would in a persona! treat- me^nt. If you have set a time for the absent treat- ment, your patient should place himself in a comfort- able relaxed position. But this is not necessary— it is not necessary for the patient to even know the hour of treatment. All that he needs to do is to open hia mind, receptively, to the treatment that you are to give him some time during the day— that is, he shoaid express his mental "willingness," and thus take off the resistance of his will which otherwise would have to be overcome. The healer who wishes to give absent treatmoits should study carefully the portions of this work re- lating to telementative Induction, the cnrrraita, MENTAL HEALING METHODS 377 'tiionght-fonus, etc. Eememlier, please, that all the of mental healing is done along the lines of mentative induction, just as is the work of all forms of mentative influence. There is but one great law ■underlying all of these forms of manifestation, and if you understand the fundamental principle you will te able to reproduce any or all of the manifestations of it. The instruction regarding mental healing is not confined to this chapter alone— it must be gained ffrom a study of all these chapters, for the reasons just stated. Strive always to acquire a clear knowl- edge of the underlying principles, and you need not worry about the details of operation or manifesta- tion. And, now, just a word about self-healing, along these lines. There is no difference between self-heal- ing, and the healing of others. Here is a good method— simple and efficacious. All that is neces- sary for you to do is to imagine yourself as a patient 'coming to yourself for treatment. Suppose your name is "John Smith," and yoc wish to treat your- self along the lines of the general treatment. All you 'have to do is to let the central mind part of you {or the "I") proceed to treat the fcoeii/ of "John Smith." Talk to "John Smith" just as if he were an entirely separate individual. Tell him what be should do, and what he should know, and what you expect to ]o for him. Give him the same sugges'tions that you mmld give another patient. Talk up to him, and tell him just what you mean to do for him, and what 378 MIND-POWER he has got to do himself. Then give him the Sul Treatment just as you would another patient, give him the parting words, just as you wouldj patient. In short, treat him first, last, and all I time as you would another patient. You will 3 surprised to note how efficacious this plan is. method is original with myself, so far as I 1 There is a good, strong psychological and reason for this plan of self-treatment, which is 1 necessary to go into here— the principal thing is t it ' ' will do the work. ' ' Try it. The ordin method of self-treatment is to say, "I am well" so on, giving the suggestions In the first personal consider that my own plan gives better results, 1 you may try both, and decide for yourself. And now for the "local treatment" methods->| mental healing. These are very simple also- simple that I fear some of you will undervalue thd But do not deceive yourselves, good friends, "simplicity" represents years of hard work ala experimental iines, and is really the "boifing do'w of many methods far more complicated and techn: It is the "essence" of the thing, again. I wish i I could have obtained this information as easilyl you are doing— but I couldn't, for I had to worla out for myself, in connection with other menters and investigators. The underlying thei of this local treatment in mental healing is (1) there is mind in every cell; cell-group; organ; i part, of the body; and (2) that the mentative enei MENTAL HEALING METHODS 379 In such mind is negative to that in the central mind of the individual, and consequently, yields to its posif ^vity when properly applied. That is the whole itory in a nut-shell. Now see if you can grasp its mportance. The above principle of the '*Iocal treatment" is really also employed in the general treatment, be- Jause the central mind of the patient is stirred into nduced activity and positivity by tbe suggestion, or nentative currents of the healer, or both. The een- ital mind of the patient, so stirred up by induction, ;hen acts upon tbe mind in the cells, organs, etc., inconscioualy, and the cure results. Do you see just jfhat I meant Well, then in tbe local treatment, in- itead of going about it in this way, the healer brings lis mentative energy to bear right directly upon the mind in cells, and organs themselves. So you see the process is really tbe same at the last, that is, it is the ipplicatioD of the positive central mind upon the neg- ative mind of the cells, organs and parts. Now, then, how may one treat the cells and organs af another person, in this way? The process is very simple, when you once learn it. All that is necea- Baiy is for you to "treat" the organ, or part, just as you did tbe patient, in several forms of general treatment, as stated a little while ago. You must learn to "talk to" the organ or part affected, and to give it suggestions and mental treatment just as you did your personal patient. In short, the Die nearer you can come to considering, and treat- than dnviDS, » j ^gj,. -you i" J j^;, ;»j necessary, a. « ^^^ „^^^, or "l^^^;" j,, y„*:»' ;, d„.d to the .».n4 » „t,ers) you »ay ^^^ thehetter^ay »* ,1 ^^ j,rt «hat J j.^l exceptiou '^ .'"/^ „i,,i.„, ""f 'a^the proceed* what I to" I Tines I licul I that I esc I aiu 1^^ ma mm MENTAL HEALINO METHODS 381 teaoher, And I am inelined to think that she is Iright, and has made an improvement on my original iidea. For these "cell-rainds," or "organ-minds" closely resemble the minde of undeveloped children, 'and are often unreasonably stubborn, although if they are reached the right way, by a firm though jkindly tone, in most cases they "will obey orders, and Imend their ways, j It is well to use the hands at the beginning of this ^form of treatment, in the direction of tapping or pat- ■'ting the part of the body directly over the organ. 'This seems to have the effect of awakening the at- Itention of the organ-mind, so that it becomes more {receptive. It is akin to tapping the shoulder of a iinan on the street, to whom you wish to speak. In such cases, it is well to send the mental command: "Here! Listen to me!" The hands of the healer 'may also be passed over the body as the mental com- jmands are given, and they serve to give an additional ■ and strengthened suggestion when properly used. A plain, simple way of giving this treatment is I to awaken the attention of the mind in the organ or 'part, as above stated, and then proceed to mentally ilecture it calling it by name, as for instance. "Herej ! stomach 1" or "Now, you liver," etc. Don't smile at ' this advice— just try it on yourself and you will stop smiling. Then go on and tell the organ-mind just what you would tell it if it were an actual person- ality — a childish mind, for instance. You will sood find how quick the organ-mind is to awaken to your MIND-POWEB words, and to aot upon your suggestions or ordereE Follow tlie laws of suggestion in giving these treat- ments to the organ-minds— that is, remember then suggestive phases of repetition, authoritative de- mand or command, etc. Don't be afraid, but starl in to give the organ-mind "a piece of your mind," and it will obey you. Dr. Paul Edwards, one of the world's most famou meatal-healers, whom I met quite often a number t years ago when he was living in Chicago, informer me that the result of his practice has taught him thall there was a great difference in the "intelligence' I of the mind in the several organs. For instance, believed that the heart was very "intelligent," a quite amenable to mild, gentle, coaxing suggestion^ and advice or orders; while on the other hand, thq liver was a most mulish, stubborn, obstinate orgai^ mind, which had to be driven along by the sharpesfl and most positive suggestions. I have since invei tigated along this line, and I am now fully convinci of the correctness of Dr. Edwards' theory in this i spect. I have found the heart to be very gentle, s obedient, as he said, and I have moreover fonnd j needed hut the slightest word to attract its attentio^ I have found the liver to be brutish, stubborn, s obstinate, and needing the most forceful, insistc methods— something like driving a stubborn donkffl along the road. I have also found the liver to 1 lazy and sleepy, and needing much effort to roud it into a receptive condition. The stomach I hall MENTAL HEALING METHODS 383 found qnite intelligent, particolarly if it has not been brutalized by "stuflBng," and it "will readily respond to the treatment. A peculiar thing about the stomach is that it seems to like "jollying," or "flattery"— tell it how good a stomach it is, and how well it can do its work ; and how much you trust it to run things right for you ; and lo ! it proceeds to "make good," and justify your praise and com- mendations. The nerves respond readily to this form of treat- ment, along gentle coaxing lines. The circulation of the blood may be increased to certain parts, or re- strained, in this way. In this way the blood can be swept all over the body, creating a pleasant glow; or it may be drawn away from an aching head, or a feverish brow. The bowels respond readily to a firm, kind treatment, in which they are to be told to move regularly— it being well to name a certain time at which you expect them to establish a regular habit, in which case be sure to keep your appointment with them and give them a chance. The organs peculiar to women will respond quite readily to this form of treatment. Regular menstruation has often been established by treating the proper parts in this way a month ahead, and keeping it up every day un- til the regular period— in this case it is also well to "fix a date." Suggestions of "firm, now— be firm and strong ' ' have relieved many cases of womb weak- nesses. Profuse menstruation has yielded to com- mands of "aZotc, now; easi/, easy; not so free a flow," et<i 384 MIND-POWEE There are no fixed forms of treatment along thd lines. You must acquire the "knack" by practid The proper words will suggest themselves to ya The thing to do is to know what you want done, afii then command the organ-mind to do that thing; usinM the same words that you would use in talking to 4 real person in the place of the organ. You will sooj acquire the art, by a little practice. Those who haiq treated a large number of persons in this way havi told me that the mind in the organs and parts seei to instinctively recognize the healer's power ov them. Just as a horse or dog will recognize met who are accustomed to managing animals of thd kind, so will these organ-minds instinctively Tea nize their master in one who has studied thiB art < mental-healing, along these lines. Remember always that you are mind talking' \ mind, not to dead matter. There is mind in every c nerve, organ and part of the body, and in the body a a whole; and this mind will listen to your centn mind and obey it, because your central mind is po^ tive to it — the organ is negative to you. Carry i idea always with you in giving these treatment^ and endeavor to visualize the mind in the orgai etc., as clearly as may be, for by so doing you | them in better rapport with you, and can handle thel to better advantage. And, also remember, that the virtue lies not in fc mere sound of the words that happen to reach i organ or cells— they do not understand words as MENTAL HEALING METHODS words, but they do understand the meaning behind the words— they recognize the mental state of which the word is the outward symbol. But without words it is very hard for you to think, or clearly express the feeling— and so by all means use the words just as if the organ-minds understood their actual mean- ing, for by so doing, you can drive in the meaning of the word — and induce the mental state conditions necessary to work the cure. "While this local treatment is adapted especially to personal healing, still it may be also used to great advantage in absent healing, by combining it with the regular general form of absent healing. That is, after giving the general absent treatment, proceed to place yourself en rapport with the organ-mind in ■the patient, and then talk to it just as you would if the patient were actually present. Visualization will enable you to do this effectively. I have heard of some wonderful cures having been effected by the use of this form of local treatment in absent healing, in connection with the general treatment. And in case of self-healing this local treatment acts with wonderful force. One can, of course, "talk up" to his own cells and organs just as be can to those of another and with equal effect if be goes about it right. This opens up a wonderful field for self- healing. The methods and practice of local treat- ment in self-healing are precisely similar to those used in treating others. I am personally acquainted with a lady who bas learned to make her body obey her perfectly. If the body looks tired or drooH or lacks freshness and beauty, she just "talks up to it and tells it how much she thinks of it and hot much she appreciates all that it is doing for her, et< and at the same time encourages it to manifest i tivity and interest, etc. The result is that the neq morning after the treatment she will find that j of her suggestions have heen accepted and acte upon by the body, and that the latter looks fra active and beautiful, manifesting all the appearaj of youth and perfect health. I have heard of womd managing to retain their youthful appearance i similar manner. I have known men to "coax u^ their bodies, when under the strain of unusual woq with the best of results. In fact, I believe that in t form of treatment of one's own body there are j sibilties as yet undreamt of by the race. Perh, this hint may start some investigator to exploria the field to the limit— I have not found time to can my investigations along this line quite as far qsS would have liked. There is a great nnexplon field here. Here is a chance for some fine work J the students of this book. And now I seem to have reached the end of 1 chapter. Eemember, please, that within its pagetffl have condensed information sufficient to have fill^^ a good sized volume or two. Bead it carefully i do not let the simplicity of my methods lead you I ignore the wonderful possibilities open to who will practice them. I have not cared to dress ll MENTAL HEALING METHODS 387 my "treatments" and methods in fancy garb for the purpose of bewildering the eye and creating an im- pression upon the foolish and childish minds of those who run after these things. I do not want a "following" of this sort— I want, rather, the earnest sympathetic co-operation of my students who ap- preciate the virtue in these apparently simple meth- ods. As I have said before, these "simple" methods and forms of treatment represent the work and ex- perience of myself and others extending over a number of years. They are the "boiling-down" of many systems, and the result of my own experiments. They embody the simplest, plainest, and yet the most effective methods known to the world of mental healing today. Take my word for this— I base this statement upon eight active years of earnest, pa- tient, careful investigation, experiment and study along these lines under circumstances with which few are fortunate enough to be favored. I say these things not in the spirit of boasting or "booming my own wares," but merely that you may understand just what is behind and under these "simple" forms, methods and treatments. You will notice, I hope, that in order to practice these methods of mental healing you are not re- quired to "join" anything- nor asked to connect yourself with any new religion or semi-religion. Ton may adhere to your favorite beliefs, and still make as many cures as the best of those who believe and claim that the healing is done because of some MIND-POWER 1 fantastic theory, dogma or belief! Tliere is no more sense in building up a religion around mental healing than there is in building one up around Homeopathy, Allopathy, or Osteopathy, or Hydropathy, or any other "pathy." There is but one healing power of the mind and that is free and open to all. It is the gift of the Infinite to its finite reflections. It is a natural force, working under certain laws — and free to all. Take it and use it toward "the healing of the nations," beginning with yourself. CHAPTEE XXVIL MENTAL AKCHlTECrUEE. "Architecture ' ' means * ' the art or science of building 01- coDstruction, " and "Mental Architect- ure" means "the art or science of Mind Building." By "Mind Building" I, of course, mean "Brain Building," for as I have told you in a previous chap- ter, the brain is the "machinery" of the personal manifestation of mind, or the "converter" or "trans- former" of the Mind-Power. But as the word "mind" is generally used as synonymous with "brain," in the case of individuals, I shall speak of "Mind Building" in this lesson, although I always mean "Brain Building" when I so speak. The differing manifestations of mind in the vari- ous persona with whom we come in contact is at once recognized as depending upon the character, quality, degree and grade of their brain-materiaL The brain is composed of a peculiar substance called "plasm," or elementary living-matter. The word "plasm" is derived from the Greek word meaning "a mould or matrix," and its use in connection with the -brain-substance is peculiarly appropriate, for it is in the cells of the brain that "mental states" are "cast or moulded," as it were. The brain is com- 389 390 MIND-POWEK posed of an enormous number of tiny cells wtid are tlie actual elements in the production and ma; festation of thought, or mentation. These brail cells are estimated at from 500,000,000 to 2,000,0OO,J 000, according to the mental activity of the person, ~ There is always a great number of reser\'e brain- cells remaining unused in every brain, the estimate being made that even in the case of the wisest maiL or most active thinker, there are always several millions of unused brain cells held as a reserve. Ails' the most advanced science also informs us that thfl^ brain "grows" additional cells to meet any demanq upon it. And brain-building is the development an^ growth of brain-eells in any special region of thd brain; for, as you probably know, the brain contaii many regions, each region being the seat of som^ particular function, quality, faculty or mental activ* ity. By developing the brain-cells in any special region, the quality, activity or faculty which has that region for its seat is necessarily greatly in- creased and rendered more effective and powerful. The investigators along the lines of Phrenology have long since recognized the fact that brain-centers or regions could be developed by proper exercises, etc., and the text-books on that science give us many interesting facts regarding the same. These cases show us that not only is an individual able to develop and cultivate certain qualities of mind on the one hand, or restrain them on the other, but that also the very outward shape and size of the skull mani- MENTAL AECHITECTUBE 391 fests a corresponding change, for the bony struc- ture accommodates itself very gradually to the pres- sure of the increasing number of cells in some par- ticular center or region of the brain. It is a fully demonstrated scientific fact that a man may "make himself over" mentally, if he will but devote the same degree of attention, patience and work to the subject that he would in the case of a desired develop- ment of some part of the physical body— some mus- cle, for instance. And the processes are almost iden- tical in the case of muscle and brain-center— use, exercise and practice along the lines pointed out by those who have investigated and experimented along the particular line. Prof. Elmer Gates, of Washington, D. C, one of the most remarkable men of this age, has given to the world an account of some remarkable experi- ments along the line of brain-growing, the experi- ments having been tried upon various animals. Ha tells us that his early experiments along this line were in the direction of training dogs to develop some one particular sense, that of seeing or hearing particularly. He would specially train a certain number of the animals according to his methods, and at the same time would keep a like number of the same animals of the same age, etc., without any ex- traordinary use of the particular faculty in ques- tion, and still a similar number without the oppor- tunity of using that faculty at alh At the end of a certain time he would kill some of the animals belong- S92 MIND-POWER ing to each class, and upon examining tlie brains ota each he made the discovery that the number of brain cells (in the regions of their brains in which tbfl sense or faculty was manifested) showed a startli difference, depending upon the degree of use i c-xeroise of the particular faculty. His speciall|| trained animals showed a much greater number < brain-cells than had ever been found in animals i the same breed and age. Prof. Gates continued the* experiments over a number of years and obtain© some remarkable results. He specially trained t}ii faculties of some of bis dogs so that they were abU to distinguish between seven shades of red and j like number of green shades. I have not the tit here to speak at length of the wonderful results t Prof. Gates' experiments, hut he has firmly esta^ lished the scientific fact that brains may be "grownfl at will, if the person will apply himself to the sua ject with sufficient zeal and ardor. I have conducta a number of interesting experiments (not with dog or through vivisection, however) which have prov^ conclusively to my mind that the entire natun dispositions, characters and faculties of people maj be entirely changed by intelligent psychological met} ods along the lines of Suggestion or Auto-Suggi tion, accompanied with certain other methods to ] mentioned in this lesson. The great school of "New Thought" people < the various sects, cults and associations have bei doing some excellent work along these lines duri MENTAL AECHITECTUEE 393 the past tenjeara or more. Their systems of "af- firmations" and "denials" really developed or re- strained tlieir brain-centers and desirable qualities were increased and developed and nndesirable onea were restrained. But the mere use of "affirmations," "auto-snggestions" or evert strong, positive su^es- tions given by another, forms only one-third of the ■work necessary in order to produce the best results. It is all very well to assert'*! am Brave," "I am In- dustrious," "I am Active," etc., etc, but if the work stops there it remains onlj one-third done. It is true that these affirmations and auto-suggestions un- doubtedly do stimulate and develop mental facoltias and brain-centers and play an important part in character building. But in order that they be used to the best advantage there must be visualization, and there should be a certain physical acting out of the mental suggestions or affirmation. There must be seeing and doing as well as saying. You will remember what I said in my lesson on Mental Suggestion regarding the fact that "mental states take form in physical action," and its twin- truth that "physical action produces mental states." It is a case of action and reaction in both instances. For instance, if you will start in to feel angry, and keep it up a little while (even though the emotion is assumed for the experiment), you will find that your brows will fonu into a frown and that your hands will clench and your jaws will fasten into a "bite." You know tbis to be true, of course. 394 MIND-POWER But then, on the other hand, if you will assume ti^ above-mentioned physical characteristics accompanjd ing anger and will keep them np earnestly for i short time, you will find yourself actually feeliit, angry. And the same thing is true of the feeling and actions of pleasure. Think intently of som pleasant thing and you will find your face breakii^ into an expression of pleasure— you will smile; yoB^ eyes will twinkle and you will manifest all the ou4 ward characteristics of pleasure. And, on the othq hand, if you will "throw yourself into the part," a will smile and manifest all the outward signs i pleasure, you will find yourself beginning to fal "bright, cheerful and happy" in a short time, have seen a sign bearing the simple word "smilefm in big letters cause people to change their menti states in a few moments. They would take the su| gestion and being amused at the sign they woa begin to smile— then the smile's physical action would react upon their minds and they would beg to "feel good" and so on. I defy anyone to manifest the physical action of any particular emotion or feeling, earnestly an actively, for a short time, without the correspondii mental state actually manifesting itself. Go into J business house manifesting the outward signs good nature, confidence, self-reliance, etc., and ya will not only impress others by suggestion, but } will also impress yourself, and you will begin to t tuaily feel the thing that you have been acting od 395 Go into the same place manifesting the outward ap pearance of failure, lack of confidence, fear, etc., and not only will your suggestions be taken up by the others, but you will sink deeper and deeper into the mental state you are acting out. I have known people to acquire a masterful, con- fident, reliant character by a systematic and persis- tent "acting out" of the part— their "second- nature," 30 acquired, growing stronger than their original nature. The exercise of the faculty, in this way, developed the brain-cells tn the proper area and the people were indeed "made over." I know men who, when feeling "blue" or "discouraged" will always force a smile to their faces and in a short time they will regain their accustomed or de- sired cheerful state. I have known at least one man to rouse feelings of stern determination by similar methods. This man was in a position in which there would frequently arise the necessity for the manifestation of the most determined sternness and an almost angry display of will. The man in question was by nature a good- natured, easy-going, kindly person, and he found it almost impossible to manifest the desired qualities upon the occasions mentioned. But one day he was roused to a state of intense determined sternness by a most annoying exhibition of careless action in the office, which although soon settled, left him with the physical reflex of the mental state just experi- enced. Before this physical condition had passed 396 MIND-POWEB away there arose, unexpectedly, a case of ge necessity for the exhibition of the stern, deten action mentioned in tlie first place. Meeting ' man to whom this attitude must be manifested, ( man found that, much to his surprise, he display* a wonderful degree of the desired trait and gave t other man a talking to that made his hair stand c end, and brought the desired result instantly, one was more surprised at this occurrence than on man, and after it was all over he tried to "figure f out"— and did. He came to the conclusion th when he was manifesting the physical conditions of the mental state, it required but a trifling effort to induce the state itself— in fact the state came almost "automatically." He had discovered, by accident, a well-established psychological law. And he made use of it ever after. Thereafter, whenever he had to "work himself into a state," as he called it, he would walk about his office a few moments before he would see the other man, and during his walk he would "bite" hard and protrude his jaw; he would frown and clench his fists and make his eyes glare, etc., etc., and before long he would feel himself in the proper mood to see the other man and give him the necessary "laying out" The plan worked tike a charm. I almost dislike to tell you the sequel, how- ever. Our good-natured, "easy" man so developed these opposite qualities by this practice that in a few years he was known as a man to be dreaded by those who had occasion to receive treatment at his MENTAL ABCHITECTUEE 397 hands, and his whole nature seemed to have changed, and even his best friends would then hesitate to call him ' ' easy " or " good natured. ' ' He had made him- self over—that's all. And from this story you may build up a whole process of character building if you have sufficient imagination and ingenuity — for the principle is the same in all eases. Character is plastic— and may be moulded at will, by intelligent methods. But it takes more than "holding the thought" to do it— one must learn to act out the part desired, until it becomes second-nature. I wonder how mauy of you will realize what a wonderful field is here opened out for you if you will follow the idea taught by the past few pages! How ► many of you will realize that I have herein given Ijrou the "Secret of Making Yourselves Over?" I (ish that I could fairly "pound into you" this truth. "When I think of what many of you are; and then of i what you might be, if you would realize the inner I truth and importance of what I have just told you— ■Well, then, I feel like printing the tale in big, black- tfaced tj-pe and capital letters— so that I could make lyou read it. I think that the facts and principles above stated Bare self-evident and need little or no backing up by «nthorities. But I think I will give you a quota- tion or two to help fasten the idea in your minds, prof. Halleck says: "By restraining the expression f an emotion we can frequently throttle it; by in- htcing an expression we can often cause its allied MIND-POWER tmotion." I wish that every one of you would cUm-J I mit the above words to memory— they are golden. Byj expression Prof, Haileck, of course, means the phys- icai manifestation or expression— the physical ao*-| tion which springs from the emotion. Prof. Wm, James has this to say along the samoj line: "Refuse to express a passion and it die&i Count ten before venting your anger and its occasloi seems ridiculous. Whistling to keep up coar-j age is no mere figure of speech. On the other hand] Bit all day in a moping posture, sigh, and reply I everything with a dismal voice, and your melancholy lingers. There is no more valuable precept in moral education than this, as all of us who have experl-i eneed know : If we wish to conquer undesirable em tional tendencies in ourselves we must assiduoueiy,,! and in the first instance cold-bloodedly, go throug the outward movements of those contrary disposi-i] tions which we wish to cultivate. Smooth the broWjl brighten the eye, contract the dorsal rather than t ventral aspect of the frame, and speak in a majoi key, pass the genial compliment and your heart mns^ indeed be frigid if it does not gradually thaw.*' Aren't those words fine! Read them over several times so as to be sure to grasp their full meaning I If you wish to cultivate a quality in which you an deficient, you must thini about it, dream about i , concentrate upon it— live it out in your thoughts i a "day-dream" or "mental picture" — hold the vlaO' alized mental image of it always with you — and lasf^ MENTAL ARCHITECTUEE 399 and equally as important, if not more so, act out the physical manifestations of it— play the part out. Aet your part, earnestly, ardently, constantly, eagerly, steadily. On the other hand, if you wish to repress a quality, the hest way to do it is to cultivate the op- posite quality, and the undesirable quality will be "crowded out." If you wish to get rid of darkness in a room, you don't have to shovel it out— just open the windows and "let a little sunshine in." Prof. James has told you the same thing in the quotation given a few moments ago. It is psycholog- ical law. Kill out the negative by cultivating the pos- itive. That's the rule I But don't forget lo act out the part! What is called auto-suggestion, or self-suggestion, is one of the most active agencies employed in Mind Building. Auto-suggestion covers all the various forms of affirmations, denials, statements, etc., em- ployed by the several "New Thought" schools, and is the underlying principle of all forms of "self- impression." "Self -impression" would be a better name than any of these terms, for it described the process exactly. One "impresses" his mind with certain ideas, suggestions, feelings and mental states. There is a dual aspect of mind which enables one to play two parts at the same time, viz., (!) the part of teacher or master, and (2) the part of scholar or pupil. One may charge his mind with the task of waking him up at a certain time in the morning— and he wakes up. Or he may charge his mind to remem 400 MIND-POWER ber a certain tbing— and he remembers it. This form of self-mastery may be carried to great lengths, and j one may bid his mind collect data regarding certainij subjects, from amidst its heterogeneous collection oM mental odds and ends of knowledge; and then bid iffl combine the information into a systematic form-<fl and the mind will so act and the combined informal tion will be at hand when needed. I find myself dcS ing this, almost unconsciously, when I start to writfl a book— fact after fact and illustrations appearii^H at their proper time and place. The field of self-ipg^ pression has just had its outer edges explored — thexfl is a great region of mentation here awaiting soi^9 of you. fl And so, this auto-suggestion is a case of "says™ to myself, says I." And the queer thing is that if yfilM will impress your mind sufficiently, strongly, aofl with sufficient repetition, you will find it taking tlaB impression and acting upon it. Eepetition is a greifl thing in auto-suggeston. Tou remember the case ^H the man who told a certain lie so often that he got i^| actually believe it himself— repeated au to-suggestiwB works along the same psychological lines. HearillH a thing impressed upon it sufficiently often, it tak^H it as a fact, and proceeds to act it out according^H Constant affirmation and statement, made to ono^l self, will manifest in actual conditions. ^M Many a person has changed his whole physical mJB mental condition by a careful, persistent course ^| auto-suggestion. Of course, if one combines tSB MENTAL AECHITECTUKE 401 mental image, or visualization process with the auto- suggestion, he will obtain a doubly efficacious result. Andjif, in addition to these two, he will practice act- ing out the part along physical lines, he will reap a ten-fold harvest of results. These three forms com- bined, employed and persisted in, will work miracles in any one. For instance, if one suffers from fear in meeting other persons— an abnormal timidity or bashfulness, commonly called "self-consciousness" —the first thing for him to do, is to brace himself with constant affirmations or auto-suggestions of "fearlessness"; then he should visualize himself as absolutely fearless; then he should endeavor to reproduce the physical appearance and out- ward demeanor (an acting out of the part) of the fearless man. And thus will he gradually develop into that which he desires. His ideal becomes real — his dream a fact— his feelings actions— his actions feelings. And this rule and example will hold good along the whole line of personal qualities or charac- teristics. All come under the rule— the same prin- ciple works in all cases. Get the principle and you have the secret of the whole thing. But here I am going to suggest a little variation along the lines of auto-suggestion, which I have found to act admirably in this class of cases. The or- dinary auto-suggestion, or affinnation works along these lines, viz., one affirms or suggests to himself something like this: "I am fearless— I fear nothing —I am courageous— I am filled with confidence, " etc., 402 MIND-POWEB etc. Now this in flue — no one who knows anyl about the subject will dispute the fact that j "holding the thought" that "I am fearless," ' filled with courage, and will manifest thfi qualiti that he is claiming for himself. It is the old tried a oft-taught plan of affirmation or auto-suggestion t has worked wonders for so many people. And 1 1 tively advise you to follow this plan of "hold the thought," and making the affirmations or c suggestions in the first person, when you are "j ing into action." As a. "bracer" it is unexeelloj But there is something else not so old— and here | Yon will Bee in the previous chapter, entitlq "Healing Methods," {in that part devoted to seU healing) I tell you to imagine yourself as "Joq Smith," or whatever your name may be — that is, i a separate person, and then to "treat" him as sm — just as you would a patient. Weil, this plan all works admirably in cases of character building- 1 auto-suggestion. While the "I am," etc., pla good as a bracer, and when going into action, this last mentioned plan of mine operates far bett when it comes down to steady "treatment" of t self for mental failings ; weaknesses and chara building. Just try both plans yourself and s am not right— but practice my plan a little until j acquire the "knack" before finally deciding I matter. Here is how it works in practice. Suppose you wish to cultivate fearlessuees in plsi MENTAL ABCHITECTUEE 403 of the fear-thought that has bothered you so much. Well, in addition to the meatal image of visualiza- tion and the never-to-be-forgotten acting out the part, you wish to try auto-suggestion. The old way, you remember, was to claim to yourself, "I am fear- leas," etc. Now my new way of "treating'* yourself is to imagine that you are "treating" some other person for the same trouble. Sit down and give a regular treatment. Imagine yourself as sitting be- fore your personality— the central mind giving a treatment to the "John Smith" part of you — the in- dividual "treating" the personality. The individ- ual (that's you) says to the personality of "John Smith"; "Here, John Smith, you must brace up and do better. You are fearless, fearless, fearless 1 1 tell you, you are fearless! You are courageous, and brave, and bold! You are confident and self- reliant! You fear nothing! You are filled with strong, positive Mind-Power, and you are going to manifest it— you are going to grow more and more positive every day! You are positive this minute- do you hear mel Positive this very minutel You are positive, fearless, confident and self-reliant right now, and you will grow more and more so every day. Remember now, you are positive, positive, pos- itive—fearless, fearless, feai'lessl" etc., etc., etc You will find that by this plan you will be able to fairly pour in the positive suggestions to "the John Smith part of you," and the latter will take Shem with the same effect as if there were two per- 404 MIND-POWEK sons instead of one. And there are two persons, cording to the occult teachings— the individual i the personality. This plan will afford a welcome \ ation to the monotonons "I am this and I ara t methods which have caused so many onee-ai followers of the "New Thought" to throw up 1 whole matter in disgust. This wholesale "I am i and that" business has tired many a good soul i thereby let go just when in sight of attainment, such aud to all others I would say; "Try this l plan!" Leam to actually "treat yourself" by t I method and you will he surprised at the rapid pri ^^^^^ ress you will make as compared with the old pti ^^^^1 But don't forget to impress upon the "John Smin ^^^■^ part of you that he must hold the mental image or ^ W ualization; and that he must start right in to ( I the part! Don't let him get away from thia- ■ upon it— cross-examine bini about it before I treatment and hammer it into him hard. For j ^^^^ colored brother would say, ' ' He sure needs 'em a ^^^H to cany him through. ^^^V Now, please experiment with this method on 3 ^^^^ self and find out its wonderful possibiliiies by ; I own experience, Don 't rest with my say-so, but j ^^^^ it for yourself. When once you have found out j ^^^H what this method will do for you you will wonder d ^^^H you had never thought of it before. You will < ^^^^ vate a sense of individuality which will recogt H personality as a plastic something that < I moulded and shaped at your will by this * MENTAL AKCHITECTUEE 405 ment." And, best of all, you will learn to know that the individual is you, and you are the individual and that the personality is merely something that "be- longs to you." When you have reached this stage you will have called to your hand the forces of the great Mind-Power and will indeed have a right to call yourself "positive" and an "active center of power" in the great Ocean of Mind-Power. And all this will have been brought about by this new plan of "Says I to myself, says I." Is it not "worth while?" Then start in to "make yourself over aa you will 1 ' ' CHAPTEE XXVnL MAKING OVEB ONESELF. Now comes the qaestion "In what respect i f make myself over!" And this is a question t cannot answer for you, because each one of yoflj would have to be answered differently, and I wonliB have to understand the requirements of each pai ticular case before I could so answer. But, i all, each and every man or woman who studies theaf chapters has a very good idea of his or her particular strong or weak points of character. Each one i just about what qualities need to be strengthei and built up, and just which ones need to he : strained. Every person knows his short core in the lines of personal qualities or character, he or she has been forced to this knowledge by coir in contact with the world. If you are consideris the question of character architecture in your ow case, I would advise a strict self-examination t pencil and paper, in which you must set down 1 degree of development of each particular qualit without fear or favor toward yourself. When ; have done this you will know just how to proe« You will have given yourself a mental diagnosis. herewith give you a general list of qualities, etc., t an aid in this work of self-examination as a basis ^ ISA MAKING OVER ONESELF 407 mental architecture. In using it ask yourself the question: "What degree of this quality do I pos- sess?" And answer the question "on honor." Below I give you a list of the "faculties" usually given in works on phrenology, which will aid you very materially in preparing your report on your- self. Each faculty relates to some quality of char- acter possessed by you, and regarding which you are asking yourself the question mentioned above: Sexuality. Friendship. Love of Life. hyaieal Appetites. lautiousness. "irmness. IFaith. genuity. dtation. nse of Shape, s of Color, ^ense of Locality. lisical Taste, Jomparison. domestic Qualities. forve of Places. jSghting Qualities. Acquisitiveness. Love of Praise. Integrity. Veneration. Ideality. Mirthfulness. Sense of Size. Sense of Order. Memory, Judging Human Nature, Parental Love. Stick-to-it-iveness. Determination, Secretiveness. Self Esteem. Hope. Sympathy. Sublimity. Observation. Sense of Weight. Sense of Number. Sense of Time. Originality. 408 MIND-POWEK Every one of the above mentioned facnltios - qualities may be increased or decreased by the prai tice of the methods given in this lesson. Auto-snj gestion, visnalization and actiog-out'the-part— thj triple method of character architecture will enab] anyone to "make himself over" in any one or moj of the above qualities. You wiU, of course, { remember that the methods named act in the dira tion of stimulating the growth of the brain-cells i the particular centers, areas and regions in w the particular faculty or quality is manifested, immediate cause of the growth of the brain-eel the desire of the individual manifesting itself alonj physical lines ; coupled with that law of Nature whit^ causes increased physical or mental growth in, ; eordance with necessity or need. The earnest t sire, heightened by visualization and auto-suggestio! stimulates the brain centers manifesting the desirej qualities, and by so doing causes a more rapid pH duction of new cells and the greater developmea of the existing ones. Then the acting-out-the-pa with its physical manifestations, creates a direct c mand upon the brain for means of manifestation, . the brain responds by growing additional * meet the demand. There is in Nature a law that tends to famisb i the organism that whicb is needed for its devi ment and necessities. The horse has evolved ] a three-toed animal into a one-toed one, in respa MAKING OVER ONEyjliLF 4U!> to the demands of its environments, and the neces- t'ities of its life. Birds of prey have claws and beaks adapted to their needs and wants; beasts of prey have great teeth, claws and shape of body adapted to their wants and necessities— and so it is all through Nature. But remember this, that animals constant- ly change as their environments alter, for Nature al- ways is ready to supply that which is demanded by the necessities of the organism. Evolution gives us many convincing illustrations of this fact, which I regret not being able to mention here. If a part of the body is brought into unaccustomed use, it becomes tired at first and then Nature sends to its relief increased nutrition and development so that in time it can meet the new requirements with ease. And so it is in this matter of the brain-cells. Make a demand upon Nature for increased power along certain lines and she responds. And the way to make the demand for new brain-cells in order to manifest certain qualities to a higher degree is to follow the methods given you herein — auto-sugges- tion; visualization and acting-out-the-part. I trust that you now understand not only the "bow" of this subject, but also the "why" of it. It is impossible in the space of a few chapters to give detailed instruction regarding the development of each separate faculty of the mind. That would require a good sized book by itself. But I have given you the general principles and directions and you 410 MIND-POWEE Bhoald be able to work out the rest of the j yourself. I shall, however, give you special dii tions for the development of the particular (j most necessary to the dynamic individual mentiom in the chapters on personal in6uenee. Before ] eeeding to this last mentioned phase of the w< however, I wish to say that not only may one "m himself over" by the methods given, but he i "make over" other people by the same methods i plied in the forms of suggestive treatment. particularly true in the case of children, whose c acters are extremely plastic, and who yield reai to constructive shaping and guidance. It is necessary for me to go into this matter in detaj for in my chapters on "Mental Suggestion" "Mental Therapeutics," as well as in the pres lesson, I give the principles of such treatment j the methods of applying the same. I trust that 3 have paid sufficient attention to what has been tau] to be able to understand and apply this form of snj gestive treatment to others. "What I have said a treating the "John Smith" part of you is true t you are actually treating others. The same ] ciples apply. In addition to these yon may advj tageously use treatments by mentative currena ■which will tend to induce in the mind of the < person the desired mental state, whicli in time i result in the production of the new brain-cells i to ' ' establish ' ' the mental character-cure. In t MAKING OVER ONESELF mg others for a change of character, proceed ex- actly a6 you would in treating them for a physical ailment— the principle is the same, for the trouble arises from a similar underlying cause. In both cases you are treating mind, remember. And now to the building up of the dynamic individ- ual. We have seen what he was like, and now we must try to "make ourselves over" to resemble him. The methods given in the present chapter, and the one immediately following it apply to this work, of course. Let us now form a mental picture of the dynamic individual and see what qualities he pos- sesses, and then learn how to develop and cultivate those qualities. Our dynamic individual is poBseased of a strong desire. He knows how to "want" a thing the right way. No mere "wishing" or "sighing" for a thing —when he wants a thing he wants it We all think that we want things, hut the majority only want them in a half-hearted way. The 3ame of desire hums feebly and gives little light or heat. One of the first things you will notice in coming in personal contact with the men "who do things" in the world is that they are filled with that intense, eager, longing, crav- ing, hungry, ravenous desire that urges them on to mighty effort and achievement— which makes them demand things instead of begging for them. Even among the animals that we speak of as "strong" and "masterful," you will find that this 412 MIND-POWER desire quality is strong, so much so that it i presses itself ia their every movement and tion. And on the other hand, you will find a !a^ of that same quality in the species of animals than are preyed upon, hunted and devoured by the othersJ This class of weak-desired animals impress us ; "weak" and "spiritless," And so it is with mei Ko one ever did anjiihing or got anything unless 1 was filled with a strong, hungry desire for that thin If a man feels a hunger for attainment, just as 1 feels a hunger for his meals, he will make might| efforts to satisfy that hunger. Just think of wh you would do to satisfy a craving hunger! Weflj these men feel the same way about other things i which they are hungry. Desire is a form of himgi And the hungrier a man is for a thing the more ] sire-Force will he manifest and the greater efifol will he make to get that thing. People have fallen into the habit of speaking aij thinking of "desire". as an unworthy, low, animi^ selfish quality — but they are seeing only a half tri^ while thinking that they are seeing the whole th: They seek to escape by speaking of "high desired "aspiration," "ambition," "zeal," "ardoi^ "love," and a number of similar tenns— but th^ things are merely our old friend ' ' desire ' ' with a i name. Let me give you a few words used in sp ing of some form of desire. Here they are : Des^ wish, want, need, exigency, mind, inclination, leanioj bent, animus, partiality, penchant, predilectira MAKING OVER ONESELF propensity, willingness, liking, love, fondness, relish, longing, hankering, solicitude, anxiety, yearning, coveting, aspiration, ambition, eagerness, zeal, ardor, appetite, appetency, hunger, thirst, keenness, long- ing, craving, etc., etc. Quite a formidable list! The truth is that all of the "feelings" that in- cite one to action of any kind or sort, are forms of desire. "Without desire one would cease absolutely from action. Preceding every action there must be desire, either conscious or unconscious. Even those people "who make a virtue of renunciation of desire, and who claim to have "conquered desire abso- lutely," are acting in response to a more subtle form of desire. How is this, you ask! Well, simply be- cause they are carrying out a desire not to desire certain other things. Desire is at the bottom of the renunciation, just as it is at the bottom of the very desires they wish to renounce. This must be so al- ways, for desire is a fundamental natural law, and is always manifest. Not only in the doing of things is desire manifest, but also in the refraining from doing the same things. One man desires to smoke —another desires not to do so. Desire in both cases ! "Lack of desire" to do a cer-tain thing simply means a desire to pursue an opposite course of conduct and action. And so it goes— desire is manifest in every nction and refraining from action — so long as ono has the capacity for action. Nothing has ever been done, created, or manifested without desire. The very atoms manifest desire in their combinations. 414 MIND-POWER And 80, all the universe has been built up throng the operation of the law of desire, and the la' will— both of which are phases of the one law. Fire underlies all life— it rests in the very heart i life itself. And the greater the manifestation vitality, the greater the force of desire. But reraember always, that there are ivise c and univise desires. And the dynamic Lndividu learns to distinguish between the wise and the i wise desires — between the "good" and the "bad ones- and governs himself accordingly. He esa ines his desires and picking out the *'good and v ones he discards the "bad and unwise" ones- he proceeds to develop and build up the ones he 1 selected. And how does our dynamic individual develop 1 desire when desire in itself is not a separate i faculty, hut, instead, manifests through and in ea faculty? He proceeds to hold up to it the mental i age of the things to be desired, and the Desire-Pore within him flows forth, and manifests more more energy according to the stimulus. Des Force is always inherent in the person just a Will-Power, but both need an incentive to action-^ stimulus to manifestation. It is a well-known I of psychology that desire flows out and manifests Belf in response to an object. This object of desii Ib always something that afEords pleasure, aatisfa tion or content to the individual, or else that ^ rid him of pain, discontent, discomfort, or dissa^ MAKING OVEK ONESELF 415 taction, either immediate or remote in both instances, Hnd sometimes indirectly; that is, the pleasure or pain may be occasioned by the pleasure or pain, im- mediate or remote, of some other person in which the original person is interested. The clearer the mental image of the object of de- sire, the greater will be the degree of desire mani- fested, all other things being equal. A child may be filled with discontent— it wants something, but does not know what it wants. Then the child thinks of "toys"— and it begins to want still harder. Then it sees a toy— and then its want becomes very intense. One may feel hungry in a degree, but when he sees some particular object of taste, the himger becomes far more intense. And so it follows that if one will keep on presenting to his desire the suggestion and mental image of the object, then will the desire be- gin to burn more fiercely and strongly and may be cultivated to almost any degree. You know how one may awaken desire in another this way, by means of buggestion, and by presenting the mental image of the object, in conversation, etc.— how many of us know to our cost how the "sight" of an unthought of thing makes us begin to "hanker" after it and long for it I The book agent plays upon this trait of character in us— and so does the department store man on bargain days and by his window displays. You will remember what I told you in the chapters on suggestion, about the steps in "salesmanship," the important point being to "arouse desire" in the MIND-POWER customer — and what I said about the same thing x the case of the advertiser. This idea underlies all forms of suggestive influence and is manifest in the lives of every one of us, every day of our lives. And if this be so, can you not see that by auto-suggestion you may arouse the same degree of desire in your- selves that others arouse in you and you in others? The threefold method— auto-suggestion, visual- ization and acting- out-t he-part, will develop desire in you. In auto-suggestion, along these lines, you must "treat" yourself for desire. Tell the "John Smith" part of you bow much he desires this or that— how much he aspires to this or that— how strong is his ambition for this and that, etc. Then visualize the object, that is the thing desired, until you can see it plainly and clearly. See yourself in possession of it, or as having attained it. Keep this mental image always with you, for it will act powerfully in arous- ing your Desire-Force. Then act-out the idea of gaining headway and moving on to the possession or attainment. Cultivate the outward actions and de- meanor of the man who has "arrived." If yoa are after success, then aet-out the part of the success- ful man. You need not be told tohi/, after what I have said. In conclusion, I will again remind you that the objects of this development of desire are, (1) that your will may be called into play, and (2) that yonr Desire-Force may be set into activity and thus begin in its " drawing, " " attracting ' ' work. Read what I MAKING OVER ONESELF 417 have said about Desire-Force in the previous chap- ters, Now, do not dismiss this part of the subject lightly. It is most important to you. Desire and will are the two phases of Mind-Power, and you must develop both of them in order to get the best results. Keep the flame of right desire ever burning brightly. Feed its lamp with the ideas of the objects of desire by auto-suggestion, visualization and acting-out. Kemember my parting words about desire : The first thing in the direction of doing things, or getting things, is to want the things hard enough! A strong, ardent, been desire will clear away the undergi"owth ■of the path of success. It will attract you to the people and things needed for its satisfaction, and ■will attract to you the people, things, circumstances, -environments, etc., needed for its satisfaction. De- sire is the soul of the law of attraction. ,* And now let us consider the second attribute of our dynamic individual. It is will-power. Our man is an example of living will. He is filled with the force of action. He is determined. He keeps hia will on an object just as a machinist keeps his chisel en the hard metal, letting it bite in deeper and deeper until the desired impression and end is obtained. I have told you how the will is always set into oper- ution by the urge of desire. When you develop and cultivate desire you are doing much to cultivate Will- Power, So I need not repeat this part of the process — I have just told it to you under the head of desire. But there is another feature about the use of will ilS MIND-POWER wliich I must oal] to your attention. It is the fea^ of its determined application and manifestation,' is all very well to have a strong will, but it will a^ you nothing unless you learn how to apply it. The secret of the resolute will lies in determinatl and persistency. And the first thing to be acqu: is the capacity for attention. Writers on psycho^ will tell you that a "tenacious attention is one ( strongest factors of a cultivated wiU." That ii you must acquire tenacity of attention. You i acquire the art of patiently dwelling upon a 1 until you accomplish your purpose. You must 1 to do things thoroughly and completely. You i learn to concentrate your will upon a thing ai allow it to be distracted or to wander off until 3 what you set out to do. You must cultivate stabij decision, perseverance, tenacity and stiek-to-i nesa. And you can do a!l of these things by 1 triple method given in these chapters. Each qna is capable of cultivation and development in J same way. You can do these things "if yom hard eno'ugh." First stir up your desire to am plish the task — then will that you shall do it— do it. Thousands of others have done these ihii and so may you if you are an individual and are n mere personal shadow. I shall now give yon i advice regarding will-development, to whieli 1 you to pay close attention. The first obstacle to he overcome in the "" cultivating Will-Power is to overcome the old 1 MAKING OVER ONPiSELF 419 of weak will, and to replace them by new habits of strong will. This question of babit is a mo8t impor- tant one, for we are all more or less slaves to babit. Habit is second nature which is often much stronger than our ordinary natural impulses. In order to de- velop the dominant will you must cultivate some new habits. And of these things I shall now speak. The following rules for the development of new habits will prove of great benefit to yon, if you will study them carefully and then put them into practice. Rule 1. Get control of your physical channels of expression and master the physical expression con- nected with the mental state you are trying to de- velop. For instance, if you are trying to develop your will along the lines of self-reliance, confidenee, fearlessness, etc., the first thing for you to do is to get a perfect control of the muscle s by which the physical manifestations or expressions of those feelings are &hown. Get control of the muscles of your shoulders that you may throw them back manfully. Look out for the stooping attitude of lack of confidence. Then get control of the muscles by which you hold your bead up, with eyes front, gazing the world fearlessly in the face. Get control of the muscles of the legs by which you will be enabled to walk firmly as the pos- itive man should. Get control of the vocal organs, hy which you may speak in tlie resonant, vibrant tones which compel attention and inspire respect. Get yourself well in band physically in order to man- ifest these outward forms of will, and you will clear 420 MIND-POWER a patb for the Miod-Power to manifest itself —and will make the work of tbe will much easier. But it takes will to do these things and you must be pre- pared to use it. Keep your attention on these oat- ward forms of expression until you acquire the habit and make it " second-nature. " Rule 2. Learn to concentrate. By so doing you will be able to focus your will upon any object de- sired, and thus get tbe greatest effect. In using tbe will endeavor to make it "one-pointed" as the orientals say. That is, have for tbe object of the will some one main object and then focus tbe will firmly upon that object. Cast from your mind all ideas and thoughts not in liarmony with tlie one idea upon wliich you are concentrating your will. In the beginning it will be well to avoid all persons, environ- , ments, etc., calculated to distract you from the main idea. But after a bit you will be able to interpose a resistance to these distracting things and banish them from you by a mental command. While ac- quiring will in this way you will find that it often takes even more will to turn away from these oat- side objects than to follow your main object. You must learn to master these temptations even if in so doing you find it necessary to act like Ulysses who made his companions stop up their ears with wax lest they be fascinated by the song of tbe Sirens. Rule 3. In acquiring a will-habit use every oo- ^asion in order to repeat the effort of the will along tbe lines of the habit. Give your will much exercise. MAKING OVER ONESELF 421 Every time you do a certain thing the easier does It become to repeat it, for the habit becomes more firmly established. Habit is a form of "impression," and the oftener you sink the die of the will into the ■wax of the mind, the deeper is the impression. Exer- cise, exercise, exercise— practice, practice, practice. Bule 4. The greatest struggle is at the beginning of the practice or formation of a new will-habit. Here one has to fight with all his might — but the first battle well won, the after-fights moderate and finally become mere skirmishes. Hence it behooves one to gird on his armor firmly and grasp his sword with strength at this first fight. Let one stop smoking or drinking, for instance, and he will find that three- quarters of the entire struggle is condensed in the fight of the first week if not the first day. Remember the case of Kip van Winkle with his ' ' well, this glass don't count"— he never could get started. And, be- ware of a single slip at the start, for such slips weaken one mere than he can regain in a whole day of success. After having made up your will to ae- Qiiire a habit, you must not allow a single slip for this reason, A well-known writer on the subject has compared these slips to a ball of cord which one is endeavoring to wind— each drop of the ball unwinds more than many windings can replace. BaiIb 5. Endeavor to fix the habit as a strong men- tal impression by any and every means that suggest themselves to you. For when this habit becomes firmly impressed upon your mind you will find it 422 MIND POWER most "natural" and easy to act along its lir most difficult to break away from it or to act < trary to it. You are building "second-nature," member. Rule 6. "Look before you leap," and "Be silj you're right, then go ahead." Always take i look at a thing before plunging in. Give it the I fit of your judgniect and do not be carried awa^'J the judgment of others. Use your re judgment — that's why you have them. Bat, aS once having decided a thing is "right" for you ta^ then you must learn to "go ahead" to the fin^ Learn to "place your hand upon the plow and I^ not backirard." Learn to control your WiU-Poii and do not let it leap into action until you are suiS is right to do so. And all of this means rigid i control and mastery of one's moods as well as oiM passions and emotions. Guard yourself agaa yourself. And also guard your desire from the ii£ puces of others, for through your desires your \ called into action. Children, savages and undeveloped individoj manifest little or no mastery over their desires 1 allow themselves to be affected by every little -^m from wiihin or without and then let their will fly % action in response thereto. The individual leamj ' 'inhibit' * (that is to " check, restrain, hold back, i bid, prohibit," etc.) emotional states and feeliil By so doing he will hold his Will-Power under % trol for use when it is advisable. Pull the trig MAEING OVER ONESELF 423 your "Will-Power yourself after yon have taken delib- erate aim and at some object worth while. Do not allow others to pull it for you nor do you, yourself, pull it in response to a whim, a dare, an unrestrained feeling. A useful rule along these lines is given by Prof. Hoffding, who says: "Even if we cannot pre- vent a feeling from arising, we may possibly prevent it from spreading, hy inhibiting the organic move- mentwhich accompanies it, the indulgence in which augments it." In other words, restrain the physi- cal action and the feeling dies. This idea of physi- cal expression and "acting-out" runs shoulder to fchonlder with the idea of mental states all through the subject of psychology. Rule 7. Keep the mind filled with mental pictures of the thing which you wish to become a habit, for by so doing you are constantly adding oil to the flame of desire — and desire is the cause of the manifestation of will. The feminine desire asks, and the masculine win seeks to gratify the request of his mate in any direction indicated by her. Therefore, the more she sees what she wants the more she asks— and the more she asJis the more eager does he become to please her. The apple was shown Eve, then she told Adam, it tvas good and asked him to take a bite, and then Adam ate and the mischief was done. But this inle works for good as well as for bad~"it's a poor rale that won't work both ways." But the principle IS the same in both good and evil eases. Rule 8. Act out the habit as often as possible, and 42i MIND-POWEE as well as possible. Learn to go through the motions until the part becomes perfect and easily perforaied. I needn't tell you students the reason for this again —it should be an old story with you by this time. Rule 9. Practice doing disagreeable things. This will strengthen the will wonderfully, for reasons that should be apparent to every student. What would be the condition of your muscles if you never had to use them ? And what will be the condition of your will if you never have to exercise it by doing something unpleasant or disagreeable! Anyone, even the weakest, can do a thing along tiie lines of non-resistance— pleasant, agreeable things, without opposition or resistance. But it takes a true man or woman— a true individaal— to do things against re- sistance from without or from within. And when one has learned to master himself, that is his own moods and feelings — then he is able to master the outside world. And not until then, either I There- fore often set yourself an unpleasant or disagree- able task to perform, for by so doing you acquire mental muscle, which is but another name for will. Prof. James, the eminent psychologist, advises hij readers to systematically exercise themselves in the direction of doing some particular things for no other reason than that they would rather not do it. Even if the task be nothing more than rising and giving up a seat in a street-car 7i'hen you want to retain it very much indeed. Prof. James compares this exercise to the paying the premiums on insur- MAKING OVEE ONESELF 425 anee on one's property— one is laj-ing up reserve re- sources for a day of need. He telis us that a man who trains himself in this way can be counted upon in any emergency— fee may connt on himself to man- ifest Will-Power. As Prof. Halleek says, in speak- ing of such a man: "While another would be still crying over spilt milk, the possessor of such a will has already begnn to milk another cow." The men who have attained great success have, in nearly every case, so trained their wills that they can un- dertake a difficult or disagreeable task with a mini- mum of effort. Theif have acquired the habit. When one learns to say "Yes! or Nol" to himself, he can say "yes!" or "no!" to others with the greatest force. Rule 10. Cultivate fixity of purpose. The man of strong will must learn to see an object ahead of him and then to "want it bard enough," and then to fix his will upon it and hold it there, while he moves to it in as straight a line as possible. But no matter how he may have to swerve from his straight line of approach, by unforeseen obstacles, nor how many times he may stumble, he still always remembers what he is a/^er— and he keeps after it. The shift- ing, changeable, weathercock sort of men manifest but little will, and accomplish little or nothing. The saccessful men are those who know ivhat they wa/nt and never forget it. It may take them some time to find out just what they do want, but when once they find it out they hold firmly to it to the end with an in- 426 MIND-POWEB vincible determination and unswerving purpose— and these qualities always win in the long run, if for no other reason than because so few possess them and the majority of men get tired of the struggle and drop out of the race. It's the fellow with the ' ' stay- ing qualities ' ' that pulls through in the end no mat- ter how much of a start the others may have had on him in the beginning. Concentrate and cultivate ' ' stick-to-it-iveness. ' ' CHAPTER XXIX. MIND-BUILDING. I shall now briefly run over the mental faculties most neeesBary to be developed by the man who wishes to gain the dynamic qualities. I shall add a few words of advice regarding the development of each of the said faculties. I. Continuity. This faculty has been so named by the phrenologists, and defined as the faculty that enables a man to '* stick- to-it" until it is done— that gives him patience to complete his task— that gives him stability. Its lack makes a man restless; changeable; shifting; disconnected; scattered; un- stable ; and unreliable. To cultivate this faculty follow the three-fold method, in the direction of con- centrating, dwelling upon, and sticking to a matter cnee undertaken; doing thorough work; and fighting to make a change, n. Vitality. This faculty is defined by phre- nologists as the one that makes a person tenacious of life ; and which causes him to fight off death, sick- ness, or weakness. This is a necessary faculty for the dynamic individual to develop, for by so doing he not only becomes stronger, but also imparts a certain quality of strength and resistance to his per- 427 428 MIND-POWER k Bonality tLat will be felt by others. As an examfl contrast the "fight for life" in an animal of the i family, and then the lack of it in a sheep or rabbiJ then think which of them is more respected and I garded in the world of animals. By all means ( tivate that resolute fight for life, that is manift by all strong creatures. Try the three-fold metl along the lines of holding on to life, and manifesti the "will to live." m. CoMBATiVENESS, This phrenological faetii manifests in the direction of resistance ; oppositifi conrage ; boldness ; def ensiveness ; defiance ; spii eelf-protection ; determination; "let me "get-out-of-my-way"; etc. It goes with all strt characters. It is true that its perversion rendj one a nuisance and a quarrelsome and brawling p 6on, and such state is to be avoided. But its absffl makes of one "a human door-mat," and the woi proceeds to wipe its feet on him. The dynamic j dividual must have this faculty well-c also well-controlled. It must be the case "soft voice and the big stick," of which we heard so much of late. The world loves the 1 man, and hates a coward. And this means mej bravery, and mental cowardice, principally, in t days of mental struggle. By all means '. stand up like a man, and, looking the world 1 and calmly in the face, say in the words of t verse: "Come one-, come a\U this rock i from its firm base, aa soou a.a \.'''' ^otf^^ of 1 : shall I MrND^BUILDING 429 brawler, but don't be a weakling. Avoid the rabbit and sheep mental attitude. Develop this faculty by the three-fold method, along the lines of debate; ar- gument; mental conflict; mental resistance; assert- ing your individuality; insisting upon your rights; self-confidence; self-assertion; and "I Can and I WUl." IV. Destkuctivenebs. This name is not well- chosen, in my opinion, by the phrenologists, but I shall not attempt to change it here. It is used by thera to indicate the faculty that manifests in : De- termination to overcome obstacles; beating down resistance; brushing away barriers; making head- way; pushing to the front; clearing away under- brush; pushing through the crowd; holding your own; etc. Its perversion renders one a hated man, and one who is not sufficiently regardful of the rights of others, and whom it becomes the duty of society to restrain. But, still it is a quality that is needed by the dynamic individual, lest he allow himself to be walked over with impunity ; outraged ; and treated with contempt by the world; or which will cause him to be pushed aside and imposed upon. Its absence also causes one to be overcome with im- potence when obstacles confront him, or resistance shows itself. Its absence causes one to be a whining "1 can't" person; and also causes one to be too much subject to precedents, pretended authority, etc., and kills off his originality. To develop this fac- nJtj, use the threefold metiioi a\oTi^ 'Cafe \^s.a■s. "^V 1 phn 430 MIND-POWER breaking new mental ground ; striking out into i paths ; breaking down barriers ; overcoming atraint; holding your own; pushing to the fr(S even if you have to elbow the crowd, etc. V. Acquisitiveness. This term is used by j nologists to indicate that faculty which manifests in: Getting; acquiring; possessing; drawing to oneself; ohtaining and securing desired things, etc. It may be perverted into miserliness; peuuriousness; mean- ness; hoggishness, etc., hut nevertheless its proper use and development is necessary. Unless one has a desire to have and'hold, he will not be apt to make any progress in the world. One must want to get things, before he will act energetically. And so far as money is concerned, while I freely admit the evils of an extreme greed and desire in this respect, yet I am just as fully convinced that a man must possess a certain amount of this "money- wanting" quality in order to make him an active center of force. For when one wants money, he really wants the things that money buys. Money stands for nearly all that is necessary for a man's well-being and sus- tenance. ' Money in itself is nothing— and a man is a fool who loves or seeks it for itself. But it is also a "symbol" of almost everything else, and without it he can get practically nothing else. So. just as I think it justifiable and proper for a plant to desire and seek, and draw to itself the sustenance of the soil, air, water, and sunlight, so do I think it proper, desirable and praisewoittis ioT a.-m.an.H.o '^°°'''° . "tflj MIND-BUILDING 431 insist upon drawing to himself the proper sustenance of Ufe— and money means just that, to the sane man, and nothing more. The people who decry this "desire for money," are principally those who either (1) have failed to accumulate money themselves, by reason of lacking the necessary qualities {the really unfortunate ones do not join in the condemnation of the desire) ; or (2) those who have inherited money of which they did not know the labor, excitement, or satisfaction of making for themselves, and who, therefore, grow righteously disgusted at the money which they did not have to use their heads or hands to acquire. These people are like those who take no exercise, and get indigestion at the sight of a good dinner ; while those who have worked well come to the dinner with a good appetite, and cannot understand the "sick- feeling" of the others. It is a law of Nature that makes both of these classes of people "sick" at the bight of that for which they have not worked ; or (3) that class of "parasites" who live by bard work of others, doing nothing themselves, and deeming them- selves far above those "muckers," or "money-grub- bers," who work, and toil and labor to support these ' ' parasites. ' ' People are all after moneff— every blessed moth- er's son and daughter of them — in one way or an- other. "What is the use of denying it. Some day we may have better economic conditions— I pray to God that we may — but until that t\mea.\Vol"\iavK>s.%\.^%s«i 432 MIND-POWEE the nimble dollar to the best of our ability. For S less a man does this thing, then shall he not eaj nor be clothed; nor have shelter; nor books; i mnsic; nor anything else that makes life worth livi for one who thinks and feels. Therefore I ffl| justified in saying to you: Develop a normal deg\ of acquisitiveness, if you wish to amount to anythj in the world's work. Develop it by the threefd method, along the lines of realization of what I means, and what it will do for you, in this stage! the world's economic evolution. But— Don't BeJ Hog! To be sure, "while you're getting, get all j can," but give the other fellow a chance. "Live s Let Live!" VI. Seceetiveness. This is the name given :1 the phrenologists to that faculty that manifests t policy; tact; concealment; self-repression j self-^ straint ; etc. Its perversion leads to deceit ; dou^ dealing; duplicity; lying; false-living, etc. Ba certain amount of it is necessary, lest one fall i the error of wearing- his-heart-on-his-sleeve; traj parent-simplicity; loose-raoutheduess; "blabbingS lacking ordinary prudence; indiscretion, etc. velop this faculty by the threefold method along 1 lines of tact; diplomacy; reticence; cautiousnei politeness; etc.. the main object being to aequireti faculty of keeping your own secrets ; keeping ym affairs to yourself; avoiding that "leakinesa" has ruined so many men— and women. Regard this— "and women," I would say that my basia MIND-BUILDING experience has taught me tliat in spite of the alleged "secret-telling" of women, it is true that the women stenographers in. an office are far less liable to dis- close their employers' secrets than are the men em- ployes. And then again, while a woman may have a tendency to "pass on a secret," still she knows how to keep certain secrets that concern herself, or the man she loves— or the child she loves— in a manner, and in ways that cause a man's hair to rise in be- wilderment. VII. Cautiousness. This faculty manifests in carefulness ; prudence ; watchfulness ; foresight ; judgment, etc. Perverted it leads to timidity, ir- resolution, etc. But a certain amount of it is neces- sarj'. One should learn to use judgment and reason —to "be sure he is right, before going ahead." If deficient in this quality, develop it by the threefold -■ method along the lines of eare, prudence, watchful- ness, thought, use of judgment, etc., and by "looking before you leap." If you have too much of it, re- strain by similiar methods, along the lines of bold- ness, daring; "don't worry"; take-a-risk-on-it, etc., end a general spirit of not crossing a bridge until jon come to it VIII. Appbobativeness. This faculty manifests in a desire for approval ; praise ; flattery ; fame ; show and ceremony connected with one's personality, etc. It is seen frequently in a perverted sense. Very few of us need to develop this quality— we have enough, or more than enough of it already. If you 434 MIND-POWEE wish to restrain this faculty, you may use the threi fold method along the lines of indifference to puS lie approval or opinion; "what-does-it-matter-ang way"? "they say; what do they say? let them say*] "do not worry ahont it— your friends will not caij and your enemies will persist anyway, so what's t use"? "what care I for the opinions of the crown anj-way?— they are 95 per cent fools at the best" etc., etc., etc. Learn to live your own life, and stf upon your own feet. Other people would like to ev*d "breathe" for you if you would let them— bat ss ' ' seat ' ' to them, and shake them off when they bothd you. You've got to live your own life, and ■ bother with the people who are always telling yd "you mustn't do it this way— do it aa I^say," wlia their own lives are glaring examples of the folly ( "their way." Pick out a right object^follow a right coursBti .and let the crowd mind its own business, if it willi and if it won't, forget it. You will find it rew enough to shower favors upon yon when yon finad succeed. And do not be deceived by its praise or Sag tery — the same people who are singing your praisfl to-day, will damn you to-morrow if occasion offeq They are throwing roses at you now — to-morrd they may throw rocks with equal grace and deligq Don't he a slave to the crowd or its opinions — maJfl yourself master of it, if you would rule it. It is man- aged through its selfish fears and interest, rather than through its love. It has a mean trick of tumii MIND-BUILDIN& 435] on tlie thing it loves, and tearing it to pieces, just as a I fomale-spider devours her mate. But when it fears I —well, then, if lets you alone. Not high spiritual ] teaching, perhaps — but a. bit of worldly wiadom. Shake off the crowd from your heels— you mind your own business, and tell it to do the same. And look it in the eye while you are telling it, too. It will un- derstand you, if you don't truckle to it. But never cringe to it— else it will rend you to pieces. , IX. Sblf-Esteem. This is the faculty of self- fespect; self-reliance; self-love, etc. Perverted it tyranny ; superciliousness ; imperiousness ; Buteur, and other forms of egotism carried to ex- premes. This quality is necessary to be developed, , iprmally. One must learn to respect himself; value -I Emselfj rely upon himself; love himself; hold ] [Bad high ; look the world in the face ; believe in him- [Bif; and take his own place in the world, without 1 ^Ise modesty, or shrinking. Develop it by the three- 1 fcld-method, along the lines of realizing just what J Bu are— a centre of energj-, power, and strength in \ he Universal Ocean of Mind-Power. Think of your- jelf in the word of Black Hawk, the Indian chieftain, i fcho said to Jackson: "I am a ManI" Be a "man J Bmong men," and insist upon the fact. Learn to J hy "I Am." Feel that back of and under you ia -] be great Ocean of Universal Mind-Power, and real-.' e that you are of and in this wonderful thing. I'Believe in yourself; love yourself; look out fori Burself. I tell you friends, / believe in you, every- I 436 MIND-POWEB one of yoa, for I know what you are and what yffl have in yon— and I want you to believe in yourselvgj 1 want yon to say "I" without being afraid. DonJ be afraid to "Assert the I." Don't be afraid to s^ "I." Say "I; I; I; I; I; I; I," until you 1 realize what a wonderful thing that "I" of you i after all. Eeeognize the "Ego" as a centre < power, and stop all this foolishness about being! "worm of tlie dust." Don't be "meek and humbla like Uriah Heep. On tlie contrary, stand up, wil head thrown back, looking the world straight in tq eyes, without fear, and say finnly and positively "I believe in Myself." You have heard it said thi "God helps those who help themselves"— and 1 does, unquestionably. But this is also true— believes in those who believe in themselves. And i does the world, because God has made it sol start in now, and say, early and often, "I believei Myself!" X. Firmness. This term does not have to be c fined— you all know what it means. It is the faeul of stability; fixity; decision; perseverance; tenacita manifestation of the determined will, Too much j it may make you mulish, and stubborn— but very fd of you ha\'e too much of it, along the right lines. YJ need to develop it by the threefold-method along i lines of "putting your hand to the plow, and lookia I not backward"; sticking to your original plans, ( ■ spite the talk of others; resisting tendencies to "sid track" you. This is the faculty that keeps the t MIND-BUILDING the task, like the chisel to -the metal, until the work is done. Be firm as a rocli against which beat the storms, but which yields not an inch, nor is it hurl a particle. Have a mind of your own, and bold to what you believe is right. See your object, and \ march straight to it, firm in your determination and purpose. By all means develop the faculty of firmness. XL Hope. This is the faculty of expectation, and anticipation. It gives us one of the three feat- ures of success— "Earnest Expectation." You must believe in your success and must " earnestly expect" it. Cultivate hope and "earnest expectation" by j all means. Be not a mere dreamer or visionairy, through excessive hope— but cultivate desire; then develop earnest expectation; then will to act. Each 1 of these features is necessary to the great three. Develop it by the threefold-method, along the lines i of "looking on the bright side," visualization; "looking aloft"; not worrying; and belief in the efficacy of earnest demand accompanied by earnest work. Visualization is tlie greatest incentive to ^ hope and earnest expectation. When you can see the thing done "in your mind's eye," you have started to build in earnest — the rest is a mere mat- ter of detail and work. XII. MiBTHFULNEss. This is the faculty of humor. By all means cultivate the sense of humor. It will save you from more follies and ridiculous , positions than anything else. And cultivate the cheerful spirit for it will make life easier for youj ^snd will lubricate the macliinery of work and OTHm rdeavor. It will also make friends for you, and willJ^ tend to remove the obataclea which the world throwsi in the way of people who are sour, disagreeable andjl "grouchy." Smile and the world smiles with you^ frown and you get a frown. Develop this facultB by all means, by the threefold-method, along ■ lines of humor, joy, cheerfulness. And, so, now I have called your attention to then faculties most prominent in the dynamic individual^ L;! have not spoken of his religious or m.oral faculties,'] ^'because these lessons are dealing with another parM of his make-up. But do not imagine that the qualU| ties named here have no connection with the ; ligious or mora! life. There is nothing that I havftj recoumiended here that will not apply as well to t minister as the business man— to the priest as we) as the salesman. The same mental qualities thiri make a bad man "great" and "strong" will malpi a good man "great" and "strong." Morals are OIB thing and degrees of strength another. Good me^ may be strong or weak; bad men may also be stronj or weak. And in the degree of "strength" will 1 ' the degree of influence, for good or evil, that a mai will manifest. With this in mind, I think that i would be a gi'eat thing for the world, if some ( were to distribute this book among the "good" of the world. The evil men have a knowledge of t subject, alre.idy. MTND-BriLDING 439 In closing this cliapter, let me remind you tbat these rneiiEal states, cultivated and developed as I have aliuwD you, will maaifest themselves in your ' outward manner and demeanor, as mental sugges- tions to those with whom you come in contact. The symbol will spring from the inner reality. And they will also manifest in the shape of currents of Desire- Force and "Will-Power, which will sweep far and wide, as well as near and close, influencing and af- fecting those within their field of induction. From these mental states will flow a strong stream of i power which will tend to "draw" to you that which I you demand and desire; and which will also tend j to "force and compel" the things that you so will, j You are a great centre of power, which radiates J from you continually. Realize this, and endeavor j to charge that force with the best qualities and prop- I ertiea, that while you are asserting your own indi- I vidual rights, you will still be doing something to- I ward the great work of strengthening the race, to j the end that it may produce more real individuals ready and capable of playing their part in the great ] drama of life on the stage of the universe. I This talk is along new lines and is radical in the 1 treatment given the subject. It is as "meat fori strong men, and not milk for babes." There is no | "bromide" or "pink-tea effects" in it. It is vital, j radical, and positive. Its message is "Strength." All truth that is worth while, renders its possessor stronger— if any teachings cannot stand this testiJ MIND-POWER discard them. Nature's Law is toward producing ■ strong individuals— fall in with it, and Nature will ' [.come to your aid, for then you will be one of its lehosen ones. Fall in witli the law of evolution— do [not run contrary to it. In the one case, you are [nourished, supported, strengthened and encouraged i -in the other, you are relentlessly crowded out byj I the operations of the law. If you get one-half the benefit from the study of 1 [this book that I obtained from the writing of it, lyou will be well repaid for your task. It is as a J '*live wire," charged with the elemental force, en- Lergy and truth about certain occult natural laws. It i ' (iontains a message for you, which I trust you will J heed- for you need it. If you are an individual, this t teaching is just what yon want. And the same is i I true if you are not one, but want to be one. But, if j r.you are a weakling, and prefer to remain so, instead 1 I. of rising and claiming your birthright of strength — j P your heritage of power ; then by all means remain J I as you are, and go on your own way. Leave these 1 I teachings for tlie otl(ers of your brethren, who will 1 [ not sell their birthright of power for the mess of -i |i pottage of negative content, and sheep-like passivity, ' I but who are boldly claiming their own, and demands Ling their rightful portion— these strong brothers 0?^ fyours, the individuals who are the coming inheritors^ I of the earth. I have tried to infuse my words with the Btrone vital energy, which I feel surging through me as ] MIND-BDILDING 441 1 i write out this message of strength to you. I trust that these words will act as a current of verbal J "electrons," each carrying its full charge of dy- namic power. And I trust that each word will act I to so fill you with the Mind-Power that gave them j birth, and will thus awaken in you a similar mental ] state, desire and will, to be strong, forceful, and 1 djTiamic— determined to assert your individuality J in being and doing that which the universal creative j desire and will is hoping that you will be and do. 1 send to you this message charged with the very ' dynamic vibrations of my brain, as it transforms and converts the Mind-Power into thoughts and ' words. I send it to you— yes, yuu, who are now i reading the words— with all the energy, force and ] power at my command, to the end that it may pierce \ your armor of indifference, fear, and doubt, and "I ' Can't." And that reaching into your heart of de- sire, it may fill you with the very spirit of individu- ality, conscious egohood, perception of reality, and j realization of the "I." So that from hence on your J battle cry will be changed, and you will plunge into | the thick of the fight, filled with the Berserker rage, like the Icelandic hero of old, and shouting your posi- tive cry of freedom, ' ' 1 Can ; I Will ; I Dare ; I Do ! " you will mow your way clear through the ranks of the horde of ignorance, and negativity, and reach the heights beyond. This is my message to you— the individual ! Jb The Science of SEX REGENERATIOi How to Preserve and Strengthen and Retain Vital Po' By A. GOULD and Dr. FRANKLIN L. DUBOIS j Priceless Infonaation for Tbose that Are Ready for the True laaet Tea oil Contiollins the Vital Essence of the Body. The Secret of Rejure^ tion and Kemaioiii£ Young and Vigorous Entliu Blast ically praised by tbe clergy, socioldgical workere and thSdV here-is a woik whicli contains the whole truth — plain, siraiile, outspoken, undisguised by priiderj^about the deepyat things in life, n the relation of husband and wife, of parent and child. Here is a will counsc! you in times of domestic difficulty, guide you in tttnCB j cident and illness, and advise you at all timea how to hold tlia loj respect of your husband or wife, how to be fl true and helpful inatA, G be a (tood and wise iiarent, anil how to be fit for anil elTlricnt battle of life. 224 Pages, Boimd in Cloth. Pilce, $1.35, Postpaid Learn how to control your most vital essence. The real i Rejuvenation. A few of f.he subjects treated; The Importance < Knowledge. The Imperishable Records of the Unseen. The Creativs ] How the Body is Regenerated. The Eencwing of the Vital Forces. Richest JIaterial of the Body is Wasted. Abuse of the Creative I Instruetions for Sons and Daughters. ,Soine Sox Secrefa. How the E Child Con be Determined. The Results of Higher Regeneration. Realty Rrgin to Live, The Awakening of the ITigher Consciousnoaa* ATVTCAU/ WTf\l>V Fif't f^" EdiUons Al.«dy Enh.usled INH W W L^I\.rV AVeryLiirgeSixthEdiiionNowREADV Our Self After Death i1 REV. ARTHUR CHAMBERS UDcinte of Klng'i Calligc, London, England The Great Inquiry, What of our Self After Death? No question of more Vital interest. People are not satisfied with what they kave been tald. Wrong and Inadequate Answers Given to the Great Inquiry. Advice to Those That Shudder at the Thought of the Grave of Oblivion for Themselves and Their Dead. The Answer of Christ to the Great Inquiry. A Very Wonderful Change Has Come Over the" World of Scientific Thought During the Last Thirty Years. What Christ Taught as to the Continuance of the Self at Death. In the Innumerable Instances of Persons Seen After Death, They Have Borne the Form and Even the Character of Dress by Which They Had Been Known Before Departure From This Life. The Evidence Conclusively Proves That Discarnate Souls Can, and Do Establish at Times Communications Between the Spirit-World and This World. The Advancing- Self in Spirit-Life Has the Power of Trans- milting Mental and Spiritual Impulses Which Can Be Consciously Received by Us Here. No One Can Read This Scholarly Work and Not Receive a Magnificent Radiance of Hope, Uiiperceived and Un- dreamed of in the Religious Philosophy of Many. The Author says: "It is possible for us who live in an age of enlarged Christian Thought, of scientific psychical research, and ever-extending knowledge of the mysteries of humanity to know far more on the subject of After Life than Christendom has in the past perceived. Bound in Cloth, Price $LO0, postage 10c. NOW READY AUTHORITATIVE COMPREHENSIVE CONC Private Leisont in the CultiTation of SEX FORCE The Vital Power of Attraction Between the Sexes} ~ Control and Transmutation for Greater Strength and Higher Development The Moat Advanced Teaching* on Physical and Spir REGENERATION Tlie Onl| Sjfslim tkat will PirpttDallji Hijaienite Ihi WI10I6 BBd|. I The author of this work has been teaching Sex Force to i; privately. Finding (hat the teachings did to much good he finslljr : ceded to the urgent requests of his pupils and consented to let us publish them in book form. The author is very well aware, however, that, owing to the nature of the teachings, there will be many misinterpreta- tions by ignorant persons — for this reason he has decided not to reveal hii name at the present time, as he desires no personal publicity or ao- lorieiy. He is, however, well known to most of you who receive tbeie circulars. Sex Force has been his great study. He has long wished to write a book on this subject, but he considered this such an importaot one that he did not wish to do so until he had given the teachings a thorough and practical trial. This he has now done and feels that the teachings at set forth in this work will be of the greatest value to thoM who study them. Bound in cloth, Price, $1.35, postpaid. THE HUMAN AURA ASTRAL COLORS AND! THOUGHT FORMS BY SWAMI PANCHADASl CONTENTS Chapter I. What la the Human Aura Chapter II, The Prana Aura Chapter III. The Astral Colors ■Ml bm, Unt, shuU or color. The Primlry Col- n BadL Bhw and Tdlotr. Tbt Secaiidaf:' Coton, ann. unnia And Pui-ph, Tbe cooiUnaitona. Kev -t» Ua AHnl Colon. SeA. Ihe Pbndcu Color: Km UW Bpllltul; ToUow, tli« Mtslll. WMU ■si StaA lEe tna soles of BMHiiiiRtr. A noi;- AlAd phnouna. PruUn wiu nuWe almast ■mwn M pHodi* plUnlj Iho orilUaiK at tbn Chapter IV. Tho AetraJ Colors ■o^uilin; or uurr (nd'piJa<^. fsllo°», Ihe^Prlde •r IM^bol. The laoKin huo o( luftrlor fntellnS. fc^y«lrttuil lod rsllllmu illnitlSo?.'%ir'Bro»n Cliapt«r Y, The Aura Kaleidoscope dapter VI. Thought Fond ■ ThouenrVim. uo ™iM, Ooi tMaSi -\\t\Dt, niaaeaiaX. fonsii. Full d«al|ia<ii if ■ chmiMtM. ipEMLTmn™ and •fffCL How nmuibt ~ '•-■--' -nd UtiA A woDdertul itudr Chapter VII. Psychic Influeiwo of Color "asoliif HEd," Glnmy Blidt. DnrHtiflR OnvL Anirr RedL Soothlne BIuh. 111UBklD4ttni TeAfm, HhUdi En«t nr ctaiDCi. Tbe ininBisia c( HaiUu Chapter Vlll. Auric Magnetism Tbe Aurlo Raernjlr oT MBEDell^, KanMl' HeiltoB. hon cutKd and wbr It kcdci, Nnr Bolt- gunillon. AtHBIt treiUninl by AutlD Ojlot Tlbf»- Cfiapter IX. Developing the Aunt ID Dsod tbe Aun MU] the rlikt vAritlon (Bd •olor, Pitaidplts of Occult Cotor ne-Bctton. s«U-lYa«t- Chapter X. The Proteetire Aon "" " « vSid. 1, H w S^tnlHd d Hoterlc lanterfea. Bow Bound ia Goth. Price 50c Postage 4c. STOP GETTING SICK! Uam How to Get WeD, Stay Well, and How to Cure Ol The Secret of Mental Healing Mental Therapeutics Or, Just How to Heal Oneself and Others By THERON Q. DUMONT The Theory ot Mental Healing, and Tbel Practice ot Its Most Approved Methods. How to Cure People by Suggestion, Met Induction and Other Methods, both whea \ thoir presence and when distance aepara you from tliem. The Cause and Cure of Disease Plainly S plained. The Various ClasseB ot Diseasea Doscrll and Full Directions Given how to Treat i Cure Them. How to be a Successful Menial Healer. How to Cure Yourself by Mental Healinj Without employing a Healer. Plain, Practical Instruction, an Directions tor Self-Treatment. How to Reach Each Organ, Part and Cell of the Body, and Htfl to Treat it When Reached. How to Ascertain just what is wrong with your tiealUi; just how to treat and ture it. How to call into activity the powers latent within your mln4 and how to energize your body. Including the Latest and Best Methods of Present and Distant Mental Healing Prof. Dumout. a great authority on the subject of the FowerB ij the Mind, has in this work given the layman in plain, simple woM a. full anrt concise Btatement of the Mental Causes ot Dlseai and the Mental Cure oC Disease. Those who study these lesao will beprepared to practice Mental Healing successfully by the lat and most approved methods. And those who read it will ]" themselveB equipped to practice Self-Healing and thus to get th. selves well and to keep themselves well. This is the book that ^ have been waiting tor these many years, ever since you first ha| of Mental Healing. This is the book that tells you "Just Hdl Bound in Cloth, tl-3S Postpaid. Z32 Pages. fwenty Famous Lessons in Concentration IrofeBSor Dumonfs lamous course on sue e E hulidlng through (.'onCEntratlon. Now put in handy book form. Inlormation and p nolplea for developing the grep.test, most t ta.1 mental faculty — never before presented Head below and grasp the meaning o( this opportunity, Lear- ' ■— '" lent ' L tils Success Yours POWER OF CONCENTRATION Attain Ing WibIHi la™ to AtttJlK ModW Haw CauriiM It G"""'* MinxirT bt Cgxmitralltn (AVrrjVilu.WcLFMO" ) PruHcBl e»nili« (Never DublliHed ht- In tbe^ a fam. B..^. J"- .J Simple, concrete form the reau..- ot hla litetima Investigation a. He shows you hoiv to acQuire that mental quality oZ concentration which haa made world-known leadera. He shows you how to (oeua your Ideas, to get away from mind wandering, to eliminate day dreams— how to use your mind like an ever-ready tool and to accomplish In hours what the man without this ability does only In weeks or months — or never. "- tells you clearly why some men lead, wh others with equal intelligence remain In 1 your master If you hai tallty. No I -ation. No superior to your fellowi mental powers bw'ond Bed you wonder why others hava wonderlul gift . of success theirs. Tou ningly though DO better _ will know why j ofeSBOr Duroont s e aecret of their success. principles laid down so clearly ir Dumont. Practice the eser- he has BO caretully worked out. g Is all you need. Simply learn 1 the highway to bigger succesB WHAT THE CARDS TELL Goniin^ events cast their shadows before them." THE INSTRUCTIONS GITEN IN THIS BOOK Will give you all who look 'wtthln an Insight Into the meaningiB ot the CardB, and wonderful results will come with practice. The cards develop the intuitive (acuities aad give you a clear and reliable Inslgbt Into the deatlnex ot your conaultcrH. t ther I win tell 1 I full B cards to study. „uu ^tt^. o.c.o: Uie second, reading ot the past : the third, future pr^eenls METHOn S.- exatnyiles. METHOD l^The Planets. How t tell enquirers what undertaking <i profession they may gain the i METHOn B^How to tell it the en quirleu will attain their wish. METHOn B.— Another Way of Find lug a Wish. METHOD 7.— A Lucky Omen. METHOD 8.— The key-card to thi scccessea or failure of (he conaulter'i METHOD B^-Tnterprettng accordingr to the combined roeaninB of the cards. METHOD IB^How to Tell What Will Come to the House Twenty-SV)Qr Hours in Advance. METHOD 11.— How to Tell if TOUT Wish Win Come True. METHOD l!^-To Know Tour Dea- tiny. What will happen Immediately; events a little distance off : presents plane and obstaclee ; what la croHeliiK life— the de'aUny. METHOD It.— Meaning ot the Cards. How to read the cards In the order. they eome. When you will obtain your wish. The cards of the greatest Im- portanee. When you wUf for B oei^ tainty have your wish. METHOD H.— The Coming Fort- night. How to know the incidents of the coming fortnight. METHOD IE. — Counting by Sevens. The preceding methods are the very best and most euccesstul for telling your own, your friends' and acquaint- ances' fortunee. How to keep your consulters interested In what you are telling them. A FEW RULES WHICH WELL TEND TO THE SUCCESS OF PROPHECT How to ATold Telling Untcnths, Conclusion. Price, 60 cts. Postpaid. To be a gifted Cartomancer is naturally a great advantage. Tbif book i-ontalns instructions in such a simple manner, that every one mar /earn. You will find WHAT THE CARDS TELL will give yoa macb mi^iueat and will make fTiends Teio\c«. LANE MEDICAL LIBRARY Jiii r/, .;,,] AUG 2 2 (96 I SEP 5 isn